Selected quad for the lemma: nature_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
nature_n person_n subsist_v trinity_n 2,370 5 10.6882 5 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A41489 The blasphemous Socinian heresie disproved and confuted wherein the doctrinal and controversial parts of those points are handled, and the adversaries scripture and school-arguments answered : with animadversions upon a late book called, Christianity not mysterious, humbly dedicated to both houses of parliament / by J. Gailhard ... Gailhard, J. (Jean) 1697 (1697) Wing G117; ESTC R12826 295,019 394

There are 56 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

which_o be_v and_o which_o be_v to_o come_v as_o for_o person_n though_o it_o be_v not_o as_o to_o the_o letter_n in_o scripture_n yet_o it_o be_v virtual_o first_o in_o the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d equivalent_a to_o that_o of_o 1.3_o of_o heb._n 1.3_o person_n then_o in_o the_o very_a same_o word_n but_o speak_v of_o 1.11_o of_o 2_o cor._n 1.11_o man_n where_o it_o signify_v a_o individuum_fw-la or_o a_o person_n and_o though_o just_a the_o very_a word_n be_v not_o use_v in_o scripture_n it_o be_v not_o material_a because_o in_o divinity_n not_o the_o word_n but_o the_o thing_n not_o the_o sound_n but_o the_o sense_n be_v to_o be_v mind_v and_o though_o the_o word_n person_n be_v deduce_v from_o stage_n and_o thing_n not_o serious_a yet_o we_o ought_v to_o look_v to_o the_o use_v more_o than_o to_o the_o etymology_n or_o derivation_n and_o what_o if_o it_o be_v take_v from_o thing_n create_v and_o very_o unlike_a to_o god_n so_o we_o may_v say_v be_v all_o word_n purify_v from_o their_o original_a imperfefection_n but_o for_o the_o abuse_n of_o a_o word_n or_o a_o thing_n we_o must_v not_o leave_v the_o right_a use_n of_o it_o when_o scripture_n say_v there_o be_v one_o god_n this_o oneness_n can_v relate_v to_o nothing_o but_o to_o the_o be_v essence_n or_o nature_n of_o god_n for_o in_o this_o respect_n god_n be_v one_o so_o we_o have_v reason_n thereby_o to_o represent_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o godhead_n there_o be_v in_o scripture_n mention_n of_o god_n godhead_n 1.20_o godhead_n rom._n 1.20_o and_o of_o his_o nature_n when_o they_o which_o by_o nature_n be_v no_o god_n 4.8_o god_n gal._n 4.8_o be_v exclude_v from_o be_v object_n of_o our_o worship_n so_o when_o scripture_n reveal_v there_o be_v father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n it_o make_v a_o distinction_n between_o they_o yet_o call_v every_o one_o god_n have_v we_o not_o cause_v thereupon_o to_o call_v they_o three_o person_n and_o affirm_v that_o in_o one_o essence_n or_o godhead_n be_v three_o person_n do_v not_o these_o word_n express_v the_o thing_n without_o do_v it_o any_o wrong_n or_o injury_n for_o they_o be_v neither_o profane_a nor_o unworthy_a of_o god_n if_o the_o word_n essence_n unity_n trinity_n be_v not_o in_o so_o many_o letter_n in_o scripture_n no_o more_o be_v the_o word_n sacrament_n yet_o though_o the_o name_n be_v not_o in_o the_o thing_n be_v but_o herein_o they_o be_v more_o peevish_a than_o their_o father_n socinus_n who_o tell_v francis_n david_n 778._o david_n vol._n i._o p._n 778._o that_o though_o the_o term_n of_o essence_n and_o person_n be_v not_o in_o scripture_n if_o the_o sense_n be_v it_o be_v no_o matter_n and_o that_o they_o who_o go_v upon_o such_o ground_n expose_v their_o cause_n the_o method_n which_o the_o enemy_n to_o this_o truth_n ought_v to_o take_v shall_v be_v this_o whether_o they_o own_o according_a to_o the_o revelation_n the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n to_o be_v one_o god_n which_o if_o they_o deny_v we_o want_v no_o proof_n but_o if_o they_o own_v it_o then_o let_v they_o proceed_v to_o a_o debate_n whether_o they_o be_v one_o in_o nature_n and_o three_o in_o person_n or_o how_o the_o case_n be_v to_o be_v state_v for_o it_o be_v very_o unreasonable_a to_o dispute_v about_o word_n and_o explication_n of_o any_o thing_n concern_v the_o relation_n or_o manner_n till_o the_o thing_n itself_o be_v plain_o confess_v or_o deny_v now_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n we_o must_v proceed_v and_o though_o i_o love_v not_o a_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o dispute_n about_o word_n yet_o as_o word_n do_v signify_v thing_n so_o some_o be_v so_o fundamental_a to_o the_o matter_n in_o hand_n that_o something_o i_o must_v say_v about_o they_o the_o first_o be_v essence_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d derive_v from_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d he_o which_o be_v what_o 3.14_o what_o exod._n 3.14_o we_o call_v essence_n or_o nature_n be_v not_o a_o imaginary_a thing_n and_o exist_v only_o in_o the_o mind_n as_o in_o a_o idea_n neither_o be_v it_o a_o thing_n separate_v from_o the_o person_n but_o always_o inherent_a in_o they_o whereby_o they_o subsist_v so_o that_o if_o there_o be_v no_o individuum_fw-la of_o such_o a_o species_n there_o also_o will_v be_v no_o essence_n of_o that_o species_n as_o in_o the_o case_n of_o human_a nature_n which_o comprehend_v a_o rational_a soul_n and_o a_o organical_a body_n then_o humanity_n be_v that_o whereby_o every_o man_n be_v a_o man_n but_o this_o nature_n do_v not_o subsist_v without_o man_n but_o be_v so_o inherent_a in_o man_n that_o in_o case_n there_o be_v no_o man_n there_o can_v be_v no_o human_a nature_n or_o humanity_n thus_o in_o god_n the_o divine_a essence_n be_v not_o a_o thing_n exist_v without_o son_n father_n and_o holy_a ghost_n as_o if_o it_o be_v a_o four_o thing_n wherein_o these_o three_o be_v contain_v but_o as_o we_o say_v in_o philosophy_n of_o the_o soul_n est_fw-la tota_fw-la in_o toto_fw-la &_o tota_fw-la in_o qualibet_fw-la parte_fw-la so_o divine_a nature_n be_v whole_a in_o the_o father_n whole_a in_o the_o son_n and_o whole_a in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o that_o in_o a_o infinite_o more_o excellent_a way_n than_o either_o nature_n or_o the_o soul_n be_v in_o we_o for_o they_o be_v finite_o in_o man_n but_o infinite_o in_o every_o person_n of_o the_o trinity_n and_o exact_o and_o perfect_o the_o same_o for_o indeed_o the_o essence_n of_o god_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o his_o nature_n namely_o the_o deity_n or_o the_o godhead_n god_n be_v not_o divide_v into_o divers_a essence_n but_o distinguish_v into_o divers_a person_n god_n can_v be_v divide_v into_o several_a nature_n or_o part_n so_o the_o person_n which_o subsist_v in_o that_o one_o essence_n be_v only_o distinct_a and_o not_o separate_v one_o from_o another_o he_o who_o say_v a_o person_n of_o the_o holy_a trinity_n say_v one_o essence_n common_a to_o three_o person_n hereupon_o we_o must_v know_v how_o in_o the_o most_o holy_a trinity_n something_o be_v common_a to_o the_o three_o person_n such_o be_v the_o essence_n and_o something_o incommunicable_a and_o proper_a to_o every_o one_o in_o their_o respective_a relation_n we_o ought_v further_o to_o know_v how_o the_o word_n essence_n substance_n and_o nature_n though_o in_o some_o respect_n they_o may_v admit_v of_o some_o difference_n yet_o when_o speak_v of_o the_o godhead_n they_o be_v take_v for_o one_o and_o the_o same_o whereunto_o may_v be_v add_v deity_n and_o god_n be_v there_o be_v in_o school_n of_o divinity_n and_o philosophy_n but_o one_o greek_a word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d from_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o be_v to_o signify_v essence_n and_o substance_n and_o therefore_o let_v i_o speak_v to_o some_o by_o way_n of_o warning_n that_o they_o may_v multiply_v substance_n no_o more_o than_o essence_n for_o it_o be_v but_o one_o and_o the_o same_o thing_n without_o run_v into_o tritheism_n or_o the_o blasphemy_n of_o three_o god_n neither_o may_v they_o entertain_v the_o notion_n of_o three_o mind_n being_n or_o spirit_n for_o as_o there_o be_v but_o one_o divine_a nature_n and_o be_v and_o but_o one_o god_n so_o that_o same_o god_n be_v but_o one_o spirit_n wherefore_o in_o these_o time_n man_n shall_v follow_v the_o christian_a prudence_n and_o moderation_n of_o the_o doctor_n of_o the_o church_n in_o former_a age_n who_o be_v very_o cautious_a not_o to_o rush_v into_o new_a notion_n of_o their_o own_o about_o these_o matter_n or_o rash_o to_o run_v into_o new_a fangle_a opinion_n or_o hypothesis_n as_o they_o call_v they_o or_o supposition_n of_o their_o own_o when_o it_o will_v be_v much_o better_a for_o they_o to_o follow_v the_o thesis_n of_o the_o text_n among_o attribute_n of_o what_o we_o call_v essence_n metaphysician_n reckon_v this_o to_o be_v one_o that_o it_o be_v to_o be_v participative_o indivisible_a because_o it_o be_v equal_o impart_v to_o those_o who_o essence_n it_o be_v for_o if_o there_o be_v any_o addition_n diminution_n or_o alteration_n it_o will_v not_o be_v the_o same_o much_o more_o and_o upon_o a_o better_a account_n do_v this_o hold_n about_o that_o divine_a nature_n by_o the_o apostle_n in_o the_o very_a word_n attribute_v unto_o god_n 2_o pet._n 1.4_o in_o the_o godhead_n there_o be_v no_o division_n only_a distinction_n the_o essence_n and_o person_n not_o real_o but_o rational_o distinct_a for_o the_o essence_n be_v whole_a and_o indivisible_a in_o every_o person_n but_o the_o person_n be_v real_o distinct_a one_o from_o another_o by_o mean_n of_o some_o incommunicable_a attribute_n for_o the_o father_n be_v not_o the_o son_n nor_o the_o son_n the_o father_n nor_o the_o holy_a ghost_n either_o father_n or_o son_n the_o
essence_n be_v as_o schoolman_n say_v the_o quiddity_n of_o the_o thing_n that_o whereby_o the_o thing_n be_v what_o it_o be_v concern_v which_o this_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v the_o essence_n neither_o beget_v nor_o be_v beget_v it_o neither_o breathe_v nor_o be_v breathe_v this_o be_v the_o attribute_n of_o the_o person_n not_o of_o the_o nature_n nevertheless_o in_o the_o generation_n and_o breathe_v be_v the_o whole_a essence_n because_o it_o be_v indivisible_a communicate_v to_o the_o person_n beget_v the_o son_n and_o to_o the_o proceed_n the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o it_o be_v true_a the_o son_n be_v beget_v of_o the_o essence_n of_o the_o father_n for_o he_o be_v god_n of_o god_n light_a of_o light_n and_o to_o his_o only_o beget_v son_n the_o father_n have_v give_v all_o thing_n except_o to_o be_v father_n according_a to_o that_o say_n of_o our_o bless_a saviour_n 5.26_o saviour_n john_n 5.26_o as_o the_o father_n have_v life_n in_o himself_o so_o have_v he_o give_v to_o the_o son_n to_o have_v life_n in_o himself_o chap._n iii_o of_o the_o person_n of_o the_o godhead_n but_o this_o lead_v i_o to_o speak_v of_o the_o person_n and_o upon_o the_o matter_n it_o be_v fit_a to_o know_v in_o general_n what_o a_o person_n be_v namely_o one_o particular_a thing_n indivisible_a incommunicable_a live_a reasonable_a subsist_v in_o itself_o and_o not_o have_v part_n of_o another_o the_o first_o because_o no_o general_a notion_n be_v a_o person_n the_o second_o because_o a_o person_n may_v not_o be_v divide_v into_o many_o part_n the_o three_o because_o tho'_o one_o may_v communicate_v his_o nature_n yet_o his_o personality_n he_o can_v communicate_v the_o four_o no_o person_n without_o life_n and_o reason_n the_o five_o because_o every_o person_n be_v a_o be_v that_o have_v its_o own_o proper_a subsist_v thus_o christ_n humanity_n be_v not_o a_o person_n because_o it_o do_v not_o subsist_v in_o itself_o the_o six_o because_o that_o which_o be_v part_n of_o another_o be_v no_o person_n thus_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n separate_v from_o the_o body_n be_v no_o person_n now_o the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v of_o a_o large_a extent_n than_o that_o of_o person_n for_o they_o be_v speak_v of_o any_o individual_a substance_n but_o a_o person_n be_v a_o individual_a substance_n complete_a rational_a and_o as_o we_o say_v differ_v from_o another_o by_o mean_n of_o some_o incommunicable_a property_n hence_o we_o say_v that_o a_o person_n in_o the_o trinity_n be_v whole_a god_n not_o absolute_o or_o simple_o consider_v but_o by_o mean_n of_o some_o personal_a propriety_n it_o be_v not_o a_o species_n of_o god_n or_o of_o the_o deity_n nor_o part_n nor_o a_o thing_n different_a from_o the_o deity_n nor_o a_o bare_a relation_n or_o only_o a_o manner_n of_o be_v and_o subsist_v but_o it_o be_v the_o essence_n of_o god_n with_o a_o certain_a manner_n of_o subsist_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d neither_o be_v it_o a_o compound_v of_o the_o essence_n or_o of_o the_o manner_n of_o subsist_v so_o then_o a_o person_n of_o the_o deity_n be_v usual_o describe_v to_o be_v a_o incommunicable_a subsistence_n of_o the_o divine_a essence_n for_o in_o one_o and_o most_o simple_a nature_n of_o god_n be_v several_a person_n distinct_a to_o who_o the_o infinite_a and_o singular_a nature_n of_o one_o only_a god_n be_v common_a for_o scripture_n do_v teach_v we_o that_o there_o be_v but_o one_o god_n and_o three_o distinct_a person_n to_o who_o it_o do_v attribute_v the_o propriety_n of_o god_n whence_o we_o may_v conclude_v that_o there_o be_v in_o god_n oneness_n or_o unity_n of_o essence_n and_o plurality_n of_o person_n this_o be_v matter_n of_o faith_n to_o be_v believe_v and_o not_o of_o fact_n to_o be_v cavile_v at_o hence_o we_o find_v how_o in_o scripture_n the_o word_n god_n be_v sometime_o take_v for_o the_o essence_n and_o nature_n of_o god_n and_o at_o other_o time_n for_o certain_a person_n of_o the_o godhead_n as_o we_o shall_v have_v occasion_n to_o show_v the_o father_n have_v his_o essence_n original_o in_o himself_o and_o from_o none_o other_o the_o son_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v the_o selfsame_a increated_a essence_n in_o themselves_o as_o well_o as_o the_o father_n but_o not_o from_o themselves_o the_o son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o same_o nature_n with_o the_o father_n not_o in_o the_o same_o sense_n as_o man_n be_v among_o themselves_o for_o man_n be_v divide_v one_o from_o another_o but_o the_o person_n of_o the_o bless_a trinity_n not_o so_o for_o they_o be_v absolute_o undivided_a so_o that_o the_o three_o be_v but_o one_o god_n the_o greek_n call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o person_n in_o the_o same_o signification_n as_o we_o use_v when_o we_o say_v the_o person_n of_o the_o son_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n now_o scripture_n name_v they_o as_o thing_n distinguish_v between_o themselves_o individual_a subsist_v etc._n etc._n as_o we_o say_v just_a before_o if_o they_o be_v as_o they_o be_v work_v and_o act_v than_o they_o be_v person_n according_a to_o the_o axiom_n in_o philosophy_n actiones_fw-la sunt_fw-la suppositorum_fw-la now_o if_o the_o father_n be_v such_o if_o the_o son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n be_v such_o what_o can_v hinder_v we_o from_o say_v the_o father_n be_v a_o person_n the_o son_n be_v a_o person_n the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v a_o person_n the_o greek_a father_n make_v use_v of_o the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o in_o 1.3_o in_o heb._n 1.3_o scripture_n we_o find_v in_o the_o same_o sense_n that_o be_v person_n as_o we_o use_v it_o where_o christ_n be_v call_v the_o express_a image_n of_o his_o the_o father_n person_n i_o say_v they_o make_v use_v of_o it_o against_o heretic_n who_o deny_v father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n to_o be_v three_o thing_n so_o different_a as_o that_o the_o one_o be_v not_o and_o can_v be_v the_o other_o though_o as_o i_o already_o say_v in_o scripture_n we_o have_v not_o in_o so_o many_o letter_n the_o word_n of_o unity_n trinity_n essence_n and_o person_n yet_o we_o therein_o have_v the_o thing_n themselves_o whence_o they_o be_v derive_v and_o the_o very_a word_n we_o find_v use_v by_o many_o of_o the_o ancient_a father_n now_o person_n and_o personality_n be_v in_o divine_a much_o different_a of_o what_o they_o be_v in_o human_a thing_n because_o the_o one_o be_v infinite_a and_o the_o other_o finite_a human_a nature_n be_v one_o but_o in_o specie_fw-la in_o many_o person_n as_o peter_n james_n paul_n but_o divine_a nature_n be_v but_o one_o and_o the_o same_o in_o number_n exist_v in_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n as_o far_o as_o we_o be_v able_a to_o apprehend_v the_o person_n differ_v from_o the_o nature_n not_o real_o but_o rational_o as_o the_o manner_n of_o a_o thing_n from_o the_o thing_n itself_o as_o may_v be_v a_o degree_n of_o heat_n from_o the_o heat_n it_o come_v to_o divine_a essence_n be_v whole_a in_o every_o person_n but_o not_o as_o the_o whole_a be_v in_o its_o part_n for_o it_o be_v not_o divide_v as_o we_o say_v but_o indivisible_a now_o the_o manner_n of_o subsist_v of_o the_o divine_a essence_n which_o be_v but_o one_o in_o number_n in_o three_o person_n be_v incomprehensible_a and_o unexpressible_a and_o the_o manner_n how_o the_o godhead_n be_v attribute_v to_o the_o three_o be_v singular_a and_o wonderful_a which_o no_o reason_n can_v demonstrate_v nor_o example_n illustrate_v to_o which_o purpose_n say_v our_o saviour_n 10.22_o saviour_n luk._n 10.22_o no_o man_n know_v who_o the_o son_n be_v but_o the_o father_n and_o who_o the_o father_n be_v but_o the_o son_n and_o to_o who_o the_o son_n will_v reveal_v he_o by_o virtue_n of_o that_o revelation_n the_o manner_n of_o know_v the_o father_n be_v not_o the_o same_o as_o be_v in_o the_o son_n yet_o nature_n do_v not_o produce_v nature_n nor_o nature_n person_n nor_o person_n nature_n but_o person_n do_v person_n not_o of_o the_o essence_n but_o in_o unity_n of_o the_o same_o nature_n common_a to_o the_o three_o person_n neither_o do_v it_o produce_v without_o itself_o as_o in_o corporeal_a thing_n because_o no_o penetration_n of_o dimension_n but_o within_o itself_o for_o it_o be_v infinite_a now_o the_o father_n give_v nature_n to_o the_o son_n and_o both_o to_o the_o holy_a ghost_n not_o by_o alienation_n but_o by_o communication_n which_o be_v so_o impart_v to_o the_o receiver_n as_o that_o it_o still_o remain_v in_o the_o giver_n as_o one_o light_n have_v it_o from_o another_o without_o any_o diminution_n hence_o it_o be_v that_o one_o person_n do_v not_o subsist_v without_o the_o other_o as_o it_o be_v in_o man_n but_o all_o three_o do_v one_o
within_o another_o this_o make_v our_o saviour_n say_v 10.38_o say_v john_n 10.38_o the_o father_n be_v in_o i_o and_o i_o in_o he_o and_o 14.10_o and_o ch._n 14.10_o i_o be_o in_o the_o father_n and_o the_o father_n in_o i_o yet_o this_o hinder_v not_o but_o that_o they_o be_v distinct_a among_o themselves_o for_o they_o be_v not_o so_o one_o in_o another_o as_o the_o accident_n be_v in_o its_o subject_n neither_o be_v one_o predicate_v and_o speak_v of_o the_o other_o as_o man_n be_v of_o john_n for_o the_o father_n be_v not_o the_o son_n nor_o the_o son_n the_o holy_a ghost_n it_o be_v enough_o they_o be_v personal_o distinguish_v and_o in_o their_o manner_n of_o subsist_v the_o father_n unbegotten_a beget_v the_o son_n the_o son_n beget_v of_o the_o father_n the_o holy_a ghost_n proceed_v from_o both_o as_o this_o be_v ad_fw-la intra_fw-la inward_o and_o among_o themselves_o so_o outward_o though_o the_o outward_a work_n be_v common_a to_o the_o three_o yet_o it_o seem_v good_a to_o divine_a wisdom_n particular_o to_o attribute_v unto_o the_o father_n the_o work_n of_o creation_n to_o the_o son_n that_o of_o redemption_n to_o the_o holy_a ghost_n that_o of_o sanctification_n work_n of_o power_n in_o school_n of_o divinity_n be_v attribute_v to_o the_o father_n of_o wisdom_n to_o the_o son_n of_o mercy_n and_o goodness_n to_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o these_o work_v ad_fw-la extra_fw-la as_o creation_n salvation_n sanctification_n essential_o there_o be_v but_o one_o cause_n and_o principle_n for_o there_o be_v but_o one_o god_n but_o personal_o there_o be_v three_o because_o three_o person_n which_o not_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d but_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d do_v free_o cooperate_v and_o as_o these_o person_n in_o subsist_v be_v distinguish_v in_o order_n so_o also_o in_o their_o work_n one_o do_v not_o operate_v without_o the_o other_o and_o this_o operation_n follow_v the_o subsistence_n the_o father_n be_v and_o work_v from_o none_o the_o son_n from_o the_o father_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n from_o both_o yet_o this_o order_n of_o work_v do_v take_v away_o the_o equality_n of_o person_n no_o more_o than_o do_v their_o order_n of_o subsist_v now_o the_o act_n whereby_o the_o father_n have_v beget_v the_o son_n and_o both_o produce_v the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v in_o several_a sense_n voluntary_a and_o necessary_a the_o first_o because_o no_o violence_n or_o compulsion_n but_o very_o free_o the_o second_o it_o be_v not_o voluntary_a but_o necessary_a if_o we_o take_v voluntary_a in_o opposition_n to_o natural_a for_o voluntary_a signify_v contingent_a that_o which_o can_v be_v or_o not_o be_v but_o it_o be_v so_o necessary_a that_o the_o father_n can_v not_o but_o beget_v the_o son_n and_o both_o breath_n the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o this_o from_o all_o eternity_n otherwise_o some_o new_a thing_n have_v befall_v divine_a nature_n which_o be_v absurd_a and_o this_o generation_n and_o production_n be_v not_o as_o in_o human_a thing_n where_o the_o father_n be_v in_o time_n before_o the_o son_n but_o here_o the_o son_n be_v coeternal_a with_o the_o father_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n with_o both_o not_o forcible_o but_o necessary_o as_o light_n be_v from_o the_o sun_n and_o heat_v from_o the_o fire_n so_o the_o father_n be_v no_o more_o without_o the_o son_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n than_o the_o sun_n be_v without_o light_n god_n be_v not_o without_o his_o wisdom_n and_o his_o virtue_n and_o this_o from_o all_o eternity_n i_o mean_v that_o call_v imparticipata_fw-la or_o à_fw-la parte_fw-la ante_fw-la and_o à_fw-la parte_fw-la post_fw-la that_o be_v without_o beginning_n or_o end_v incommunicable_a to_o the_o creature_n and_o herein_o indeed_o do_v differ_v this_o divine_a production_n from_o that_o of_o the_o light_n of_o the_o sun_n and_o heat_n of_o the_o fire_n wherein_o be_v a_o succession_n and_o a_o difference_n the_o light_n of_o the_o sun_n to_o day_n be_v sometime_o different_a from_o that_o of_o yesterday_o but_o the_o son_n be_v to_o day_n the_o same_o he_o be_v yesterday_o 8._o yesterday_o heb._n 13_o 8._o christ_n the_o same_o yesterday_o and_o to_o day_n and_o for_o ever_o there_o be_v also_o a_o order_n among_o the_o three_o person_n the_o father_n be_v first_o as_o 28.19_o as_o matth_n 28.19_o baptise_v the_o nation_n in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n thus_o the_o father_n be_v name_v first_o 5.7_o first_o 1_o john_n 5.7_o the_o son_n next_o than_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o the_o creed_n the_o father_n be_v also_o name_v first_o the_o son_n the_o second_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o three_o the_o father_n of_o himself_o the_o son_n of_o the_o father_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o already_o say_v of_o both_o yet_o all_o three_o may_v be_v call_v and_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d self_n god_n as_o we_o shall_v by_o god_n grace_n speak_v of_o more_o hereafter_o neither_o do_v the_o divine_a nature_n though_o subsist_v of_o itself_o as_o single_a and_o individual_a make_v any_o four_o person_n in_o the_o godhead_n distinct_a from_o the_o three_o because_o it_o subsi_v in_o a_o certain_a manner_n and_o only_o in_o the_o person_n of_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n these_o three_o person_n be_v not_o of_o another_o or_o different_a nature_n nor_o of_o the_o like_a or_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d under_o which_o word_n the_o arian_n will_v have_v shelter_v their_o error_n nor_o of_o a_o common_a as_o man_n who_o have_v a_o common_a essence_n but_o not_o the_o same_o in_o number_n but_o this_o divine_a essence_n in_o three_o person_n be_v the_o very_a same_o in_o number_n all_o this_o be_v a_o great_a mystery_n reveal_v in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n profess_v by_o the_o church_n from_o christ_n time_n to_o this_o though_o satan_n rage_n against_o the_o son_n of_o god_n 3.8_o god_n 1_o john_n 3.8_o who_o come_v to_o destroy_v his_o work_n do_v from_o time_n to_o time_n raise_v up_o instrument_n to_o blaspheme_v against_o it_o and_o we_o ought_v humble_o and_o devout_o to_o adore_v and_o not_o presumptuous_o and_o profane_o dive_v into_o it_o chap._n iu._n of_o the_o most_o holy_a trinity_n although_o the_o matter_n about_o the_o divine_a nature_n and_o the_o three_o person_n which_o we_o have_v already_o speak_v of_o be_v but_o one_o and_o the_o same_o with_o that_o of_o the_o most_o adorable_a trinity_n as_o indeed_o they_o in_o discourse_n be_v part_n one_o of_o another_o and_o so_o twist_a and_o connex_v together_o that_o what_o we_o speak_v of_o one_o have_v a_o relation_n to_o and_o dependency_n upon_o the_o other_o yet_o before_o we_o come_v to_o the_o polemical_a or_o controversial_a part_n of_o these_o point_n we_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n shall_v under_o the_o head_n of_o the_o bless_a trinity_n continue_v to_o speak_v of_o the_o didactical_a or_o doctrinal_a part_n of_o our_o discourse_n the_o more_o to_o inculcate_v into_o the_o mind_n of_o the_o reader_n less_o acquaint_v with_o these_o dispute_n what_o ground_n they_o ought_v to_o go_v upon_o and_o to_o believe_v concern_v these_o fundamental_o of_o our_o faith_n and_o necessary_a doctrine_n of_o our_o salvation_n what_o we_o believe_v about_o it_o be_v above_o not_o against_o reason_n for_o we_o believe_v not_o one_o god_n to_o be_v many_o god_n nor_o three_o person_n to_o be_v but_o one_o person_n if_o in_o human_a thing_n i_o shall_v say_v absolute_o i_o james_n be_o father_n and_o son_n it_o be_v a_o contradiction_n indeed_o but_o to_o speak_v it_o relative_o there_o be_v none_o at_o all_o i_o can_v say_v i_o be_o son_n and_o father_n to_o my_o father_n or_o father_n and_o son_n to_o my_o son_n but_o i_o may_v very_o well_o say_v i_o james_n one_o man_n be_o upon_o a_o different_a account_n and_o in_o a_o different_a relation_n son_n and_o father_n in_o regard_n to_o my_o father_n i_o be_o a_o son_n in_o relation_n to_o my_o son_n i_o be_o a_o father_n let_v the_o great_a master_n of_o or_o pretender_n to_o reason_n herein_o show_v i_o a_o contradiction_n no_o more_o can_v they_o when_o i_o say_v in_o the_o godhead_n be_v one_o essence_n or_o nature_n subsist_v in_o three_o person_n and_o three_o person_n exist_v in_o one_o essence_n unity_n in_o trinity_n and_o trinity_n in_o unity_n this_o great_a point_n be_v not_o only_o very_o hard_a and_o difficult_a by_o reason_n of_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o eternal_a unspeakable_a and_o incomprehensible_a generation_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n by_o the_o father_n but_o also_o of_o a_o most_o high_a concernment_n first_o upon_o the_o account_n of_o god_n glory_n for_o to_o deny_v this_o doctrine_n be_v to_o deny_v the_o true_a god_n because_o 2.23_o because_o 1_o john_n 2.23_o whosoever_o deni_v the_o son_n the_o same_o have_v not_o thefather_n second_o
upon_o the_o account_n of_o our_o salvation_n which_o by_o no_o mean_n can_v be_v obtain_v without_o it_o let_v arminian_n say_v on_o the_o contrary_n what_o they_o will_n for_o 17.3_o for_o john_n 17.3_o this_o be_v eternal_a life_n to_o know_v thou_o the_o only_a true_a god_n and_o jesus_n christ_n who_o thou_o have_v send_v and_o who_o be_v he_o but_o 5.20_o but_o 1_o john_n 5.20_o the_o son_n of_o god_n the_o true_a god_n and_o eternal_a life_n we_o say_v trinity_n or_o triunity_n not_o triplicity_n for_o this_o last_o imply_v a_o composition_n of_o three_o part_n father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n be_v alius_fw-la &_o alius_fw-la not_o aliud_fw-la &_o aliud_fw-la other_o and_o other_o but_o not_o other_o thing_n and_o other_o thing_n three_o distinct_a person_n but_o one_o and_o the_o same_o nature_n we_o distinguish_v the_o person_n say_v 11._o say_v de_fw-fr trin._n &_o unit_fw-la cap._n 11._o austin_n but_o divide_v not_o the_o deity_n or_o essence_n they_o be_v not_o distinct_a essential_o for_o there_o be_v but_o one_o essence_n but_o personal_o that_o be_v one_o person_n be_v not_o the_o other_o the_o father_n not_o the_o son_n nor_o the_o son_n the_o father_n and_o the_o holy_a none_o of_o the_o other_o two_o peter_n paul_n and_o john_n be_v not_o only_o distinct_a among_o themselves_o but_o also_o divide_v one_o from_o another_o so_o they_o be_v three_o man_n though_o but_o one_o specifical_a nature_n because_o create_v and_o finite_a but_o in_o a_o infinite_a be_v be_v otherwise_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n though_o distinct_a yet_o not_o divide_v for_o there_o be_v but_o one_o numerical_a nature_n the_o three_o be_v consubstantial_a or_o coessential_a in_o nature_n coeternal_a in_o time_n and_o coequal_a in_o power_n the_o knowledge_n of_o one_o god_n may_v be_v have_v by_o the_o light_n of_o nature_n but_o that_o of_o the_o holy_a trinity_n only_o out_o of_o scripture_n for_o the_o one_o be_v according_a to_o reason_n but_o the_o other_o above_o it_o two_o way_n there_o be_v to_o know_v god_n the_o one_a nature_n the_o second_o revelation_n that_o be_v defectuous_a this_o be_v perfect_a to_o which_o god_n tie_v his_o church_n which_o alone_o know_v and_o call_v upon_o god_n according_a to_o what_o he_o manifest_v of_o himself_o in_o his_o holy_a word_n and_o thereby_o her_o religion_n be_v different_a from_o that_o of_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o world_n and_o there_o be_v no_o other_o save_a way_n to_o come_v to_o god_n but_o by_o christ_n who_o gospel_n be_v preach_v as_o the_o only_a doctrine_n of_o salvation_n and_o we_o must_v not_o have_v of_o god_n such_o notion_n as_o our_o fancy_n or_o natural_a reason_n suggest_v unto_o we_o but_o such_o as_o he_o have_v declare_v in_o his_o word_n for_o he_o be_v a_o voluntary_a cause_n of_o all_o who_o way_n and_o method_n we_o ought_v to_o observe_v and_o be_v guide_v by_o in_o our_o religion_n for_o 5._o for_o ephes_n 1.11_o &_o v._o 5._o he_o work_v all_o thing_n according_a to_o the_o counsel_n of_o his_o own_o will_n and_o according_a to_o the_o good_a pleasure_n of_o his_o will_n yet_o this_o holy_a mystery_n be_v a_o stumbling-block_n unto_o the_o jew_n and_o unto_o the_o greek_n foolishness_n and_o both_o look_n upon_o it_o as_o heresy_n though_o if_o god_n word_n be_v the_o word_n of_o truth_n this_o as_o we_o hope_v to_o show_v be_v certain_o the_o true_a sound_v doctrine_n because_o ground_v upon_o it_o though_o unsound_a man_n will_v neither_o believe_v it_o nor_o consent_n about_o it_o to_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n and_o orthodox_n doctor_n of_o all_o age_n nor_o to_o the_o confession_n of_o faith_n of_o all_o christian_a reform_a church_n as_o if_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o of_o truth_n be_v depart_v from_o they_o all_o to_o be_v only_o among_o socinian_o second_o substance_n do_v exist_v only_o in_o the_o first_o man_n in_o general_n exi_v only_o in_o james_n john_n that_o be_v individual_a and_o word_n be_v what_o use_n make_v they_o a_o indivisible_a and_o most_o single_a essence_n abstractive_o consider_v may_v and_o do_v concretive_o exist_v in_o three_o person_n no_o man_n may_v well_o say_v that_o a_o infinite_a essence_n do_v not_o admit_v of_o three_o modes_n or_o manner_n of_o subsistence_n but_o he_o only_o which_o fancy_n within_o his_o shallow_a and_o finite_a intellect_n to_o understand_v perfect_o a_o infinite_a nature_n with_o her_o modes_n of_o subsist_v which_o to_o pretend_v to_o impli_v absurdity_n and_o impiety_n and_o to_o affirm_v that_o to_o be_v one_o in_o relation_n to_o its_o essence_n and_o many_o as_o to_o the_o mode_n be_v no_o more_o contradictory_n than_o to_o say_v the_o same_o man_n be_v real_a in_o respect_n of_o his_o essence_n and_o modal_a as_o to_o his_o subsistence_n wherefore_o they_o who_o will_v terminate_v a_o infinite_a essence_n only_o to_o one_o manner_n of_o subsist_v so_o that_o it_o may_v not_o be_v communicate_v to_o another_o person_n either_o they_o understand_v not_o what_o a_o infinite_a nature_n be_v or_o else_o mistake_v the_o meaning_n of_o the_o word_n terminate_v or_o confine_v which_o be_v not_o to_o prescribe_v limit_n for_o that_o a_o infinite_a nature_n do_v abhor_v but_o the_o meaning_n be_v that_o a_o essence_n as_o may_v be_v the_o father_n be_v so_o the_o father_n essence_n as_o may_v not_o be_v the_o son_n be_v in_o the_o same_o manner_n but_o it_o may_v be_v in_o a_o different_a way_n upon_o this_o matter_n it_o ought_v careful_o to_o be_v observe_v how_o the_o divine_a essence_n be_v consider_v either_o absolute_o or_o relative_o to_o the_o manner_n of_o exist_v in_o respect_n to_o both_o the_o father_n be_v of_o himself_o in_o relation_n to_o the_o first_o the_o son_n also_o be_v of_o himself_o but_o as_o to_o the_o second_o he_o be_v from_o the_o father_n so_o be_v the_o holy_a ghost_n of_o himself_o in_o respect_n to_o the_o first_o that_o be_v absolute_o consider_v but_o as_o to_o the_o second_o he_o proceed_v from_o both_o father_n and_o son_n wherefore_o the_o father_n be_v absolute_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d self_n god_n because_o both_o as_o to_o his_o essence_n and_o as_o to_o his_o person_n he_o be_v not_o from_o another_o but_o the_o son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n be_v also_o self_n god_n though_o not_o as_o to_o the_o person_n the_o son_n be_v beget_v by_o the_o father_n as_o the_o holy_a ghost_n proceed_v from_o both_o but_o as_o to_o the_o nature_n because_o both_o be_v by_o that_o essence_n which_o be_v not_o produce_v by_o another_o or_o depend_v upon_o another_o but_o that_o same_o which_o of_o itself_o and_o by_o itself_o do_v exist_v from_o all_o eternity_n the_o three_o person_n have_v but_o one_o and_o the_o same_o essence_n and_o they_o be_v not_o essential_o distinstinguish_v the_o son_n be_v from_o the_o father_n by_o generation_n not_o as_o to_o his_o essence_n but_o in_o relation_n to_o his_o person_n not_o absolute_o as_o god_n but_o relative_o as_o son_n for_o the_o son_n have_v the_o same_o nature_n and_o substance_n as_o the_o father_n self_n god_n as_o he_o though_o not_o in_o the_o same_o manner_n the_o father_n may_v not_o be_v call_v essentiator_n if_o i_o may_v so_o say_v of_o the_o son_n or_o holy_a ghost_n nor_o these_o essentiate_v the_o son_n be_v god_n of_o himself_o though_o not_o son_n of_o himself_o the_o manner_n whereby_o theson_n be_v say_v to_o be_v from_o the_o father_n be_v in_o scripture_n describe_v by_o the_o word_n generation_n which_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o communication_n of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o essence_n or_o life_n that_o be_v eternal_a and_o indivisible_a as_o express_v psal_n 2.7_o and_o john_n 5._o v._o 26._o which_o be_v not_o to_o be_v confound_v with_o nor_o measure_v by_o physical_a generation_n there_o be_v neither_o priority_n nor_o posteriority_n of_o duration_n no_o mutation_n or_o pass_v from_o power_n to_o act_n from_o a_o not_o be_v to_o a_o be_v from_o a_o division_n and_o multiplication_n of_o essence_n from_o a_o formal_a reason_n of_o active_a and_o passive_a generation_n from_o a_o dependency_n of_o he_o that_o be_v beget_v upon_o he_o that_o have_v beget_v or_o from_o a_o great_a to_o the_o lesser_a so_o there_o be_v no_o such_o imperfection_n as_o be_v in_o natural_a and_o metaphysical_a in_o which_o be_v priority_n and_o posteriority_n of_o nature_n though_o not_o of_o time_n so_o there_o be_v no_o consequence_n to_o be_v draw_v out_o of_o one_o for_o the_o other_o thus_o though_o a_o natural_a begetter_n do_v efficient_o beget_v of_o himself_o material_o from_o himself_o terminative_o out_o of_o himself_o no_o such_o thing_n be_v to_o be_v conceive_v of_o this_o generation_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n for_o though_o in_o human_a thing_n the_o
take_v matter_n of_o argument_n against_o we_o for_o they_o say_v thus_o the_o doctrine_n of_o god_n ought_v to_o be_v teach_v according_a to_o scripture_n but_o those_o name_n be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v therein_o therefore_o not_o to_o be_v use_v i_o answer_v the_o major_a proposition_n with_o a_o distinction_n if_o they_o mean_v it_o of_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n we_o own_o we_o ought_v not_o to_o depart_v from_o it_o but_o if_o of_o the_o letter_n and_o bare_a word_n we_o deny_v it_o for_o in_o the_o church_n be_v the_o gift_n of_o prophecy_n and_o of_o explain_v the_o word_n and_o whereas_o heretic_n be_v apt_a to_o wrest_v the_o sense_n and_o under_o variety_n of_o word_n to_o involve_v and_o disguise_v the_o truth_n it_o be_v sometime_o necessary_a to_o make_v use_n of_o new_a word_n to_o hit_v and_o refute_v their_o false_a gloss_n and_o interpretation_n in_o defence_n of_o the_o truth_n as_o to_o the_o minor_a about_o the_o several_a word_n we_o say_v scripture_n speak_v of_o one_o god_n whence_o come_v oneness_n or_o unity_n and_o divinity_n be_v attribute_v to_o three_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n hence_o be_v trinity_n jah_n and_o jehovah_n signify_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d he_o that_o be_v so_o from_o esse_fw-la we_o derive_v essence_n all_o which_o word_n we_o be_v not_o author_n of_o but_o receive_v they_o from_o the_o primitive_a church_n which_o by_o a_o public_a consent_n use_v they_o almost_o from_o the_o apostle_n time_n to_o these_o which_o they_o reject_v when_o themselves_o will_v bring_v in_o barbarian_a word_n to_o signify_v their_o erroneous_a notion_n as_o god_n essentiate_v and_o essentiate_v apostolical_a god_n emphatical_a and_o articulate_a god_n author_n and_o god_n executor_n and_o the_o like_a thus_o they_o make_v themselves_o real_o guilty_a of_o such_o thing_n as_o unreasonable_o they_o will_v charge_v we_o with_o they_o must_v needs_o have_v a_o very_a great_a opinion_n of_o their_o own_o ability_n see_v they_o will_v make_v we_o forbear_v the_o expression_n use_v by_o the_o church_n for_o so_o many_o age_n and_o impose_v their_o new-fangled_a word_n upon_o the_o world_n it_o be_v in_o they_o a_o blasphemous_a impiety_n and_o a_o damnable_a slander_n to_o charge_v we_o with_o bring_v in_o new_a god_n under_o such_o word_n as_o be_v make_v use_n of_o to_o explain_v scripture_n and_o they_o know_v well_o enough_o our_o meaning_n thereof_o as_o we_o so_o often_o explain_v it_o these_o different_a word_n do_v not_o change_v the_o sense_n so_o may_v not_o be_v call_v erroneous_a and_o though_o sometime_o there_o be_v variety_n in_o word_n and_o expression_n the_o sense_n still_o remain_v the_o same_o so_o we_o do_v not_o consider_v they_o as_o popish_a or_o antichristian_a forgery_n indeed_o they_o make_v a_o ridiculous_a objection_n jehovah_n the_o essentiator_n father_n be_v of_o the_o masculine_a gender_n but_o essence_n be_v of_o the_o feminine_a therefore_o not_o to_o be_v use_v but_o to_o say_v something_o to_o the_o purpose_n they_o must_v prove_v that_o in_o the_o nature_n of_o thing_n according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o grammar_n there_o be_v a_o difference_n of_o sex_n of_o the_o like_a nature_n be_v this_o no_o abstract_a name_n signify_v a_o substance_n but_o trinity_n be_v a_o abstract_n name_n therefore_o etc._n etc._n but_o the_o first_o proposition_n be_v false_a for_o when_o we_o call_v deity_n or_o divine_a nature_n we_o understand_v a_o substance_n see_v in_o god_n all_o thing_n be_v substance_n and_o no_o accident_n so_o by_o the_o word_n trinity_n we_o understand_v three_o person_n real_o subsist_v 23._o 2_o sam._n 23._o we_o find_v david_n mighty_a man_n of_o valour_n to_o be_v distinguish_v by_o three_o and_o three_o but_o as_o to_o their_o exception_n against_o the_o forenamed_a word_n once_o for_o all_o i_o say_v to_o they_o though_o every_o truth_n assert_v be_v not_o in_o scripture_n in_o so_o many_o letter_n yet_o if_o it_o be_v therein_o imply_v and_o by_o a_o good_a and_o necessary_a consequence_n thence_o derive_v it_o be_v to_o be_v esteem_v the_o word_n of_o god_n as_o if_o express_v because_o in_o it_o contain_v thus_o preach_v be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n because_o deduce_v out_o of_o it_o not_o as_o to_o the_o word_n but_o as_o to_o the_o sense_n hence_o it_o be_v that_o preach_a produce_v the_o effect_n attribute_v to_o the_o the_o word_n as_o to_o quicken_v convert_v regenerate_v and_o sanctify_v when_o sometime_o in_o a_o whole_a sermon_n few_o sentence_n be_v repeat_v word_n by_o word_n and_o in_o several_a place_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n the_o evangelist_n and_o apostle_n do_v quote_v out_o of_o the_o old_a not_o in_o the_o very_a word_n but_o accord_v to_o the_o sense_n and_o scope_n of_o the_o place_n upon_o such_o a_o ground_n our_o translator_n do_v render_v the_o word_n hypostasis_fw-la by_o that_o of_o person_n and_o so_o it_o be_v among_o the_o primitive_a church_n which_o word_n we_o find_v use_v in_o the_o new_a testament_n only_o four_o time_n thrice_o in_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n chap._n 1.3_o chap._n 3.14_o chap._n 11.1_o and_o 2_o cor._n 9.4_o yet_o every_o where_n in_o a_o different_a sense_n some_o few_o word_n more_o i_o shall_v add_v to_o answer_v some_o other_o objection_n in_o order_n thereunto_o i_o say_v in_o the_o deity_n there_o be_v a_o essence_n which_o be_v but_o one_o in_o that_o essence_n do_v subsist_v three_o person_n real_o distinguish_v one_o from_o another_o but_o only_o modal_o from_o the_o essence_n which_o do_v not_o make_v any_o four_o thing_n in_o the_o godhead_n as_o there_o be_v but_o one_o essence_n so_o these_o three_o person_n be_v but_o one_o god_n which_o name_n god_n be_v speak_v not_o only_o of_o the_o essence_n but_o also_o of_o every_o one_o of_o the_o three_o person_n unity_n in_o relation_n to_o the_o nature_n and_o trinity_n in_o respect_n to_o the_o person_n one_o essence_n there_o be_v without_o which_o there_o be_v no_o god_n but_o the_o three_o person_n be_v this_o one_o god_n in_o essence_n who_o subsist_v in_o that_o essence_n father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n the_o adversary_n be_v in_o a_o error_n when_o they_o think_v there_o be_v no_o real_a difference_n except_o there_o be_v some_o difference_n in_o number_n and_o essence_n they_o will_v have_v a_o thing_n and_o a_o substance_n to_o be_v the_o same_o when_o that_o which_o differ_v by_o reason_n of_o the_o definition_n from_o another_o do_v also_o real_o differ_v from_o it_o god_n in_o one_o number_n and_o essence_n admit_v of_o no_o rent_v or_o division_n and_o they_o be_v not_o three_o bare_a name_n the_o essence_n do_v not_o as_o the_o genus_fw-la contain_v three_o species_n but_o it_o do_v subsist_v in_o three_o person_n in_o which_o all_o and_o in_o every_o one_o be_v the_o same_o nature_n and_o godhead_n to_o own_o three_o essence_n be_v to_o assert_v three_o god_n and_o we_o say_v that_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n as_o to_o the_o nature_n be_v of_o themselves_o though_o not_o as_o to_o the_o personality_n for_o on_o this_o last_o account_n we_o own_o the_o son_n to_o be_v from_o the_o father_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n from_o both_o i_o say_v again_o how_o the_o essence_n make_v no_o four_o thing_n in_o the_o godhead_n as_o if_o the_o three_o person_n be_v derive_v from_o it_o as_o from_o a_o thing_n pre-existing_a or_o as_o if_o it_o be_v common_a to_o the_o three_o be_v real_o distinguish_v from_o the_o three_o these_o we_o never_o say_v but_o be_v against_o the_o essence_n be_v whole_o and_o entire_o common_a to_o every_o person_n these_o person_n do_v not_o proceed_v from_o the_o essence_n but_o we_o say_v they_o from_o all_o eternity_n subsist_v in_o the_o essence_n and_o though_o we_o own_o a_o distinction_n between_o essence_n and_o person_n yet_o they_o be_v not_o as_o a_o thing_n abstract_v from_o the_o essence_n the_o great_a difficulty_n arise_v about_o this_o be_v in_o the_o case_n of_o the_o incarnation_n which_o be_v just_o call_v the_o wisdom_n of_o god_n in_o a_o mystery_n 2.7_o 1_o cor._n 2.7_o even_o the_o hide_a wisdom_n which_o god_n ordain_v before_o the_o world_n unto_o our_o glory_n the_o son_n be_v incarnate_v or_o make_v flesh_n take_v upon_o he_o our_o human_a nature_n now_o the_o father_n and_o holy_a ghost_n have_v the_o same_o essence_n with_o the_o son_n how_o be_v not_o they_o both_o incarnate_v we_o know_v the_o person_n and_o not_o the_o nature_n be_v incarnate_v but_o how_o the_o nature_n which_o be_v whole_o in_o the_o son_n as_o whole_o in_o the_o father_n and_o in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v not_o make_v flesh_n it_o be_v a_o mystery_n that_o pass_v all_o understanding_n this_o be_v one_o of_o the_o secret_a thing_n that_o belong_v to_o god_n which_o we_o
father_n call_v god_n son_n call_v god_n holy_a ghost_n call_v god_n and_o here_o the_o enemy_n of_o truth_n shall_v begin_v their_o opposition_n which_o be_v the_o true_a way_n and_o method_n yet_o they_o do_v not_o but_o they_o except_v against_o the_o explication_n which_o only_o tend_v to_o far_o edify_v and_o instruction_n and_o quarrel_n with_o word_n as_o essence_n trinity_n person_n etc._n etc._n divine_a nature_n be_v one_o yet_o common_a to_o three_o in_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o trinity_n we_o must_v learn_v the_o truth_n the_o height_n and_o excellency_n thereof_o the_o truth_n do_v not_o depend_v upon_o our_o apprehension_n and_o understanding_n of_o it_o but_o upon_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o scripture_n of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n and_o though_o under_o the_o first_o man_n be_v more_o in_o the_o dark_a yet_o there_o be_v light_a enough_o to_o make_v they_o believe_v it_o with_o humble_a faith_n and_o piety_n but_o under_o the_o last_o that_o truth_n be_v clear_o apparent_a it_o be_v by_o 5.4_o by_o john_n 5.4_o faith_n only_o that_o we_o be_v enable_v to_o overcome_v the_o world_n so_o 5.7_o so_o 2_o cor._n 5.7_o we_o walk_v by_o faith_n and_o not_o by_o sight_n to_o show_v our_o religion_n be_v matter_n of_o faith_n more_o than_o of_o fact_n to_o be_v attain_v unto_o through_o belief_n and_o not_o through_o sense_n who_o object_n be_v visible_a and_o temporal_a but_o that_o of_o faith_n be_v 4.18_o be_v 2_o cor._n 4.18_o spiritual_a invisible_a and_o eternal_a the_o holy_a mystery_n of_o the_o trinity_n can_v be_v comprehend_v by_o the_o light_n of_o grace_n nor_o of_o glory_n much_o less_o by_o that_o of_o nature_n controvertes_o about_o principle_n be_v more_o intricate_a and_o difficult_a than_o about_o conclusion_n especial_o in_o thing_n relate_v to_o god_n the_o principal_a of_o all_o being_n and_o that_o for_o two_o reason_n the_o first_o because_o the_o infinite_a and_o incomprehensible_a majesty_n of_o god_n do_v far_o exceed_v our_o understanding_n the_o second_o upon_o the_o account_n of_o the_o blindness_n and_o vanity_n of_o man_n mind_n which_o either_o will_v not_o depend_v upon_o the_o revelation_n without_o which_o we_o can_v never_o know_v thing_n of_o that_o nature_n or_o else_o go_v about_o with_o its_o wrong_a notion_n to_o depravate_v it_o not_o so_o much_o as_o to_o the_o word_n as_o in_o the_o sense_n and_o doctrine_n wherein_o heresy_n do_v consist_v now_o as_o it_o be_v a_o damnable_a presumption_n in_o those_o who_o in_o these_o matter_n do_v pervert_v the_o true_a sense_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n so_o i_o must_v say_v it_o be_v a_o great_a imprudence_n in_o those_o who_o undertake_v to_o refute_v they_o to_o abound_v in_o their_o own_o sense_n leave_v the_o tread_a way_n and_o slight_v argument_n make_v use_v of_o by_o the_o former_a assertor_n of_o these_o truth_n to_o set_v up_o new_a notion_n and_o hypothesis_n of_o their_o own_o which_o render_v those_o point_n more_o abstruse_a and_o these_o new_a light_n of_o they_o instead_o of_o clear_v make_v they_o dark_a instead_o of_o prove_v they_o do_v not_o so_o much_o as_o illustrate_v the_o matter_n the_o proof_n ought_v to_o be_v draw_v out_o of_o the_o revelation_n and_o in_o the_o explanation_n thereof_o it_o be_v no_o shame_n nor_o loss_n of_o reputation_n to_o follow_v the_o step_v and_o method_n of_o learned_a and_o orthodox_n man_n who_o go_v before_o and_o with_o great_a success_n oppose_a error_n and_o blasphemy_n i_o do_v not_o hereby_o intend_v to_o deny_v a_o man_n the_o liberty_n of_o make_v use_n of_o the_o part_n and_o learn_v which_o god_n have_v endue_v he_o with_o above_o other_o and_o improve_v they_o to_o a_o further_a confirmation_n of_o the_o truth_n but_o i_o will_v not_o have_v they_o to_o depart_v from_o the_o foundation_n lay_v before_o they_o nor_o to_o exercise_v their_o wander_a thought_n about_o the_o adorable_a and_o incomprehensible_a nature_n of_o god_n mere_o to_o affect_v singularity_n and_o thereby_o to_o be_v applaud_v this_o very_a thing_n have_v of_o late_a lead_v if_o not_o tumble_v some_o into_o strange_a and_o horrid_a precipice_n which_o to_o avoid_v they_o more_o and_o more_o entangle_v themselves_o therein_o as_o have_v well_o be_v observe_v by_o other_o it_o be_v no_o good_a consequence_n for_o such_o to_o say_v that_o if_o a_o person_n be_v a_o mind_n a_o spirit_n and_o a_o substance_n than_o three_o person_n must_v be_v three_o distinct_a mind_n spirit_n and_o substance_n as_o distinct_a as_o adam_n and_o abel_n though_o not_o separate_v but_o the_o error_n of_o the_o hypothesis_n lie_v in_o this_o which_o open_v the_o false_a ground_n thereof_o namely_o because_o mind_n spirit_n and_o substance_n in_o their_o proper_a signification_n be_v absolute_a but_o person_n in_o its_o proper_a signification_n be_v a_o relative_a term_n because_o king_n william_n be_v king_n of_o england_n scotland_n and_o ireland_n must_v we_o argue_v that_o since_o a_o king_n be_v a_o man_n a_o animal_n a_o substance_n therefore_o because_o of_o three_o distinct_a substantial_a kingdom_n he_o be_v three_o distinct_a man_n three_o distinct_a animal_n and_o three_o distinct_a substance_n not_o so_o because_o man_n animal_n and_o substance_n be_v term_n absolute_a but_o king_n be_v relative_a suppose_v as_o one_o say_v before_o and_o to_o the_o purpose_n a_o man_n be_v dean_n of_o paul_n of_o westminster_n and_o of_o windsor_n shall_v we_o thence_o conclude_v that_o since_o a_o dean_n be_v a_o man_n a_o animal_n a_o substance_n therefore_o because_o of_o three_o distinct_a deanery_n he_o be_v three_o distinct_a substance_n i_o think_v not_o because_o man_n animal_n substance_n be_v term_n absolute_a but_o dean_n be_v relative_a it_o be_v very_o sad_a now_o to_o see_v the_o blasphemous_a heresy_n of_o the_o threetheite_n or_o of_o three_o god_n revive_v among_o we_o by_o such_o as_o may_v do_v better_a in_o every_o well-ordered_a christian_a state_n idolatry_n and_o blasphemy_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v tolerate_v but_o severe_o punish_v i_o know_v there_o be_v certain_a term_n to_o be_v explain_v in_o the_o discussion_n of_o these_o controversy_n especial_o in_o the_o school_n as_o may_v be_v essence_n existence_n subsistence_n substance_n individuum_fw-la suppositum_fw-la hypostasis_fw-la or_o person_n wherein_o they_o agree_v and_o wherein_o they_o differ_v but_o i_o conceive_v they_o who_o write_v for_o a_o public_a good_a and_o will_v make_v these_o point_n intelligible_a to_o most_o if_o not_o to_o all_o reader_n may_v well_o avoid_v too_o far_o engage_v in_o metaphysical_a notion_n i_o humble_o conceive_v it_o be_v better_a because_o more_o profitablen_a in_o a_o theological_a way_n to_o write_v and_o explain_v that_o which_o be_v most_o necessary_a to_o be_v understand_v according_a to_o the_o pattern_n of_o scripture_n and_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o orthodox_n primitive_a church_n and_o of_o its_o doctor_n against_o heretic_n as_o we_o have_v it_o in_o the_o three_o creed_n which_o be_v a_o production_n of_o their_o universal_a consent_n but_o for_o some_o man_n herein_o thus_o far_o to_o indulge_v their_o fancy_n as_o to_o let_v it_o spatiate_v as_o much_o as_o it_o will_v and_o give_v it_o a_o full_a latitude_n to_o wander_v and_o then_o express_v itself_o in_o such_o term_n as_o one_o of_o a_o hundred_o thousand_o can_v hardly_o understand_v the_o meaning_n thereof_o nay_o upon_o reasonable_a ground_n it_o may_v be_v doubt_v whether_o the_o author_n do_v well_o understand_v they_o this_o be_v only_o to_o intricate_a the_o matter_n to_o puzzle_v the_o reader_n and_o that_o which_o be_v worse_o to_o want_v a_o due_a respect_n for_o the_o majesty_n of_o god_n who_o mystery_n ought_v to_o be_v handle_v with_o a_o awful_a reverence_n no_o man_n may_v presume_v to_o know_v of_o he_o beyond_o what_o he_o have_v be_v please_v to_o reveal_v himself_o for_o if_o we_o can_v well_v and_o perfect_o know_v thing_n create_v much_o less_o the_o creator_n neither_o can_v the_o less_o comprehend_v the_o great_a and_o if_o 11.33_o if_o rom._n 11.33_o god_n judgement_n be_v past_o find_v out_o much_o more_o be_v he_o himself_o beside_o that_o this_o way_n of_o thus_o manage_v these_o matter_n do_v much_o prejudice_n the_o cause_n and_o give_v the_o adversary_n thereof_o ground_n to_o say_v of_o we_o they_o can_v among_o themselves_o agree_v how_o to_o defend_v it_o chap._n ii_o of_o divine_a essence_n heretic_n dispute_v against_o the_o word_n essence_n trinity_n and_o person_n use_v in_o the_o primitive_a church_n but_o sound_a faith_n contend_v not_o about_o word_n when_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o thing_n be_v agree_v upon_o trinity_n be_v the_o abstract_n whereof_o three_o be_v the_o concrete_a express_v 1_o john_n 5.7_o as_o that_o of_o jehovah_n and_o lord_n signify_v the_o essence_n render_v by_o he_o 1.8_o he_o revel_v 1.8_o which_o be_v
they_o come_v this_o be_v the_o rational_a man_n who_o will_v dive_v too_o far_o the_o apostle_n for_o his_o pain_n call_v he_o a_o fool_n thou_o fool_n that_o which_o thou_o sowe_v be_v not_o quicken_v except_o it_o die_v so_o in_o matter_n of_o god_n decree_n thou_o will_v then_o say_v unto_o i_o why_o do_v he_o yet_o find_v fault_n the_o apostle_n answer_n be_v 20._o be_v rom._n 9.19_o 20._o nay_o but_o o_o man_n who_o be_v thou_o that_o reply_v against_o god_n this_o be_v to_o curb_v that_o idle_a and_o presumptuous_a curiosity_n of_o vain_a and_o foolish_a man_n who_o work_v their_o shallow_a brain_n to_o find_v out_o thing_n which_o can_v be_v know_v no_o otherwise_o than_o by_o revelation_n wherefore_o let_v we_o stick_v to_o that_o rule_n about_o the_o holy_a trinity_n we_o can_v and_o must_v know_v no_o more_o than_o be_v reveal_v in_o scripture_n and_o herein_o we_o must_v follow_v the_o example_n of_o the_o doctor_n of_o the_o pure_a primitive_a church_n who_o borrow_v no_o argument_n of_o philosophy_n against_o the_o heretic_n that_o trouble_v they_o but_o only_o out_o of_o scripture_n the_o more_o because_o in_o matter_n of_o so_o great_a a_o concernment_n as_o be_v the_o mystery_n of_o the_o trinity_n and_o incarnation_n the_o devil_n have_v use_v his_o strong_a battery_n but_o he_o that_o trust_v to_o his_o own_o reason_n will_v fall_v short_a of_o the_o necessary_a knowledge_n thereof_o and_o in_o this_o case_n i_o may_v say_v what_o be_v speak_v in_o another_o that_o if_o man_n have_v be_v satisfy_v to_o make_v use_n only_o of_o their_o own_o eye_n without_o any_o other_o help_n they_o can_v never_o have_v find_v out_o the_o magnitude_n of_o the_o sun_n etc._n etc._n if_o so_o in_o the_o secret_n of_o nature_n much_o less_o in_o thing_n of_o divine_a concernment_n and_o of_o deity_n itself_o in_o human_a and_o finite_a thing_n we_o conceive_v well_o enough_o how_o in_o the_o same_o nature_n be_v many_o person_n to_o who_o it_o be_v communicate_v but_o that_o that_o nature_n be_v but_o one_o and_o the_o same_o and_o that_o so_o many_o individual_n make_v but_o one_o man_n in_o the_o kind_n no_o mind_n can_v conceive_v but_o in_o man_n the_o reason_n of_o the_o multiplication_n be_v in_o the_o finite_a individual_n which_o be_v not_o only_o distinct_a one_o from_o another_o but_o also_o have_v their_o several_a bound_n and_o that_o universal_a nature_n be_v as_o if_o it_o be_v rent_v into_o so_o many_o part_n but_o as_o god_n be_v infinite_a the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n be_v infinite_a the_o infinite_a can_v so_o much_o as_o in_o thought_n be_v separate_v wherefore_o it_o must_v not_o be_v think_v a_o absurdity_n if_o in_o divine_a thing_n there_o be_v no_o multiplicity_n of_o god_n as_o there_o be_v of_o man_n in_o human_a nature_n but_o still_o after_o this_o reason_n i_o return_v within_o the_o circle_n to_o consult_v scripture_n more_o than_o to_o stretch_v our_o reason_n with_o job_n let_v we_o say_v 9_o say_v job_n 11.7_o 8_o 9_o can_v thou_o by_o search_v find_v out_o god_n can_v thou_o find_v out_o the_o almighty_a unto_o perfection_n etc._n etc._n o_o 9_o o_o isai_n 55.8_o 9_o my_o thought_n be_v not_o your_o thought_n neither_o be_v your_o way_n my_o way_n say_v the_o lord_n every_o man_n may_v in_o this_o matter_n apply_v to_o himself_o what_o be_v say_v in_o the_o book_n of_o proverb_n 4._o proverb_n chap._n 30.2.3_o 4._o sure_o i_o be_o more_o brutish_a than_o any_o man_n and_o have_v not_o the_o understanding_n of_o a_o man_n i_o neither_o learned_a wisdom_n nor_o have_v the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o holy_a who_o have_v ascend_v up_o into_o heaven_n or_o descend_v who_o have_v gather_v the_o wind_n in_o his_o fist_n who_o have_v bind_v the_o water_n in_o a_o garment_n who_o have_v establish_v all_o the_o end_n of_o the_o earth_n what_o be_v his_o name_n and_o what_o be_v his_o son_n name_n if_o thou_o can_v tell_v this_o be_v by_o way_n of_o defiance_n in_o this_o controversy_n three_o several_a thing_n be_v to_o be_v take_v notice_n of_o first_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o thing_n namely_o that_o there_o be_v a_o god_n but_o one_o god_n and_o three_o person_n father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n which_o to_o hold_v be_v necessary_a to_o our_o faith_n second_o the_o explanation_n thereof_o relate_v to_o the_o doctrine_n which_o we_o already_o have_v say_v several_a thing_n about_o whereunto_o we_o now_o shall_v in_o part_n repeat_v and_o in_o part_n add_v these_o few_o thing_n divine_a essence_n communicable_a to_o three_o person_n be_v neither_o multiply_v nor_o divide_v as_o it_o be_v in_o man_n and_o angel_n for_o though_o their_o nature_n be_v but_o one_o and_o the_o same_o in_o species_n yet_o it_o be_v different_a in_o number_n but_o in_o the_o deity_n not_o so_o for_o the_o same_o nature_n in_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n be_v but_o one_o and_o the_o same_o in_o number_n in_o the_o person_n be_v a_o order_n of_o origine_fw-la according_a to_o which_o proceed_v not_o essence_n from_o essence_n absolute_o consider_v nor_o person_n from_o essence_n nor_o one_o god_n from_o another_o god_n but_o one_o person_n from_o another_o person_n and_o from_o other_o person_n very_a god_n of_o very_a god_n for_o the_o three_o person_n be_v one_o god_n and_o every_o person_n be_v perfect_a god_n in_o every_o person_n be_v to_o be_v consider_v the_o common_a and_o the_o proper_a mode_n in_o god_n we_o may_v not_o conceive_v any_o thing_n beside_o one_o essence_n and_o three_o modes_n whereby_o with_o the_o essence_n be_v constitute_v three_o person_n in_o these_o person_n one_o be_v not_o before_o or_o after_o the_o other_o only_o in_o order_n and_o manner_n of_o subsist_v whatsoever_o be_v essential_a be_v common_a to_o the_o three_o and_o what_o be_v personal_a be_v proper_a to_o every_o one_o of_o the_o three_o the_o mode_n or_o personality_n be_v the_o abstract_n but_o the_o mode_n with_o the_o nature_n be_v the_o concrete_a here_o be_v no_o accident_n no_o genus_fw-la no_o species_n no_o difference_n no_o specific_a unity_n in_o god_n but_o a_o essential_a and_o individual_a nature_n the_o difference_n of_o hypostasis_n or_o person_n in_o divine_a nature_n be_v from_o the_o different_a relation_n and_o manner_n of_o subsistence_n which_o can_v be_v confound_v there_o be_v essential_a and_o relative_a property_n the_o first_o belong_v to_o every_o person_n because_o every_o person_n have_v the_o same_o nature_n but_o not_o the_o second_o whereby_o they_o be_v distinguish_v one_o from_o another_o the_o son_n be_v not_o the_o father_n nor_o the_o father_n the_o son_n this_o also_o be_v to_o be_v take_v notice_n of_o that_o a_o finite_a nature_n be_v capable_a of_o division_n which_o a_o infinite_a be_v not_o or_o else_o it_o be_v not_o infinite_a therefore_o in_o this_o god_n nature_n admit_v of_o no_o comparison_n with_o any_o create_a one_o whatsoever_o the_o three_o thing_n to_o be_v observe_v in_o this_o controversy_n be_v the_o proof_n not_o to_o be_v take_v out_o of_o nature_n or_o reason_n but_o out_o of_o scripture_n of_o both_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n and_o herein_o we_o must_v be_v very_o cautious_a how_o we_o draw_v and_o press_v consequence_n from_o the_o creature_n to_o the_o creator_n because_o there_o be_v a_o infinite_a disparity_n and_o disproportion_n between_o they_o as_o there_o be_v between_o a_o finite_a and_o a_o infinite_a nature_n this_o last_o fill_v all_o when_o the_o other_o be_v confine_v within_o narrow_a bound_n for_o the_o infinite_a as_o we_o say_v be_v communicate_v be_v neither_o divide_v multiply_v nor_o alienate_v scripture_n call_v god_n the_o true_a god_n god_n own_o and_o proper_a son_n yet_o socinian_n have_v rather_o in_o the_o christian_a religion_n to_o admit_v two_o god_n whereof_o one_o be_v a_o make_v feign_a titular_a god_n than_o a_o plurality_n of_o person_n in_o the_o unity_n of_o essence_n which_o opinion_n of_o they_o be_v real_o more_o absurd_a than_o they_o will_v have_v the_o truth_n we_o own_v to_o seem_v to_o be_v because_o it_o do_v quite_o destroy_v divine_a nature_n for_o a_o make_v and_o secondary_a god_n be_v absurd_a and_o a_o mere_a contradiction_n as_o good_a as_o to_o say_v god_n no_o god_n this_o be_v a_o notion_n borrow_v from_o the_o heathen_n who_o have_v their_o semigod_n that_o be_v man_n who_o in_o their_o life-time_n have_v do_v some_o great_a action_n be_v after_o their_o death_n by_o apotheosis_n deify_v and_o reckon_v among_o their_o god_n according_a to_o this_o fancy_n our_o saviour_n may_v be_v such_o a_o hero_n and_o god_n as_o their_o hercules_n be_v this_o be_v their_o good_a christian_a doctrine_n the_o ground_n of_o their_o error_n be_v that_o they_o think_v the_o number_n of_o person_n do_v multiply_v the_o
sure_o no_o man_n that_o have_v any_o regard_n to_o god_n can_v say_v or_o think_v that_o in_o so_o serious_a a_o matter_n god_n speak_v to_o nothing_o if_o to_o some_o then_o either_o to_o angel_n or_o to_o some_o other_o creature_n not_o to_o angel_n for_o they_o be_v not_o of_o god_n council_n nor_o to_o any_o other_o of_o the_o creature_n which_o have_v neither_o soul_n nor_o reason_n and_o the_o next_o verse_n do_v decide_v the_o thing_n 27._o thing_n verse_n 27._o so_o god_n create_v man_n in_o his_o own_o image_n in_o the_o image_n of_o god_n create_v he_o he_o and_o not_o after_o the_o image_n of_o angel_n or_o of_o any_o other_o creature_n neither_o do_v god_n speak_v to_o the_o soul_n for_o as_o yet_o they_o be_v not_o create_v to_o what_o i_o say_v of_o angel_n i_o shall_v add_v that_o this_o can_v not_o be_v speak_v to_o they_o for_o they_o neither_o principal_o or_o instrumental_o have_v any_o hand_n in_o the_o creation_n of_o man_n for_o they_o can_v not_o the_o work_n of_o creation_n require_v a_o infinite_a power_n but_o it_o must_v be_v to_o the_o other_o person_n of_o the_o most_o holy_a trinity_n the_o word_n and_o the_o spirit_n as_o to_o the_o enallage_n or_o that_o manner_n of_o speak_v in_o the_o plural_a for_o greatness_n sake_n we_o own_v it_o have_v place_n in_o some_o language_n but_o we_o deny_v it_o ever_o be_v in_o the_o hebrew_n tongue_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n no_o man_n no_o person_n in_o authority_n no_o priest_n no_o judge_n no_o king_n ever_o speak_v of_o himself_o in_o the_o plural_a number_n well_o have_v the_o prophet_n say_v 13.7_o say_v isai_n 40.12_o 13.7_o who_o have_v direct_v the_o spirit_n of_o the_o lord_n or_o be_v his_o counsellor_n have_v teach_v he_o but_o for_o any_o one_o grotius_n not_o except_v to_o say_v that_o the_o plural_a number_n be_v use_v for_o greatness_n or_o majesty_n sake_n be_v certain_o to_o prevaricate_v in_o the_o cause_n of_o god_n for_o as_o it_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o idiom_n of_o the_o hebrew_n tongue_n so_o to_o the_o practice_n of_o all_o those_o former_a time_n and_o it_o be_v but_o a_o modern_a use_n and_o invention_n which_o so_o support_n some_o man_n contrary_a to_o all_o true_a reason_n have_v forge_v in_o their_o imagination_n beside_o that_o in_o these_o latter_a time_n wherein_o the_o use_n have_v be_v introduce_v no_o emperor_n king_n or_o prince_n in_o any_o language_n use_v his_o proper_a name_n or_o appellative_a in_o the_o plural_a number_n we_o leopold_v williams_n henrys_n emperor_n king_n etc._n etc._n but_o always_o in_o the_o singular_a leopold_n william_n emperor_n king_n well_o though_o no_o man_n of_o what_o rank_n soever_o speak_v after_o that_o way_n we_o find_v god_n have_v in_o other_o place_n as_o after_o adam_n sin_n 3.22_o sin_n gen._n 3.22_o behold_v the_o man_n be_v become_v as_o one_o of_o we_o not_o as_o i_o but_o one_o of_o we_o then_o there_o be_v more_o than_o one_o person_n for_o god_n speak_v of_o himself_o of_o the_o deity_n not_o of_o angel_n who_o he_o make_v no_o comparison_n with_o when_o in_o the_o transfiguration_n the_o voice_n come_v from_o heaven_n say_v 8._o say_v mat._n 17.5_o 8._o this_o be_v my_o belove_a son_n in_o who_o i_o be_o well_o please_v it_o be_v observable_a the_o apostle_n see_v no_o man_n save_o jesus_n only_o that_o it_o may_v appear_v it_o be_v not_o speak_v of_o moses_n or_o elias_n but_o only_o of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n another_o place_n there_o be_v also_o to_o the_o same_o purpose_n where_o upon_o the_o occasion_n of_o the_o build_n of_o the_o tower_n of_o babel_n 7._o babel_n gen._n 11.6_o 7._o the_o lord_n say_v let_v we_o go_v down_o and_o there_o confound_v their_o language_n it_o be_v not_o say_v i_o will_v but_o let_v we_o go_v ●●wn_v in_o the_o plural_a number_n as_o speak_v of_o many_o which_o may_v not_o be_v understand_v of_o the_o nature_n which_o be_v most_o singular_o one_o but_o of_o the_o person_n socinian_o say_v to_o this_o that_o though_o out_o of_o this_o we_o can_v prove_v plurality_n yet_o we_o must_v not_o conclude_v for_o a_o trinity_n but_o the_o cavil_v be_v vain_a for_o it_o be_v enough_o that_o the_o name_n of_o god_n be_v in_o scripture_n attribute_v only_o to_o three_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n to_o infer_v a_o trinity_n and_o it_o be_v well_o know_v how_o three_o be_v the_o first_o number_n of_o the_o plural_a hence_o hebrew_n and_o greek_n do_v distinguish_v the_o plural_a number_n from_o the_o dual_a neither_o do_v we_o read_v of_o any_o more_o term_n or_o word_n than_o two_o of_o divine_a emanation_n namely_o of_o the_o son_n by_o generation_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n by_o procession_n our_o second_o kind_n of_o argument_n consist_v of_o those_o text_n of_o scripture_n which_o do_v express_o declare_v a_o trinity_n as_o be_v that_o when_o our_o bless_a saviour_n send_v his_o apostle_n to_o 28.19_o to_o mat._n 28.19_o baptize_v the_o nation_n in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n and_o of_o the_o son_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n hence_o the_o son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n be_v prove_v to_o be_v person_n because_o we_o be_v distinct_o baptize_v in_o their_o name_n to_o baptise_v in_o one_o name_n be_v to_o make_v he_o disciple_n or_o initiate_v and_o bring_v he_o under_o the_o discipline_n of_o he_o in_o who_o name_n he_o be_v baptize_v now_o if_o the_o father_n in_o who_o name_n we_o be_v baptize_v be_v a_o person_n so_o must_v the_o son_n so_o must_v the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v because_o in_o every_o circumstance_n we_o be_v baptize_v in_o their_o name_n as_o well_o as_o in_o the_o father_n and_o observe_v it_o be_v not_o say_v in_o the_o name_n of_o god_n whereby_o the_o essence_n only_o may_v absolute_o be_v take_v but_o of_o the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n to_o show_v that_o relative_a equality_n which_o be_v between_o the_o person_n that_o have_v but_o one_o and_o the_o same_o nature_n in_o this_o text_n our_o bless_a saviour_n with_o his_o own_o mouth_n declare_v the_o trinity_n another_o place_n very_o plain_a and_o positive_a to_o our_o purpose_n be_v this_o 5.7_o this_o 1_o john_n 5.7_o there_o be_v three_o that_o bear_v record_n in_o heaven_n the_o father_n the_o word_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o these_o three_o be_v one_o here_o the_o trinity_n of_o person_n and_o unity_n of_o essence_n be_v so_o clear_a that_o the_o adversary_n have_v nothing_o to_o say_v but_o first_o to_o call_v in_o question_n the_o verse_n as_o if_o it_o have_v be_v insert_v because_o it_o be_v not_o in_o some_o greek_a copy_n out_o of_o which_o the_o enemy_n of_o the_o truth_n do_v former_o take_v it_o away_o but_o we_o have_v it_o in_o so_o many_o other_o even_o before_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a in_o cyprian_n time_n that_o there_o be_v no_o just_a ground_n leave_v to_o doubt_v of_o its_o be_v true_a and_o authentic_a which_o place_n be_v by_o athanasius_n make_v use_v of_o against_o arrius_n in_o this_o text_n the_o apostle_n do_v treat_v of_o confess_v and_o believe_v jesus_n christ_n to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n which_o he_o to_o confirm_v do_v bring_v in_o the_o article_n of_o the_o holy_a trinity_n whereof_o he_o be_v the_o second_o person_n and_o to_o any_o one_o that_o do_v serious_o consider_v the_o sense_n and_o scope_n of_o the_o place_n it_o will_v appear_v how_o without_o that_o verse_n there_o will_v be_v a_o breach_n in_o that_o part_n of_o the_o chapter_n to_o bear_v a_o proportion_n of_o three_o that_o bear_v witness_n in_o heaven_n with_o the_o three_o that_o bear_v it_o on_o earth_n their_o next_o cavil_v upon_o this_o place_n be_v upon_o the_o latter_a part_n of_o the_o verse_n and_o these_o three_o be_v one_o that_o be_v say_v they_o not_o in_o nature_n but_o in_o mind_n and_o consent_n which_o be_v as_o absurd_a as_o if_o one_o will_v say_v when_o scripture_n affirm_v 12.29_o affirm_v deut._n 6_o 4._o mark_v 12.29_o o_o israel_n the_o lord_n our_o god_n be_v one_o lord_n the_o meaning_n be_v only_o the_o consent_n of_o many_o will_n but_o do_v not_o this_o oneness_n of_o will_v argue_v a_o unity_n of_o essence_n for_o how_o can_v there_o natural_o and_o essential_o be_v one_o will_n and_o consent_n if_o there_o be_v not_o one_o essence_n and_o nature_n how_o can_v it_o essential_o be_v one_o will_n if_o there_o be_v not_o one_o but_o many_o divine_a nature_n rather_o there_o shall_v be_v many_o different_a god_n who_o different_a will_n shall_v oppose_v one_o another_o than_o the_o which_o nothing_o can_v be_v more_o absurd_a again_o either_o those_o person_n be_v finite_a or_o infinite_a if_o finite_a than_o they_o have_v not_o divine_a nature_n which_o be_v infinite_a if_o infinite_a than_o
of_o his_o servant_n of_o his_o elect_a in_o who_o his_o soul_n delight_v whereby_o none_o may_v deny_v the_o lord_n jesus_n to_o be_v understand_v and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n or_o spirit_n nothing_o better_a than_o this_o can_v quadrate_n with_o the_o history_n of_o our_o saviour_n baptism_n 3.16_o baptism_n matth._n 3.16_o and_o in_o another_o place_n of_o the_o same_o prophet_n 6.3_o prophet_n i●al_n 6.3_o when_o he_o see_v the_o vision_n and_o hear_v that_o trisagion_n or_o holy_a holy_a holy_a which_o long_o after_o be_v also_o hear_v by_o john_n 8._o john_n rev._n 4_o 8._o that_o threefold_a repetition_n of_o god_n name_n compare_v with_o the_o proper_a hypothesis_n of_o the_o ancient_a jew_n '_o that_o it_o signify_v three_o thing_n in_o god_n be_v adapt_v to_o the_o trinity_n of_o person_n in_o s._n john_n vision_n we_o have_v some_o enlargement_n as_o to_o the_o lord_n jesus_n represent_v by_o the_o lamb_n for_o the_o same_o twenty_o four_o elder_n and_o four_o beast_n 13._o beast_n rev._n 5.8_o 9_o 13._o fall_v down_o before_o the_o lamb_n and_o sing_v a_o new_a song_n and_o every_o creature_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n and_o on_o the_o earth_n and_o under_o the_o earth_n and_o such_o as_o be_v in_o the_o sea_n pay_v the_o same_o worship_n to_o the_o lamb_n as_o to_o he_o that_o sit_v on_o the_o throne_n again_o the_o same_o prophet_n 61.1_o prophet_n isai_n 61.1_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v upon_o i_o for_o he_o have_v anoint_v i_o this_o to_o be_v understand_v of_o christ_n as_o apply_v luke_n 4.18_o and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n by_o the_o anoint_v for_o he_o be_v anoint_v with_o the_o oil_n of_o gladness_n that_o be_v the_o grace_n of_o the_o spirit_n these_o three_o be_v also_o to_o be_v read_v among_o the_o last_o word_n of_o david_n 23.2_o david_n 2_o sam._n 23.2_o say_v the_o spirit_n of_o the_o lord_n speak_v by_o i_o and_o the_o word_n be_v in_o my_o tongue_n here_o be_v the_o lord_n the_o word_n and_o the_o spirit_n to_o the_o same_o purpose_n speak_v another_o prophet_n 2.5_o prophet_n hagg._n 2.5_o according_a to_o the_o word_n that_o i_o covenant_v with_o you_o when_o you_o come_v out_o of_o egypt_n so_o my_o spirit_n remain_v among_o you_o the_o father_n with_o the_o word_n his_o son_n and_o his_o spirit_n make_v a_o covenant_n with_o israel_n there_o be_v several_a other_o text_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n of_o the_o nature_n of_o one_o which_o i_o already_o make_v use_n of_o i_o mean_v of_o the_o thrice_o holy_a wherein_o the_o name_n of_o god_n or_o lord_n be_v thrice_o repeat_v i_o own_o i_o have_v such_o a_o persuasion_n of_o the_o infinite_a wisdom_n of_o god_n as_o to_o believe_v there_o be_v nothing_o at_o all_o in_o his_o word_n but_o what_o there_o be_v a_o particular_a reason_n for_o it_o to_o be_v in_o and_o in_o this_o belief_n of_o i_o i_o be_o confirm_v by_o what_o our_o bless_a saviour_n say_v in_o earnest_n and_o with_o a_o strong_a asseveration_n 5.18_o asseveration_n matt._n 5.18_o very_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o till_o heaven_n and_o earth_n pass_v one_o jot_n or_o one_o tittle_n shall_v in_o no_o wise_a pass_n from_o the_o law_n till_o all_o be_v fulfil_v and_o i_o be_o sufficient_o satisfy_v that_o though_o through_o the_o infirmity_n of_o our_o nature_n in_o the_o ignorance_n of_o our_o mind_n we_o can_v apprehend_v the_o cause_n of_o many_o thing_n in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n yet_o therein_o be_v nothing_o without_o a_o cause_n so_o out_o of_o that_o principle_n i_o dare_v say_v god_n mean_v something_o when_o in_o the_o blessing_n which_o he_o prescribe_v to_o be_v pronounce_v to_o the_o people_n the_o lord_n name_n be_v thrice_o in_o it_o thus_o 26._o thus_o numb_a 6.24_o 25_o 26._o the_o lord_n bless_v thou_o and_o keep_v thou_o the_o lord_n make_v his_o face_n shine_v upon_o thou_o and_o be_v gracious_a unto_o thou_o the_o lord_n lift_v up_o his_o countenance_n upon_o thou_o and_o give_v thou_o peace_n and_o when_o god_n speak_v unto_o moses_n he_o dictate_v what_o he_o be_v to_o speak_v to_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n when_o he_o be_v come_v to_o they_o in_o his_o name_n that_o be_v the_o lord_n god_n of_o your_o father_n one_o will_v have_v think_v this_o have_v be_v enough_o but_o no_o for_o he_o add_v 3.15_o add_v exod._n 3.15_o the_o god_n of_o abraham_n the_o god_n of_o isaac_n and_o the_o god_n of_o jacob_n it_o be_v the_o same_o god_n yet_o thrice_o name_v so_o when_o the_o law_n be_v give_v he_o say_v 20.5_o say_v exod._n 20.5_o i_o the_o lord_n thy_o god_n be_o a_o jealous_a god_n once_o lord_n and_o twice_o god_n which_o be_v the_o same_o so_o in_o another_o place_n the_o 3._o the_o psalm_n 136.1_o 2_o 3._o psalmist_n exhort_v thrice_o to_o give_v thanks_o to_o who_o unto_o the_o lord_n unto_o the_o god_n of_o god_n to_o the_o lord_n of_o lord_n one_o more_o i_o shall_v quote_v and_o it_o be_v this_o 33.22_o this_o isa_n 33.22_o the_o lord_n be_v our_o judge_n the_o lord_n be_v our_o lawgiver_n the_o lord_n be_v our_o king_n why_o thrice_o and_o no_o more_o sure_o god_n aim_v at_o something_o for_o as_o he_o do_v nothing_o so_o he_o say_v nothing_o in_o vain_a these_o thing_n be_v not_o in_o by_o chance_n and_o see_v with_o a_o full_a assurance_n i_o believe_v according_a to_o revelation_n a_o trinity_n of_o person_n in_o the_o divine_a nature_n why_o shall_v not_o i_o also_o believe_v that_o these_o thing_n relate_v to_o it_o now_o if_o one_o will_v serious_o attend_v upon_o these_o quote_v place_n and_o compare_v they_o with_o other_o of_o the_o same_o kind_n may_v be_v god_n will_v impart_v upon_o the_o matter_n great_a discovery_n than_o i_o for_o the_o present_a be_o able_a to_o give_v only_o this_o i_o shall_v add_v how_o the_o name_n jehovah_n call_v in_o greek_a tetragrammaton_fw-gr because_o it_o original_o consist_v only_o of_o four_o letter_n signify_v both_o god_n self-existence_n for_o the_o root_n whence_o it_o be_v derive_v do_v denote_v to_o be_v and_o also_o his_o eternity_n for_o it_o contain_v all_o time_n to_o come_v present_a and_o past_a one_o out_o of_o the_o two_o first_o letter_n draw_v the_o word_n beginning_n and_o to_o live_v and_o the_o three_o have_v a_o virtue_n of_o copulate_v or_o join_v together_o be_v for_o love_n whereby_o be_v denote_v the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o by_o the_o two_o before_o be_v father_n and_o son_n and_o because_o the_o second_o letter_n h_z be_v twice_o in_o he_o will_v have_v both_o nature_n in_o the_o second_o person_n of_o the_o most_o holy_a trinity_n to_o be_v mean_v though_o i_o have_v nothing_o to_o say_v against_o these_o mysterious_a interpretation_n which_o may_v be_v well_o ground_v yet_o we_o build_v not_o our_o main_a argument_n thereupon_o however_o know_v that_o essential_a and_o incommunicable_a holy_a name_n to_o confist_n of_o three_o different_a letter_n i_o can_v see_v nothing_o to_o hinder_v i_o from_o believe_v that_o that_o same_o nature_n be_v communicate_v to_o three_o person_n and_o as_o the_o same_o letter_n be_v twice_o in_o it_o do_v signify_v two_o nature_n in_o one_o person_n especial_o it_o fall_v upon_o the_o second_o letter_n relate_v to_o the_o second_o person_n of_o the_o most_o bless_a trinity_n and_o as_o god_n be_v the_o author_n of_o the_o name_n why_o may_v not_o he_o in_o his_o infinite_a wisdom_n therein_o denote_v some_o mystery_n this_o i_o take_v to_o be_v rational_a here_o i_o must_v not_o omit_v for_o proof_n of_o this_o great_a truth_n to_o bring_v in_o our_o creed_n call_v the_o apostolical_a as_o a_o evidence_n i_o meddle_v not_o with_o the_o other_o for_o the_o adversary_n will_v not_o own_v they_o though_o they_o ever_o be_v by_o better_a more_o learned_a more_o pious_a and_o sound_a in_o all_o age_n than_o they_o be_v or_o i_o doubt_v can_v be_v i_o know_v the_o world_n have_v afford_v some_o man_n who_o out_o of_o a_o vainglory_n and_o to_o seem_v to_o be_v something_o through_o a_o trial_n of_o their_o part_n have_v attempt_v to_o enervate_a with_o their_o criticism_n the_o strength_n and_o orthodoxy_n of_o these_o creed_n but_o as_o to_o this_o socinian_n themselves_o can_v except_v against_o it_o no_o more_o than_o they_o do_v against_o the_o write_a word_n of_o god_n whence_o this_o be_v extract_v father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n be_v all_o three_o name_v in_o the_o creed_n and_o as_o the_o word_n god_n be_v express_v when_o join_v with_o the_o father_n so_o it_o be_v understand_v of_o son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n thus_o i_o believe_v in_o god_n his_o only_o beget_v son_n and_o i_o believe_v in_o god_n the_o holy_a ghost_n for_o to_o they_o it_o also_o do_v belong_v and_o as_o there_o we_o profess_v to_o believe_v in_o that_o be_v to_o
sake_n i_o do_v but_o point_v at_o now_o when_o this_o name_n be_v absolute_o speak_v or_o reduplicative_o as_o 7.21_o as_o matth._n 7.21_o not_o every_o one_o that_o say_v unto_o i_o lord_n lord_n or_o with_o a_o emphasis_n as_o lord_n of_o lord_n in_o the_o forequote_v place_n of_o timothy_n or_o with_o a_o idiom_n and_o property_n as_o 135.5_o as_o psalm_n 135.5_o great_a lord_n or_o with_o a_o energy_n as_o 4.11_o as_o rev._n 4.11_o thou_o be_v worthy_a o_o lord_n to_o receive_v glory_n and_o honour_n and_o power_n whereby_o the_o worship_n due_a to_o he_o be_v express_v it_o proper_o belong_v to_o god_n alone_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n it_o be_v most_o appropriate_v to_o our_o bless_a saviour_n which_o he_o own_v as_o the_o forequote_v text_n not_o every_o one_o that_o say_v unto_o i_o lord_n lord_n and_o when_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n when_o the_o son_n of_o man_n shall_v come_v in_o his_o glory_n 25.44_o glory_n matth._n 25.44_o they_o will_v say_v lord_n when_o see_v we_o thou_o a_o hunger_a and_o about_o the_o time_n of_o his_o wash_n of_o his_o disciple_n foot_n he_o say_v 13.13_o say_v joh._n 13.13_o you_o call_v i_o master_n and_o lord_n and_o you_o say_v well_o for_o so_o i_o be_o when_o after_o his_o resurrection_n he_o appear_v john_n say_v to_o peter_n it_o be_v the_o lord_n john_n 21.7_o that_o be_v the_o usual_a name_n which_o the_o apostle_n in_o their_o write_n do_v call_v he_o by_o it_o be_v observable_a how_o after_o his_o ascension_n there_o be_v two_o thing_n peculiar_o call_v by_o the_o lord_n name_n that_o be_v the_o 10.21_o the_o 1_o cor._n 10.21_o lord's-table_n and_o the_o 1.10_o the_o rev._n 1.10_o lord's-day_n now_o we_o must_v come_v to_o another_o thing_n and_o show_v how_o the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o god_n be_v in_o scripture_n in_o a_o true_a and_o proper_a sense_n give_v to_o jesus_n christ_n god._n four_o god._n but_o something_o must_v be_v premise_v before_o we_o come_v to_o the_o point_n in_o the_o question_n what_o god_n be_v we_o must_v distinguish_v either_o absolute_o or_o relative_o that_o be_v consider_v either_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d essential_o or_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d personal_o the_o one_o relate_v to_o the_o nature_n and_o essential_a attribute_n the_o other_o to_o the_o person_n of_o the_o most_o holy_a trinity_n and_o to_o their_o attribute_n here_o we_o assert_v two_o thing_n against_o socinian_o first_o the_o name_n of_o god_n with_o attribute_n be_v not_o a_o name_n of_o office_n as_o emperor_n king_n consul_n judge_n etc._n etc._n but_o of_o essence_n and_o nature_n as_o be_v the_o name_n spirit_n man_z lion_n etc._n etc._n second_o the_o name_n god_n in_o its_o first_o and_o proper_a signification_n be_v not_o appellative_a but_o proper_a for_o it_o signify_v a_o essence_n of_o a_o most_o singular_a nature_n though_o we_o know_v it_o to_o be_v also_o improper_o use_v and_o abuse_v as_o the_o idol_n of_o the_o ammonite_n and_o of_o several_a other_o nation_n be_v call_v their_o god_n but_o there_o be_v with_o it_o such_o circumstance_n as_o make_v we_o easy_o know_v the_o difference_n common_o there_o be_v such_o epithet_n when_o the_o true_a god_n be_v mention_v alone_o with_o it_o as_o the_o god_n of_o abraham_n isaac_n jacob_n israel_n one_o god_n true_a god_n eternal_a life_n god_n bless_v for_o ever_o which_o leave_v no_o doubt_n that_o the_o true_a god_n by_o nature_n be_v speak_v of_o the_o word_n god_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n do_v proper_o first_o and_o chief_o signify_v the_o true_a god_n and_o such_o by_o nature_n but_o secondary_o and_o improper_o those_o that_o be_v in_o high_a place_n of_o office_n and_o power_n which_o sense_n socinian_n will_v restrain_v it_o to_o when_o it_o be_v speak_v of_o our_o bless_a saviour_n but_o it_o be_v speak_v of_o he_o not_o only_o attributive_o but_o subjective_o as_o it_o be_v in_o that_o place_n when_o 4.8_o when_o ●al_a 4.8_o you_o know_v not_o god_n you_o do_v service_n unto_o they_o which_o by_o nature_n be_v not_o god_n for_o if_o there_o that_o name_n have_v be_v of_o office_n and_o dignity_n the_o galatian_n may_v have_v excuse_v themselves_o that_o they_o do_v serve_v those_o that_o be_v god_n by_o dignity_n and_o place_n though_o not_o by_o nature_n but_o the_o apostle_n reprove_v they_o for_o it_o so_o though_o they_o be_v call_v god_n yet_o if_o they_o be_v not_o such_o by_o nature_n they_o be_v no_o god_n according_a to_o what_o the_o lord_n say_v by_o the_o prophet_n 2.11_o prophet_n jerem._n 2.11_o have_v a_o nation_n change_v their_o god_n which_o yet_o be_v no_o god_n the_o reason_n be_v by_o the_o same_o give_v elsewhere_o because_o 16.20_o because_o chap._n 16.20_o man_n make_v they_o god_n unto_o himself_o the_o proper_a character_n which_o another_o prophet_n give_v of_o the_o true_a god_n be_v he_o 43.10_o he_o isa_n 43.10_o before_o who_o there_o be_v no_o god_n form_v neither_o shall_v there_o be_v after_o he_o for_o be_v of_o himself_o he_o have_v no_o beginning_n and_o shall_v have_v no_o end_n such_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n the_o saviour_n of_o the_o world_n before_o who_o there_o be_v no_o god_n form_v upon_o which_o account_n he_o be_v by_o the_o prophet_n call_v the_o ancient_a of_o day_n 7.22_o dan._n 7.22_o neither_o shall_v there_o be_v after_o he_o thus_o he_o must_v needs_o be_v such_o by_o nature_n and_o every_o one_o know_v that_o neither_o angel_n nor_o magistrate_n be_v god_n because_o not_o such_o by_o nature_n as_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n which_o by_o god_n grace_n we_o shall_v demonstrate_v and_o neither_o the_o galatian_n nor_o none_o of_o the_o gentile_n can_v well_o know_v god_n and_o as_o he_o ought_v to_o be_v till_o god_n be_v manifest_a in_o the_o flesh_n when_o this_o second_o person_n of_o the_o godhead_n take_v human_a nature_n in_o the_o virgin_n be_v womb._n the_o word_n god_n be_v either_o first_o and_o proper_o speak_v of_o the_o true_a eternal_a god_n or_o of_o the_o creature_n if_o of_o the_o creature_n than_o the_o creature_n shall_v proper_o be_v call_v and_o proper_o be_v god_n which_o be_v blasphemy_n but_o if_o it_o be_v speak_v of_o the_o high_a true_a and_o eternal_a god_n than_o it_o must_v signify_v his_o essence_n and_o nature_n see_v god_n be_v such_o from_o all_o eternity_n through_o the_o perfection_n of_o his_o nature_n not_o upon_o the_o account_n of_o any_o dignity_n or_o power_n different_a from_o his_o nature_n the_o name_n of_o god_n if_o absolute_a denote_v his_o nature_n and_o not_o any_o office_n but_o if_o it_o be_v relative_a and_o signify_v only_o a_o office_n then_o from_o eternity_n god_n be_v not_o god_n they_o will_v have_v the_o word_n god_n without_o a_o article_n as_o we_o observe_v of_o the_o word_n lord_n to_o signify_v those_o that_o be_v secondary_o such_o but_o with_o a_o article_n only_o the_o true_a god_n both_o which_o notion_n be_v false_a for_o first_o the_o true_a god_n be_v sometime_o denote_v without_o a_o article_n as_o joh._n 1.6.12.13.18_o so_o be_v the_o inscription_n of_o the_o 1.7_o the_o rom._n 1.7_o epistle_n to_o the_o roman_n and_o in_o other_o place_n so_o be_v the_o other_o notion_n false_a for_o the_o word_n god_n attribute_v to_o false_a god_n be_v sometime_o with_o the_o article_n as_o act._n 7.43_o and_o 2_o chron._n 4.4_o both_o which_o example_n be_v join_v together_o in_o the_o forequote_v place_n to_o the_o galatian_n so_o than_o the_o signification_n depend_v not_o upon_o the_o article_n but_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o subject_a but_o to_o leave_v off_o such_o criticism_n of_o the_o school_n and_o not_o to_o bestow_v our_o time_n upon_o word_n more_o than_o upon_o thing_n i_o say_v the_o word_n god_n be_v jesus_n christ_n proper_a name_n for_o god_n and_o christ_n be_v so_o unseparable_o unite_v that_o 2.12_o that_o ephes_n 2.12_o they_o that_o be_v without_o christ_n be_v also_o without_o god_n in_o the_o world_n so_o then_o the_o name_n god_n signify_v the_o essence_n or_o nature_n not_o bare_o the_o office_n and_o dignity_n for_o otherwise_o it_o will_v follow_v it_o shall_v belong_v to_o god_n only_o in_o relation_n to_o creature_n but_o it_o be_v most_o true_a it_o absolute_o belong_v to_o he_o for_o he_o be_v god_n before_o there_o be_v any_o creature_n now_o our_o god_n by_o nature_n be_v oppose_v to_o those_o that_o be_v only_o call_v so_o the_o apostle_n say_v 6._o say_v 1._o cor._n ●_o 5_o 6._o though_o there_o be_v that_o be_v call_v god_n many_o etc._n etc._n to_o we_o there_o be_v but_o one_o god_n and_o by_o the_o epithet_n true_a god_n be_v distinguish_v from_o they_o therefore_o when_o the_o word_n god_n be_v speak_v of_o the_o true_a god_n
it_o will_v follow_v that_o the_o person_n shall_v make_v several_a god_n different_a in_o number_n and_o nature_n second_o we_o say_v where_o the_o name_n of_o god_n be_v absolute_o use_v it_o do_v not_o always_o as_o the_o heretic_n will_v have_v it_o signify_v the_o name_n of_o one_o of_o the_o person_n but_o sometime_o the_o person_n and_o sometime_o the_o nature_n and_o herein_o lay_v their_o mistake_n that_o they_o suppose_v the_o name_n of_o god_n ever_o to_o be_v take_v personal_o and_o the_o comparison_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o mistake_n for_o the_o infinite_a essence_n be_v not_o multiply_v as_o the_o finite_a now_o when_o the_o name_n of_o god_n be_v take_v for_o the_o person_n either_o something_o be_v add_v which_o give_v a_o notion_n of_o the_o person_n as_o when_o god_n be_v say_v 20.28_o say_v act._n 20.28_o to_o have_v purchase_v the_o church_n with_o his_o own_o blood_n which_o be_v understand_v of_o the_o son_n or_o else_o the_o person_n be_v compare_v among_o themselves_o and_o then_o the_o name_n of_o god_n be_v take_v for_o the_o person_n of_o the_o father_n for_o because_o the_o father_n be_v the_o spring_n of_o the_o godhead_n in_o relation_n to_o the_o order_n and_o origin_n of_o the_o person_n so_o in_o the_o comparison_n of_o the_o person_n the_o name_n of_o god_n be_v by_o excellency_n attribute_v to_o the_o father_n especial_o where_o mention_n be_v make_v of_o the_o mediator_n for_o whensoever_o christ_n speak_v himself_o or_o be_v speak_v of_o as_o and_o in_o the_o person_n of_o the_o mediator_n he_o retain_v a_o middle_a degree_n between_o god_n and_o man_n and_o then_o by_o the_o name_n of_o god_n be_v understand_v the_o father_n three_o when_o the_o name_n of_o god_n be_v put_v instead_o of_o one_o person_n and_o it_o signify_v one_o father_n then_o be_v thereby_o understand_v the_o godhead_n which_o be_v common_a to_o son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n who_o be_v author_n and_o maker_n of_o all_o creature_n for_o though_o the_o son_n do_v exercise_v the_o office_n of_o mediator_n yet_o he_o have_v not_o thereby_o lose_v the_o glory_n of_o the_o divinity_n with_o the_o father_n neither_o be_v his_o essence_n inferior_a or_o secondary_a to_o the_o father_n or_o his_o godhead_n essentiate_v four_o when_o god_n name_n without_o any_o personal_a attribute_n or_o comparison_n of_o one_o person_n with_o the_o other_o be_v simple_o indefinite_o and_o absolute_o use_v than_o it_o signify_v the_o divine_a nature_n and_o essence_n which_o be_v father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n one_o god_n beside_o in_o these_o text_n of_o scripture_n where_o the_o name_n of_o god_n be_v mention_v in_o opposition_n to_o false_a god_n or_o creature_n it_o be_v by_o no_o mean_n to_o be_v restrain_v to_o the_o person_n of_o the_o father_n only_o but_o be_v indefinite_o speak_v of_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n as_o for_o instance_n if_o when_o the_o law_n command_v to_o adore_v one_o god_n the_o father_n alone_o and_o not_o the_o son_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v it_o will_v follow_v that_o the_o son_n who_o be_v to_o be_v adore_v be_v another_o god_n likewise_o when_o god_n call_v himself_o the_o god_n of_o israel_n he_o by_o this_o mark_n distinguish_v himself_o from_o all_o false_a god_n how_o then_o may_v it_o be_v say_v of_o one_o personal_a one_o whether_o father_n or_o son_n 7.22_o son_n 2_o sam._n 7.22_o who_o be_v great_a as_o thou_o be_v who_o be_v like_a unto_o thou_o for_o several_a of_o the_o arian_n who_o deny_v the_o consubstantiality_n or_o the_o sameness_n of_o nature_n yet_o own_v a_o likeness_n between_o father_n and_o son_n and_o in_o the_o prophet_n where_o god_n name_n be_v absolute_o take_v often_o it_o add_v a_o universal_a negative_a or_o exclusive_a but_o if_o the_o name_n of_o god_n belong_v only_o to_o the_o father_n and_o if_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n be_v but_o one_o god_n and_o saviour_n and_o one_o nature_n it_o will_v follow_v that_o son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n be_v exclude_v from_o thing_n attribute_v unto_o god_n for_o it_o be_v say_v of_o the_o true_a god_n of_o israel_n that_o he_o be_v the_o only_a god_n and_o saviour_n and_o that_o there_o be_v no_o other_o god_n beside_o and_o without_o he_o moreover_o see_v the_o father_n alone_o be_v one_o god_n and_o they_o own_o also_o the_o son_n to_o be_v god_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o be_v god_n though_o not_o that_o one_o god_n than_o it_o follow_v there_o be_v three_o god_n which_o be_v blasphemy_n these_o thing_n be_v premise_v do_v afford_v matter_n of_o answer_n to_o their_o sophistical_a cavil_n against_o this_o truth_n and_o so_o show_v how_o the_o word_n god_n absolute_o use_v in_o scripture_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v not_o only_o of_o the_o father_n but_o also_o of_o the_o son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n whence_o also_o appear_v the_o mystery_n of_o these_o doctrine_n one_o with_o another_o and_o they_o be_v so_o twist_v that_o they_o stand_v or_o fall_v together_o so_o no_o wonder_n if_o under_o one_o head_n we_o say_v something_n belong_v to_o and_o speak_v of_o in_o another_o here_o they_o form_n thus_o a_o argument_n against_o we_o the_o god_n of_o israel_n who_o the_o israelite_n ever_o adore_v be_v that_o one_o god_n who_o the_o law_n and_o the_o prophet_n speak_v of_o but_o the_o father_n of_o christ_n be_v that_o one_o god_n mention_v in_o the_o law_n and_o the_o prophet_n therefore_o he_o be_v that_o one_o god_n but_o the_o argument_n conclude_v nothing_o against_o we_o we_o altogether_o grant_v it_o the_o father_n be_v the_o one_o god_n of_o israel_n for_o we_o do_v not_o say_v that_o there_o be_v another_o god_n another_o nature_n in_o the_o father_n than_o that_o same_o which_o law_n and_o prophet_n call_v the_o only_a god_n and_o god_n alone_o and_o we_o on_o our_o part_n do_v argue_v thus_o the_o god_n of_o israel_n be_v one_o god_n but_o christ_n be_v the_o god_n of_o israel_n who_o appear_v to_o the_o father_n and_o by_o who_o spirit_n the_o prophet_n be_v inspire_v speak_v therefore_o christ_n be_v that_o only_a god_n for_o there_o be_v in_o christ_n no_o other_o godhead_n no_o other_o divine_a nature_n than_o what_o be_v in_o the_o father_n as_o the_o father_n be_v one_o so_o be_v the_o son_n one_o god_n and_o both_o together_o be_v one_o god_n in_o nature_n but_o if_o the_o meaning_n of_o their_o argument_n be_v that_o of_o the_o three_o person_n of_o the_o trinity_n only_o the_o father_n not_o the_o son_n nor_o holy_a ghost_n be_v the_o god_n of_o israel_n than_o we_o deny_v their_o minor_a proposition_n for_o out_o of_o scripture_n the_o son_n be_v the_o god_n of_o israel_n who_o they_o adore_v for_o not_o only_o under_o the_o name_n of_o god_n they_o adore_v the_o messiah_n who_o they_o believe_v to_o be_v god_n but_o even_o they_o make_v a_o distinct_a mention_n of_o he_o in_o their_o prayer_n as_o we_o read_v when_o jacob_n bless_v joseph_n child_n god_n before_o who_o my_o father_n abraham_n and_o isaac_n do_v walk_v the_o god_n which_o feed_v i_o all_o my_o life_n time_n to_o this_o day_n 3_o the_o angel_n which_o redeem_v i_o from_o all_o evil_a bless_v these_o lad_n and_o this_o be_v speak_v of_o the_o true_a ancient_a jew_n for_o as_o to_o those_o that_o believe_v not_o when_o our_o saviour_n himself_o speak_v to_o they_o who_o own_v only_o the_o father_n of_o christ_n the_o messiah_n for_o their_o god_n we_o may_v say_v they_o know_v not_o the_o true_a god_n in_o a_o true_a manner_n see_v 14.6_o see_v joh._n 14.6_o none_o come_v to_o the_o father_n but_o by_o the_o son_n and_o 11._o and_o mat._n 11._o none_o 〈◊〉_d the_o father_n but_o the_o son_n and_o he_o to_o who_o the_o son_n 〈◊〉_d veal_n he_o wherefore_o since_o they_o reject_v the_o son_n 〈◊〉_d want_v the_o true_a knowledge_n of_o the_o father_n and_o 〈◊〉_d stead_n of_o god_n the_o father_n they_o adore_v the_o idol_n 〈◊〉_d their_o own_o heart_n wherefore_o when_o jesus_n say_v to_o 〈◊〉_d 8.44_o 〈◊〉_d matt._n 8.44_o if_o i_o honour_v myself_o my_o glory_n be_v nothing_o it_o be_v my_o father_n that_o honour_v i_o who_o you_o say_v to_o be_v your_o god_n he_o upbraid_v they_o with_o their_o vainglory_n who_o boast_v to_o be_v the_o people_n of_o god_n but_o false_o by_o reason_n they_o own_v he_o not_o to_o be_v god_n in_o the_o mean_a while_n against_o their_o aspersion_n he_o assert_v his_o glory_n because_o they_o look_v upon_o he_o as_o very_o much_o below_o abraham_n and_o other_o patriarch_n he_o in_o his_o capacity_n of_o mediator_n and_o as_o a_o man_n own_v a_o difference_n between_o he_o and_o god_n who_o he_o declare_v to_o be_v the_o author_n of_o his_o glory_n and_o he_o often_o mention_v his_o father_n to_o the_o end_n
account_n to_o be_v call_v such_o a_o man_n son_n yet_o not_o be_v his_o proper_a son_n thus_o a_o adopt_a though_o he_o excel_v never_o so_o much_o above_o the_o rest_n yet_o that_o can_v never_o make_v he_o to_o be_v a_o proper_a son_n to_o refute_v some_o cavil_n of_o they_o one_o thing_n more_o we_o be_v again_o to_o take_v notice_n of_o upon_o this_o matter_n how_o the_o the_o word_n god_n be_v in_o scripture_n sometime_o take_v essential_o for_o the_o most_o holy_a trinity_n and_o sometime_o personal_o for_o one_o of_o the_o person_n as_o when_o it_o be_v say_v 20.28_o say_v act_n 20.28_o god_n have_v purchase_v his_o church_n with_o his_o own_o blood_n which_o be_v mean_v our_o saviour_n the_o second_o person_n of_o the_o godhead_n in_o the_o first_o sense_n must_v be_v understand_v those_o place_n of_o scripture_n wherein_o it_o be_v say_v the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v one_o and_o there_o be_v none_o beside_o he_o there_o be_v but_o one_o god_n and_o other_o to_o the_o same_o purpose_n to_o show_v the_o oneness_n of_o the_o nature_n which_o as_o well_o as_o they_o we_o do_v affirm_v but_o as_o to_o teach_v well_o one_o must_v distinguish_v well_o so_o for_o want_v of_o observe_v this_o rule_n that_o which_o be_v speak_v of_o the_o essence_n of_o god_n they_o misapply_v it_o to_o the_o person_n and_o so_o make_v a_o confusion_n between_o thing_n to_o be_v distinguish_v we_o already_o prove_v how_o the_o unity_n of_o nature_n do_v not_o take_v away_o the_o trinity_n of_o person_n nor_o the_o plurality_n of_o person_n destroy_v the_o unity_n of_o nature_n which_o mistake_v of_o they_o do_v also_o hold_v in_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o incarnation_n or_o of_o the_o word_n be_v make_v flesh_n and_o about_o our_o saviour_n person_n in_o who_o they_o confound_v the_o nature_n so_o that_o which_o be_v speak_v of_o his_o humanity_n they_o misapply_v to_o his_o divinity_n the_o second_o argument_n whereby_o christ_n be_v prove_v to_o be_v god_n natural_a son_n be_v draw_v from_o the_o word_n only_o beget_v which_o for_o great_a confirmation_n be_v attribute_v to_o christ_n in_o several_a 1.18_o several_a john_n 1.18_o place_n wherefore_o in_o scripture_n christ_n be_v call_v the_o son_n of_o god_n to_o show_v he_o be_v the_o only_o beget_v for_o that_o be_v the_o signification_n of_o the_o word_n and_o 5._o and_o heb._n 1.2_o vers_fw-la 5._o paul_n interpretation_n of_o it_o for_o he_o say_v such_o be_v the_o son_n to_o who_o only_o god_n say_v thou_o be_v my_o son_n this_o day_n have_v i_o beget_v thou_o and_o other_o place_n of_o scripture_n by_o the_o word_n god_n only_a beget_v son_n do_v all_o mean_a christ_n only_o the_o adversary_n will_v have_v he_o to_o be_v call_v so_o only_o in_o a_o special_a manner_n above_o the_o rest_n as_o we_o already_o have_v take_v notice_n of_o in_o the_o instance_n about_o isaac_n whereunto_o here_o we_o shall_v add_v that_o of_o solomon_n which_o also_o they_o make_v use_v of_o called_z say_v they_o 4.3_o they_o prov._n 4.3_o only_o beget_v in_o the_o sight_n of_o his_o mother_n but_o they_o must_v not_o go_v about_o to_o impose_v upon_o we_o for_o in_o the_o original_a the_o word_n beget_v be_v not_o in_o but_o only_o which_o in_o our_o bibles_n be_v according_a to_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o place_n explain_v by_o belove_a only_o belove_v one_o may_v be_v the_o only_a yet_o not_o only_o beget_v son_n when_o of_o many_o child_n one_o alone_o be_v remain_v and_o the_o rest_n be_v dead_a as_o to_o isaac_n we_o already_o observe_v he_o be_v the_o only_o beget_v in_o relation_n to_o sarab_n by_o promise_n but_o christ_n be_v so_o call_v god_n only_o beget_v son_n that_o it_o be_v never_o say_v to_o any_o one_o else_o thou_o be_v my_o son_n etc._n etc._n whence_o we_o may_v conclude_v he_o so_o to_o be_v god_n son_n as_o to_o be_v the_o only_o beget_v of_o he_o that_o be_v according_a to_o his_o nature_n in_o the_o word_n he_o be_v proper_o and_o absolute_o call_v the_o only_o beget_v 1.14_o beget_v john_n 1.14_o we_o behold_v his_o glory_n as_o of_o the_o only_o beget_v of_o the_o father_n the_o particle_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d as_o be_v not_o comparative_a as_o only_o denote_v a_o likeness_n but_o as_o chrysostomus_n observe_v well_o be_v expressive_a of_o the_o truth_n as_o be_v real_o as_o if_o one_o willing_a to_o describe_v a_o royal_a state_n and_o carriage_n of_o a_o king_n shall_v say_v as_o that_o be_v in_o a_o manner_n become_v and_o proper_a for_o a_o king_n and_o far_o the_o evangelist_n add_v v._o 18._o the_o only_o beget_v son_n which_o be_v in_o the_o besom_n of_o the_o father_n he_o have_v declare_v he_o where_o christ_n be_v call_v the_o only_o beget_v 〈◊〉_d it_o be_v his_o own_o proper_a name_n signify_v how_o beside_o he_o there_o be_v no_o true_a natural_a son_n of_o god_n again_o 3.16_o again_o john_n 3.16_o god_n so_o love_v the_o world_n that_o he_o give_v his_o only_a beget_v son_n and_z 4.9_o and_z 1_o john_n 4.9_o god_n send_v his_o only_o beget_v son_n into_o the_o world_n see_v what_o a_o care_n the_o spirit_n of_o god_n have_v take_v to_o confirm_v and_o make_v that_o truth_n know_v how_o christ_n be_v proper_o and_o absolute_o god_n only_a beget_v son_n now_o he_o be_v absolute_o only_o beget_v that_o be_v not_o only_o so_o call_v look_v upon_o and_o love_v as_o such_o but_o that_o be_v real_o so_o and_o indeed_o we_o know_v our_o bless_a saviour_n be_v call_v 20.17_o call_v joh._n 20.17_o brother_n of_o his_o disciple_n and_o of_o 2.17_o of_o heb._n 2.17_o believer_n but_o not_o in_o a_o proper_a and_o strict_a sense_n the_o relation_n of_o brotherhood_n have_v a_o great_a latitude_n for_o among_o the_o jew_n person_n belong_v to_o any_o branch_n of_o a_o family_n to_o a_o tribe_n or_o to_o any_o of_o the_o tribe_n be_v call_v brethren_n 1.19_o brethren_n gal._n 1.19_o james_n and_o john_n be_v call_v the_o lord_n brother_n and_o in_o another_o sense_n our_o saviour_n call_v 12.50_o call_v mat._n 12.50_o his_o brother_n his_o sister_n and_o his_o mother_n whosoever_o shall_v do_v the_o will_n of_o god_n he_o be_v our_o brother_n in_o that_o he_o have_v take_v upon_o he_o our_o human_a nature_n all_o man_n be_v brother_n in_o human_a nature_n but_o adoption_n can_v be_v the_o ground_n of_o he_o as_o it_o be_v of_o our_o be_v call_v the_o son_n of_o god_n he_o be_v never_o call_v adopt_v as_o we_o be_v neither_o can_v he_o be_v adopt_v with_o we_o see_v we_o be_v adopt_v in_o he_o we_o be_v the_o branch_n of_o the_o wild_a olive-tree_n that_o have_v be_v graft_v in_o he_o who_o be_v the_o true_a natural_a olive-tree_n and_o thereby_o be_v become_v member_n of_o his_o mystical_a body_n how_o can_v our_o bless_a saviour_n be_v call_v god_n only_o beget_v son_n if_o he_o be_v not_o partaker_n of_o the_o same_o nature_n and_o the_o more_o to_o enforce_v this_o in_o that_o s●●e_z chapter_n and_o verse_n john_n 18._o it_o be_v add_v which_o be_v in_o the_o bosom_n of_o the_o father_n can_v he_o be_v in_o and_o from_o the_o bosom_n of_o the_o father_n and_o not_o be_v of_o the_o same_o nature_n all_o other_o child_n of_o god_n be_v make_v but_o this_o be_v beget_v and_o only_o beget_v none_o but_o he_o be_v proper_o beget_v our_o three_o argument_n be_v take_v out_o of_o our_o saviour_n question_n to_o the_o pharisee_n 44._o pharisee_n mat._n 12.41_o 41_o 4●_n 44._o what_o think_v you_o of_o christ_n who_o son_n be_v he_o they_o say_v unto_o he_o the_o son_n of_o david_n he_o say_v unto_o they_o how_o then_o do_v david_n in_o spirit_n call_v he_o lord_n by_o this_o way_n of_o argue_v he_o show_v how_o in_o he_o beside_o human_a nature_n there_o be_v another_o namely_o the_o divine_a according_a to_o which_o he_o by_o no_o mean_n may_v be_v call_v david_n son_n but_o david_n lord_n which_o to_o the_o pharisee_n prove_v a_o unanswerable_a argument_n for_o upon_o this_o same_o it_o be_v positive_o say_v v._o 46._o and_o no_o man_n be_v able_a to_o answer_v he_o a_o word_n one_o will_v think_v this_o shall_v also_o stop_v the_o mouth_n of_o socinian_o indeed_o there_o the_o lord_n propose_v the_o question_n about_o the_o nature_n of_o christ_n or_o the_o son_n who_o natural_a son_n he_o be_v whereunto_o the_o pharisee_n return_v a_o imperfect_a answer_n for_o only_o they_o say_v he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o david_n but_o the_o lord_n jesus_n out_o of_o scripture_n which_o they_o can_v not_o deny_v conclude_v that_o since_o he_o be_v by_o david_n confession_n his_o lord_n he_o must_v in_o he_o have_v another_o nature_n beside_o human_a according_a to_o which_o he_o may_v not_o be_v call_v
he_o they_o worship_n this_o very_a name_n of_o michael_n be_v give_v to_o the_o messiah_n 12.1_o messiah_n dan._n 12.1_o and_o at_o that_o time_n shall_v michael_n stand_v up_o the_o great_a prince_n which_o stand_v for_o the_o child_n of_o thy_o people_n which_o be_v a_o prophecy_n of_o christ_n come_n wherein_o he_o be_v call_v el_n michael_n and_o the_o great_a prince_n to_o this_o emmanuel_n relate_v what_o the_o evangelist_n say_v of_o the_o word_n that_o be_v christ_n how_o be_v make_v flesh_n he_o dwell_v among_o we_o be_v not_o this_o the_o same_o as_o god_n with_o we_o and_o this_o not_o obscure_o for_o he_o add_v 1.14_o add_v joh._n 1.14_o and_o we_o behold_v his_o glory_n the_o glory_n as_o of_o the_o only_o beget_v of_o the_o father_n he_o not_o only_o have_v glory_n but_o be_v call_v lord_n of_o glory_n before_o his_o ascension_n into_o and_o glorification_n in_o heaven_n and_o for_o certain_a the_o name_n of_o lord_n or_o king_n of_o glory_n be_v proper_a to_o the_o true_a essential_a god_n if_o david_n 24.10_o david_n psal_n 24.10_o speak_v truth_n now_o this_o dwell_n of_o god_n be_v not_o say_v to_o be_v in_o but_o with_o man_n which_o do_v import_v a_o person_n live_v and_o converse_v with_o man_n full_o express_v in_o the_o follow_a text_n 3._o text_n rev._n 21_o 3._o behold_v the_o tabernacle_n of_o god_n be_v with_o man_n and_o he_o will_v dwell_v with_o they_o and_o they_o shall_v be_v his_o people_n and_o god_n himself_o shall_v be_v with_o they_o and_o be_v their_o god_n all_o this_o do_v not_o by_o proxy_n but_o in_o person_n it_o be_v say_v god_n himself_o so_o that_o great_a and_o infinite_a god_n who_o the_o heaven_n of_o heaven_n can_v contain_v choose_v our_o human_a nature_n to_o dwell_v in_o as_o in_o a_o tabernacle_n whereof_o the_o tabernacle_n in_o the_o wilderness_n be_v a_o type_n as_o the_o temple_n be_v afterward_o we_o know_v there_o be_v a_o veil_n this_o the_o apostle_n allude_v to_o when_o he_o say_v 10.20_o say_v heb._n 10.20_o through_o the_o vail_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o flesh_n so_o that_o his_o body_n and_o human_a nature_n be_v the_o place_n he_o choose_v to_o dwell_v in_o and_o that_o same_o nature_n be_v as_o a_o veil_n to_o qualify_v that_o glory_n which_o no_o man_n can_v behold_v for_o as_o the_o people_n can_v not_o behold_v moses_n his_o face_n when_o he_o come_v from_o god_n so_o that_o it_o be_v necessary_a he_o shall_v put_v on_o a_o veil_n how_o then_o can_v man_n have_v behold_v the_o glory_n and_o brightness_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o how_o can_v he_o have_v dwell_v among_o and_o converse_v with_o they_o except_o he_o have_v put_v on_o the_o veil_n of_o his_o flesh_n we_o must_v then_o necessary_o conclude_v he_o be_v el_n the_o mighty_a god_n before_o he_o be_v immanuel_n god_n with_o we_o as_o to_o that_o great_a incomprehensible_a and_o adorable_a mystery_n of_o the_o incarnation_n of_o the_o second_o person_n of_o the_o most_o holy_a trinity_n whereby_o the_o divine_a and_o human_a nature_n be_v mediate_o and_o the_o person_n immediate_o unite_v to_o the_o nature_n it_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v that_o it_o be_v not_o by_o a_o consubstantial_a union_n such_o as_o the_o three_o person_n of_o the_o most_o holy_a trinity_n be_v unite_v one_o with_o another_o neither_o be_v it_o a_o substantial_a union_n only_o by_o essence_n and_o virtue_n as_o the_o essence_n of_o christ_n be_v present_a with_o every_o thing_n not_o by_o a_o presence_n of_o grace_n only_o not_o physical_a as_o form_n and_o matter_n be_v unite_v not_o as_o one_o friend_n be_v unite_v to_o one_o another_o as_o the_o soul_n of_o jovathan_n be_v knit_v with_o the_o soul_n of_o 18.1_o of_o 1_o sam._n 18.1_o david_n not_o mystical_a only_o or_o in_o the_o same_o manner_n as_o christ_n dwell_v in_o believer_n not_o sacramental_a as_o christ_n be_v in_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n but_o it_o be_v a_o personal_a union_n and_o that_o without_o any_o change_n of_o or_o in_o the_o divine_a person_n without_o a_o rent_v of_o the_o nature_n against_o the_o nestorian_n or_o confusion_n of_o the_o same_o against_o the_o eutychian_o also_o without_o any_o change_n and_o separation_n now_o i_o be_o upon_o this_o high_a mystery_n of_o the_o incarnation_n by_o the_o evangelist_n express_v in_o these_o word_n the_o word_n be_v make_v flesh_n i_o shall_v take_v notice_n of_o some_o few_o thing_n do_v not_o the_o expression_n which_o be_v parallel_n with_o this_o 4.2_o this_o 1_o joh._n 4.2_o that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v come_v in_o the_o flesh_n mean_v that_o christ_n the_o word_n be_v in_o be_v before_o he_o be_v make_v flesh_n or_o come_v in_o the_o flesh_n and_o that_o this_o be_v be_v according_o to_o the_o spirit_n which_o in_o scripture_n be_v oppose_v to_o the_o flesh_n and_o that_o he_o have_v a_o spiritual_a existence_n before_o he_o take_v our_o human_a nature_n signify_v by_o the_o word_n flesh_n for_o according_a to_o scripture_n flesh_n signify_v human_a nature_n so_o to_o be_v make_v flesh_n to_o assume_v human_a nature_n let_v one_o place_n serve_v instead_o of_o many_o 2.16_o many_o gal._n 2.16_o by_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n shall_v no_o flesh_n that_o be_v no_o man_n be_v justify_v the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v first_o afterward_o he_o be_v manifest_v as_o to_o make_v use_n of_o a_o comparison_n in_o a_o thing_n which_o admit_v none_o in_o matter_n of_o god_n decree_n the_o decree_n be_v before_o the_o declaration_n of_o it_o for_o the_o decree_n be_v from_o all_o eternity_n but_o the_o declaration_n only_o in_o time_n what_o be_v say_v of_o christ_n 4.4_o christ_n gal._n 4.4_o that_o he_o be_v make_v of_o a_o woman_n be_v considerable_a for_o it_o imply_v that_o he_o be_v make_v man_n and_o take_v upon_o he_o our_o nature_n not_o out_o of_o the_o substance_n of_o any_o man_n but_o only_o of_o a_o woman_n his_o body_n be_v form_v in_o the_o bless_a virgin_n be_v womb_n without_o any_o help_n of_o man_n so_o he_o become_v man_n only_o by_o the_o woman_n side_n but_o he_o be_v son_n of_o god_n before_o he_o be_v make_v of_o a_o woman_n and_o he_o must_v need_v have_v have_v a_o be_v before_o he_o be_v send_v forth_o he_o be_v with_o god_n before_o god_n send_v he_o which_o be_v oppose_v to_o his_o appear_v and_o be_v manifest_v to_o the_o world_n 2._o world_n 1_o joh._n 1_o 2._o we_o show_v unto_o you_o that_o eternal_a life_n which_o be_v with_o the_o father_n and_o be_v manifest_v unto_o we_o he_o be_v with_o the_o father_n exi_v and_o have_v a_o be_v before_o he_o be_v manifest_v unto_o we_o dwell_v and_o pitch_v his_o tabernacle_n among_o we_o it_o be_v observable_a out_o of_o that_o place_n where_o it_o be_v say_v of_o our_o bless_a saviour_n 2.16_o saviour_n heb._n 2.16_o he_o take_v on_o he_o the_o seed_n of_o abraham_n the_o word_n take_v in_o the_o original_a signify_v also_o to_o take_v and_o lay_v hold_v or_o catch_v hold_v as_o he_o do_v of_o sink_v peter_n to_o save_v he_o from_o drown_v so_o he_o catch_v hold_v of_o mankind_n when_o it_o be_v ready_a to_o sink_v against_o this_o they_o say_v there_o can_v be_v no_o such_o union_n of_o divine_a and_o human_a nature_n in_o one_o person_n but_o that_o such_o a_o union_n be_v not_o unpossible_a it_o may_v be_v illustrate_v out_o of_o the_o union_n of_o our_o soul_n with_o our_o body_n which_o be_v of_o two_o different_a nature_n spiritual_a and_o material_a invisible_a and_o visible_a immortal_a and_o mortal_a and_o though_o we_o can_v conceive_v the_o reason_n it_o ought_v to_o be_v no_o prejudice_n neither_o can_v we_o conceive_v the_o manner_n of_o their_o union_n which_o yet_o be_v true_a and_o certain_a we_o must_v certain_o believe_v some_o thing_n to_o be_v though_o we_o do_v not_o at_o all_o comprehend_v the_o manner_n of_o it_o and_o although_o there_o be_v a_o infinite_a disproportion_n between_o god_n and_o man_n yet_o that_o be_v no_o just_a prejudice_n against_o the_o union_n of_o divinity_n with_o humanity_n with_o harbour_v such_o notion_n man_n do_v too_o much_o measure_n god_n by_o themselves_o who_o because_o they_o be_v evil_a be_v not_o capable_a of_o so_o much_o goodness_n and_o out_o of_o pride_n be_v apt_a to_o say_v so_o much_o condescension_n become_v not_o god_n but_o god_n know_v better_a than_o we_o what_o become_v he_o and_o what_o we_o can_v comprehend_v of_o he_o we_o ought_v to_o admire_v and_o adore_v god_n way_n be_v not_o like_o our_o way_n nor_o his_o thought_n like_o our_o thought_n and_o though_o he_o condescend_v never_o so_o low_a yet_o be_v ever_o sure_a of_o his_o greatness_n which_o nothing_o can_v take_v away_o from_o he_o this_o humiliation_n or_o
name_n of_o his_o spouse_n 45.11_o psal_n 45.11_o worship_n thou_o he_o as_o christ_n be_v not_o god_n upon_o the_o account_n of_o any_o office_n and_o dignity_n so_o he_o be_v not_o to_o be_v worship_v by_o reason_n of_o any_o office_n and_o dignity_n here_o that_o which_o be_v cause_n for_o one_o be_v cause_n for_o the_o other_o no_o office_n can_v make_v any_o one_o god_n who_o be_v not_o so_o so_o none_o ought_v to_o be_v adore_v but_o because_o he_o be_v god_n that_o be_v of_o the_o same_o nature_n and_o substance_n and_o not_o by_o communication_n of_o divine_a power_n dignity_n or_o office_n for_o to_o give_v the_o creature_n that_o which_o be_v due_a only_a to_o the_o creator_n be_v mere_a idolatry_n which_o the_o apostle_n father_v upon_o the_o galatian_n 4.8_o gal._n 4.8_o when_o you_o know_v not_o god_n you_o do_v service_n unto_o they_o which_o by_o nature_n be_v no_o god_n which_o they_o may_v have_v excuse_v thus_o though_o we_o do_v so_o to_o those_o that_o be_v not_o such_o by_o nature_n yet_o they_o be_v god_n by_o office_n dignity_n and_o power_n but_o the_o apostle_n as_o i_o say_v before_o blame_v they_o for_o do_v so_o unto_o those_o which_o by_o nature_n be_v not_o god_n wherefore_o religious_a worship_n be_v due_a only_a to_o such_o as_o be_v god_n by_o nature_n see_v then_o divine_a worship_n be_v due_a to_o christ_n as_o by_o and_o by_o i_o hope_v to_o prove_v it_o imply_v that_o christ_n be_v god_n by_o his_o nature_n and_o certain_o where_o the_o name_n of_o god_n and_o son_n of_o god_n be_v absolute_o attribute_v as_o it_o be_v to_o christ_n it_o design_n nature_n more_o than_o office_n or_o dignity_n so_o that_o the_o word_n lord_n so_o often_o and_o special_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n attribute_v unto_o christ_n signify_v in_o the_o strict_a sense_n the_o infinite_a and_o independent_a dominion_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n over_o all_o his_o be_v from_o the_o father_n be_v by_o generation_n not_o in_o relation_n to_o his_o essence_n but_o to_o his_o person_n not_o absolute_o but_o relative_o as_o he_o be_v son_n and_o if_o he_o be_v beget_v it_o necessary_o follow_v to_o be_v of_o the_o essence_n or_o nature_n of_o the_o father_n which_o also_o show_v the_o eternity_n of_o that_o generation_n these_o thing_n i_o here_o repeat_v because_o when_o once_o that_o persuasion_n of_o christ_n be_v true_a essential_a god_n be_v once_o settle_a in_o our_o mind_n then_o without_o any_o scruple_n or_o difficulty_n we_o may_v worship_v he_o else_o man_n be_v at_o a_o stand_n under_o fear_n of_o worship_v the_o creature_n instead_o of_o the_o creator_n who_o be_v god_n bless_v for_o ever_o before_o we_o prove_v that_o christ_n be_v and_o aught_o to_o be_v worship_v with_o a_o religious_a worship_n for_o we_o speak_v of_o no_o other_o we_o intend_v to_o show_v how_o the_o true_a essential_a god_n be_v alone_o to_o be_v worship_v and_o though_o to_o that_o effect_n several_a argument_n may_v be_v draw_v out_o of_o scripture_n we_o shall_v in_o order_n thereunto_o examine_v only_o two_o one_o be_v this_o 42.8_o isa_n 42.8_o i_o be_o the_o lord_n that_o be_v my_o name_n and_o my_o glory_n will_v i_o not_o give_v to_o another_o this_o be_v a_o solemn_a declaration_n of_o the_o unchangeable_a god_n of_o truth_n who_o have_v give_v that_o same_o glory_n unto_o christ_n must_v infallible_o conclude_v christ_n to_o be_v the_o same_o lord_n jehovah_n with_o he_o 48.11_o chap._n 48.11_o here_o the_o name_n and_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n do_v signify_v the_o same_o for_o sometime_o in_o scripture_n the_o name_n of_o god_n signify_v his_o nature_n when_o essential_o take_v and_o the_o attribute_n of_o the_o person_n when_o personal_o take_v never_o to_o be_v understand_v bare_o of_o a_o name_n when_o we_o love_v fear_v and_o serve_v god_n it_o be_v not_o the_o letter_n or_o a_o sound_n in_o the_o air_n but_o either_o the_o nature_n or_o some_o of_o the_o person_n of_o the_o trinity_n but_o the_o truth_n of_o this_o here_o assert_v that_o the_o name_n and_o glory_n of_o god_n signify_v the_o same_o 19_o isai_n 42.8_o compare_v with_o exod._n 33.18_o 19_o be_v elsewhere_o confirm_v positive_o and_o absolute_o how_o his_o glory_n god_n will_v not_o give_v to_o another_o whosoever_o he_o be_v but_o as_o socinus_n do_v not_o use_v to_o take_v the_o word_n of_o god_n as_o and_o in_o the_o sense_n he_o say_v they_o so_o here_o he_o will_v make_v god_n speak_v otherwise_o than_o he_o do_v for_o he_o never_o want_v his_o limitation_n and_o therewith_o he_o limit_v the_o holy_a one_o the_o god_n of_o israel_n god_n say_v he_o do_v not_o say_v i_o will_v not_o give_v my_o glory_n to_o another_o that_o be_v dependent_a upon_o and_o subordinate_a unto_o i_o such_o he_o make_v the_o lord_n jesus_n but_o to_o grave_v image_n but_o do_v not_o image_n of_o god_n of_o christ_n of_o angel_n apostle_n depend_v upon_o and_o be_v subordinate_a to_o god_n as_o to_o the_o matter_n the_o form_n or_o make_v of_o they_o the_o design_n of_o man_n and_o all_o upon_o the_o will_n of_o god_n sure_o they_o do_v for_o every_o creature_n whatsoever_o be_v subordinate_a to_o and_o depend_v upon_o his_o maker_n and_o suppose_v god_n will_v choose_v one_o creature_n as_o may_v be_v a_o angel_n or_o any_o man_n or_o woman_n and_o heap_v all_o the_o treasure_n of_o his_o glory_n upon_o such_o a_o one_o which_o he_o yet_o declare_v he_o will_v not_o do_v yet_o according_a to_o they_o he_o may_v do_v it_o and_o not_o act_v against_o his_o solemn_a protestation_n that_o he_o will_v not_o do_v it_o after_o this_o no_o creature_n as_o a_o creature_n can_v differ_v from_o god_n for_o they_o make_v god_n say_v he_o do_v not_o intend_v to_o exclude_v any_o other_o whole_o dependent_a upon_o and_o subordinate_a to_o he_o as_o be_v every_o creature_n whatsoever_o thus_o after_o this_o the_o effect_n shall_v be_v the_o same_o with_o the_o cause_n because_o it_o depend_v upon_o it_o this_o new_a signification_n of_o the_o word_n another_o deserve_v well_o to_o have_v be_v confirm_v by_o some_o example_n in_o that_o other_o place_n already_o mention_v which_o confirm_v this_o there_o be_v no_o mention_n of_o image_n or_o any_o thing_n else_o bare_o i_o will_v not_o give_v my_o glory_n unto_o another_o which_o leave_v no_o ground_n to_o cavil_v about_o image_n thus_o they_o will_v make_v the_o strength_n of_o these_o word_n of_o god_n to_o vanish_v away_o and_o be_v resolve_v into_o this_o god_n will_v not_o give_v his_o glory_n to_o image_n but_o will_v give_v it_o to_o angel_n and_o man_n even_o to_o satan_n and_o antichrist_n the_o worst_a of_o they_o then_o by_o the_o word_n to_o give_v they_o understand_v only_o to_o permit_v so_o if_o he_o give_v money_n bread_n clothes_n etc._n etc._n he_o only_o permit_v if_o to_o the_o word_n give_v leave_n have_v be_v join_v they_o may_v have_v pretend_v to_o something_o though_o there_o have_v be_v no_o sense_n thus_o with_o their_o alter_v the_o sense_n of_o word_n they_o will_v overthrow_v the_o use_n of_o language_n and_o so_o coin_v one_o of_o their_o own_o which_o none_o but_o themselves_o shall_v understand_v and_o by_o those_o mean_n teach_v all_o that_o go_v before_o to_o speak_v then_o here_o according_a to_o their_o interpretation_n contrary_a to_o what_o god_n declare_v he_o will_v permit_v or_o give_v grave_v image_n something_o of_o his_o glory_n if_o they_o do_v not_o believe_v it_o themselves_o other_o who_o do_v worship_v those_o image_n will_v for_o they_o think_v god_n have_v communicate_v to_o they_o something_o of_o his_o glory_n or_o else_o will_v not_o have_v look_v upon_o they_o as_o worthy_a to_o be_v religious_o worship_v but_o to_o come_v to_o the_o thing_n since_o god_n in_o this_o place_n deny_v the_o permission_n for_o any_o one_o to_o have_v his_o glory_n much_o more_o do_v he_o deny_v to_o give_v it_o himself_o to_o another_o and_o if_o from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n he_o have_v suffer_v the_o devil_n to_o usurp_v divine_a honour_n to_o himself_o and_o several_a nation_n religious_o to_o worship_n image_n as_o it_o be_v know_v he_o have_v yet_o to_o neither_o he_o give_v that_o glory_n of_o he_o and_o out_o of_o this_o appear_v the_o true_a sense_n of_o the_o text_n that_o he_o will_v not_o permit_v for_o he_o have_v permit_v but_o not_o give_v his_o glory_n which_o he_o have_v never_o give_v 7_o v._o 6_o 7_o but_o to_o come_v to_o the_o scope_n of_o the_o place_n it_o be_v this_o god_n say_v it_o when_o he_o speak_v of_o christ_n as_o it_o appear_v by_o the_o two_o forego_v and_o follow_v verse_n which_o may_v be_v peruse_v therein_o he_o be_v speak_v of_o in_o such_o a_o way_n and_o to_o
to_o screw_v it_o up_o into_o a_o allegory_n nor_o when_o the_o discourse_n be_v doctrinal_a and_o the_o word_n in_o it_o usual_a proper_a and_o suit_v to_o the_o thing_n intend_v to_o be_v express_v this_o indeed_o be_v what_o peter_n call_v a_o rest_a the_o scripture_n to_o their_o own_o destruction_n the_o late_a part_n of_o the_o verse_n do_v explain_v the_o first_o for_o the_o word_n signify_v christ_n ascension_n into_o heaven_n they_o be_v speak_v upon_o the_o occasion_n of_o christ_n instruct_v encourage_v and_o dispose_v his_o disciple_n to_o that_o separation_n which_o be_v sudden_o to_o happen_v by_o his_o death_n after_o which_o though_o he_o show_v himself_o alive_a by_o many_o infallible_a proof_n be_v see_v of_o they_o forty_o day_n and_o speak_v of_o the_o thing_n pertain_v to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n yet_o he_o converse_v not_o with_o they_o in_o the_o same_o manner_n as_o before_o his_o passion_n 1.2_o act_n 1.2_o now_o this_o occasion_n which_o they_o be_v speak_v upon_o sheweth_z how_o he_o discourse_v about_o leave_v the_o world_n go_v to_o his_o father_n and_o ascend_v into_o heaven_n which_o reay_o and_o visible_o happen_v forty_o day_n after_o his_o resurrection_n by_o these_o expression_n which_o be_v familiar_a with_o he_o of_o go_v up_o or_o ascend_v to_o the_o father_n he_o signify_v the_o same_o thing_n and_o though_o the_o father_n do_v fill_v up_o heaven_n which_o be_v his_o throne_n and_o earth_n his_o footstool_n yet_o in_o scripture_n he_o be_v say_v to_o sit_v and_o dwell_v in_o heaven_n as_o in_o his_o home_n 14.2_o joh._n 14.2_o wherefore_o our_o saviour_n call_v heaven_n his_o father_n house_n now_o as_o this_o late_a part_n of_o the_o verse_n signify_v christ_n ascension_n from_o the_o earth_n to_o the_o father_n so_o the_o first_o signify_v his_o come_n down_o from_o heaven_n upon_o earth_n again_o the_o opposition_n which_o be_v see_v between_o both_o part_n as_o i_o come_v forth_o from_o the_o father_n with_o and_o go_v to_o the_o father_n and_o i_o be_o come_v into_o the_o world_n with_o again_o i_o leave_v the_o world_n do_v show_n that_o if_o to_o come_v from_o the_o father_n do_v denote_v to_o be_v send_v from_o heaven_n to_o earth_n by_o the_o father_n so_o to_o go_v to_o the_o father_n signify_v the_o contrary_a to_o that_o namely_o to_o go_v from_o earth_n up_o to_o heaven_n to_o the_o father_n christ_n leave_v the_o world_n be_v go_v to_o the_o father_n and_o go_v to_o the_o father_n he_o have_v leave_v the_o world_n wherefore_o to_o go_v to_o the_o father_n and_o leave_v the_o world_n be_v the_o same_o so_o likewise_o christ_n come_v forth_o from_o the_o father_n come_v into_o the_o world_n and_o come_v into_o the_o world_n he_o come_v forth_o from_o the_o father_n and_o these_o two_o kind_n of_o expression_n signify_v the_o same_o thing_n 13.3_o chap._n 13.3_o and_o as_o he_o be_v come_v from_o god_n so_o he_o go_v to_o god_n this_o come_n from_o the_o father_n and_o come_v into_o the_o world_n do_v imply_v first_o a_o send_v as_o the_o lord_n declare_v it_o 8.42_o john_n 8.42_o i_o proceed_v forth_o and_o come_v from_o god_n neither_o come_v i_o of_o myself_o but_o he_o send_v i_o and_o than_o something_o posterior_n to_o the_o mission_n and_o as_o it_o be_v belong_v to_o the_o execution_n thereof_o for_o if_o one_o shall_v ask_v wherefore_o come_v christ_n into_o the_o world_n it_o will_v be_v well_o answer_v to_o say_v because_o the_o father_n send_v he_o so_o that_o he_o who_o be_v send_v must_v come_v from_o he_o that_o send_v he_o to_o the_o place_n whereunto_o he_o be_v send_v then_o the_o word_n i_o come_v from_o the_o father_n must_v be_v understand_v of_o the_o execution_n of_o the_o send_n rather_o than_o the_o send_n itself_o it_o be_v a_o wrong_a sense_n give_v as_o to_o apply_v they_o to_o a_o divine_a production_n i_o come_v from_o the_o father_n that_o be_v i_o be_o miraculous_o produce_v by_o the_o father_n this_o exposition_n do_v confound_v thing_n that_o be_v different_a for_o none_o can_v be_v send_v before_o he_o have_v a_o be_v but_o that_o be_v produce_v which_o have_v no_o be_v production_n be_v before_o send_v thus_o the_o word_n must_v signify_v that_o christ_n return_v to_o the_o place_n whence_o he_o come_v and_o ascend_v into_o that_o whence_o he_o descend_v before_o this_o he_o go_v about_o to_o inculcate_v into_o the_o mind_n of_o the_o jew_n in_o the_o opposition_n he_o make_v of_o his_o origin_n with_o they_o you_o be_v from_o benedth_n 23._o v._o 23._o i_o be_o from_o above_o you_o be_v of_o this_o world_n i_o be_o not_o of_o this_o world_n but_o from_o the_o father_n not_o from_o earth_n but_o from_o heaven_n he_o be_v not_o in_o the_o world_n by_o a_o natural_a necessity_n but_o voluntary_o and_o by_o a_o determine_a counsel_n he_o come_v into_o it_o as_o ambassador_n from_o his_o father_n to_o reveal_v unto_o man_n the_o doctrine_n and_o mean_n of_o salvation_n and_o for_o judgement_n 9.39_o chap._n 9.39_o for_o judgement_n be_o i_o come_v into_o this_o world_n and_o all_o the_o while_o he_o be_v here_o even_o very_o betimes_o he_o mind_v what_o he_o come_v about_o unto_o his_o mother_n after_o she_o find_v he_o in_o the_o temple_n and_o ask_v he_o why_o have_v thou_o thus_o deal_v with_o we_o he_o answer_v how_o be_v it_o that_o you_o seek_v i_o wist_v you_o not_o that_o i_o must_v be_v about_o my_o father_n business_n 49._o luke_n 2.48_o 49._o so_o that_o he_o continue_v upon_o earth_n till_o that_o be_v over_o before_o which_o time_n he_o will_v not_o go_v back_o 17.4_o john_n 17.4_o but_o before_o his_o departure_n he_o declare_v i_o have_v finish_v the_o work_n which_o thou_o give_v i_o to_o do_v whereupon_o he_o return_v back_o to_o his_o father_n from_o who_o he_o be_v come_v before_o leave_v earth_n a_o place_n so_o disproportionate_a and_o inferior_a to_o heaven_n whence_o he_o have_v his_o extraction_n and_o consequent_o unworthy_a to_o contain_v he_o any_o long_o this_o reason_n he_o give_v his_o disciple_n who_o heart_n upon_o his_o declare_v he_o be_v about_o leave_v of_o they_o have_v be_v fill_v with_o sorrow_n how_o it_o be_v not_o just_a he_o shall_v always_o be_v among_o those_o that_o have_v use_v he_o so_o unworthy_o and_o withal_o it_o be_v expedient_a for_o they_o that_o he_o shall_v go_v away_o or_o else_o the_o comforter_n 7._o chap._n 16._o ●_o 7._o who_o be_v to_o be_v with_o they_o after_o his_o departure_n will_v not_o come_v after_o all_o that_o hither_o to_o have_v be_v say_v may_v not_o i_o ask_v concern_v the_o method_n and_o carriage_n of_o the_o adversary_n be_v it_o fair_a about_o these_o fundamental_a point_n to_o turn_v the_o whole_a scripture_n into_o a_o allegory_n and_o make_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n never_o to_o speak_v proper_o to_o force_n upon_o and_o wrest_v out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n such_o sense_n and_o exposition_n as_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o scope_n of_o the_o spirit_n to_o the_o deign_v of_o the_o holy_a writer_n and_o to_o the_o analogy_n of_o faith_n and_o if_o this_o can_v serve_v the_o turn_n to_o screw_v up_o and_o work_v their_o b●●ing_n how_o to_o contrive_v and_o forge_v a_o imaginary_a after_o son_n of_o christ_n into_o heaven_n about_o the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o his_o ministry_n and_o consequent_o a_o cease_v ●●wn_v from_o thence_o after_o it_o yet_o at_o the_o same_o time_n deny_v that_o true_a and_o real_a descend_v of_o ●is_n upon_o earth_n which_o be_v so_o much_o and_o so_o often_o assort_v in_o scripture_n which_o be_v as_o good_a as_o to_o say_v though_o truth_n and_o scripture_n do_v not_o bear_v it_o yet_o we_o i_o now_o how_o to_o supply_v it_o of_o our_o own_o flectere_fw-la si_fw-la nequco_fw-la saperos_fw-la ae_n eroma_fw-la movebo_fw-la now_o to_o strengthen_v what_o i_o have_v say_v to_o prove_v our_o lord_n divinity_n before_o i_o proceed_v to_o answer_v object_v i_o shall_v add_v what_o follow_v upon_o the_o forementioned_a head_n of_o the_o angel_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n i_o mean_v the_o increated_a angel_n who_o person_n in_o appearance_n be_v man_n in_o office_n angel_n in_o nature_n god_n the_o second_o person_n of_o the_o most_o holy_a trinity_n i_o shall_v somewhat_o insist_v upon_o a_o most_o notable_a place_n and_o much_o to_o our_o purpose_n though_o i_o already_o say_v something_o about_o it_o for_o i_o can_v not_o willing_a to_o lay_v aside_o a_o strong_a and_o very_a useful_a weapon_n because_o i_o make_v use_v of_o it_o before_o for_o when_o once_o it_o have_v be_v try_v we_o be_v the_o sure_a of_o and_o may_v better_o depend_v upon_o it_o on_o the_o occasion_n of_o the_o abominable_a idolatry_n of_o the_o golden_a calf_n god_n refuse_v to_o go_v up_o
because_o infinite_a communicable_a without_o be_v multiply_v in_o many_o person_n to_o the_o same_o purpose_n they_o object_n in_o another_o manner_n god_n be_v one_o therefore_o can_v be_v three_o so_o there_o be_v none_o but_o the_o father_n the_o answer_n be_v easy_a and_o we_o already_o have_v say_v something_o to_o it_o that_o which_o be_v one_o can_v be_v two_o or_o three_o in_o the_o same_o respect_n it_o can_v be_v one_o and_o many_o in_o the_o same_o sense_n what_o christ_n say_v 10.30_o john_n 10.30_o i_o and_o my_o father_n be_v one_o be_v most_o true_a so_o that_o one_o be_v relate_v to_o the_o nature_n and_o i_o and_o father_n to_o the_o person_n so_o then_o god_n be_v one_o as_o to_o the_o nature_n and_o three_o as_o to_o the_o person_n see_v the_o nature_n or_o godhead_n can_v be_v multiply_v it_o follow_v that_o the_o person_n and_o subsistence_n only_o be_v multiply_v they_o say_v far_o a_o simple_a essence_n can_v be_v of_o three_o person_n otherwise_o it_o will_v be_v divide_v or_o multiply_v but_o though_o this_o be_v true_a of_o finite_a it_o be_v not_o so_o of_o a_o infinite_a essence_n neither_o do_v it_o follow_v that_o because_o the_o essence_n be_v common_a to_o three_o person_n it_o may_v be_v common_a to_o more_o for_o it_o be_v contrary_a to_o divine_a revelation_n which_o only_o mention_v one_o father_n one_o son_n and_o one_o holy_a ghost_n the_o father_n god_n the_o son_n god_n the_o holy_a ghost_n god_n yet_o not_o three_o god_n but_o only_o one_o god_n neither_o do_v it_o follow_v that_o because_o divine_a essence_n be_v common_a to_o three_o person_n therefore_o every_o person_n shall_v be_v common_a and_o because_o the_o person_n be_v not_o common_a therefore_o the_o nature_n must_v not_o be_v this_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o their_o mistake_n that_o they_o do_v not_o mind_v the_o distinction_n of_o the_o person_n from_o the_o essence_n for_o though_o they_o differ_v not_o real_o yet_o rational_o they_o be_v distinguish_v it_o do_v follow_v to_o say_v if_o the_o essence_n be_v common_a to_o three_o person_n therefore_o the_o person_n be_v common_a no_o more_o than_o to_o say_v if_o abel_n have_v his_o nature_n from_o adam_n and_o be_v a_o man_n therefore_o he_o have_v his_o posterity_n and_o be_v a_o father_n from_o he_o the_o thing_n say_v they_o that_o be_v separately_z number_v be_v not_o one_o in_o number_n and_o essence_n but_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n be_v separately_z number_v and_o be_v by_o themselves_o call_v one_o as_o one_o god_n one_o mediator_n one_o god_n and_o father_n one_o lord_n wherefore_o father_n and_o son_n be_v not_o one_o only_a god_n or_o one_o essence_n but_o i_o say_v numeration_n do_v not_o import_v a_o distinction_n of_o essence_n for_o in_o finite_a thing_n essence_n be_v multiply_v they_o be_v reckon_v individual_a not_o in_o relation_n to_o the_o essence_n but_o to_o the_o person_n that_o which_o be_v number_v be_v one_o neither_o be_v it_o one_o without_o the_o essence_n yet_o for_o all_o that_o it_o be_v not_o one_o essential_o or_o by_o his_o own_o essence_n separate_v from_o any_o other_o whatsoever_o so_o then_o when_o the_o father_n and_o son_n be_v number_v they_o be_v not_o so_o essential_o but_o personal_o also_o they_o be_v the_o same_o in_o number_n and_o essence_n contrary_a to_o what_o be_v object_v whereof_o one_o be_v say_v to_o be_v with_o the_o other_o as_o the_o word_n be_v with_o god_n for_o in_o god_n to_o be_v one_o with_o another_o be_v only_o a_o hypostatical_a or_o personal_a distinction_n for_o as_o to_o be_v one_o with_o another_o do_v import_v a_o distinction_n so_o the_o same_o evangelist_n show_v the_o essence_n of_o both_o to_o be_v but_o one_o and_o the_o same_o when_o he_o add_v the_o word_n be_v god_n furthermore_o they_o argue_v thus_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n be_v real_o distinguish_v for_o the_o father_n be_v absolute_o god_n that_o be_v the_o divine_a essence_n for_o say_v they_o the_o word_n father_n and_o god_n be_v synonimous_a or_o the_o same_o because_o the_o word_n god_n be_v explain_v by_o the_o word_n father_n 1.3_o 1_o thes_n 1.3_o therefore_o the_o essence_n of_o the_o son_n be_v distinct_a from_o that_o of_o the_o father_n our_o answer_n be_v though_o the_o person_n of_o the_o father_n and_o of_o the_o son_n be_v real_o distinct_a it_o do_v not_o follow_v that_o their_o essence_n be_v so_o as_o if_o the_o essence_n of_o one_o be_v not_o that_o of_o another_o see_v the_o name_n of_o father_n and_o son_n be_v relative_n which_o indeed_o signify_v different_a person_n in_o the_o same_o nature_n but_o rational_o distinguish_v from_o the_o same_o if_o father_n and_o essence_n be_v synonimous_a what_o remain_v for_o the_o son_n beside_o a_o shadow_n of_o the_o deity_n for_o as_o the_o paternity_n and_o innascibility_n or_o not_o be_v beget_v which_o be_v proper_a only_o to_o the_o father_n be_v incommunicable_a that_o essence_n if_o it_o be_v the_o same_o thing_n as_o be_v the_o father_n can_v be_v communicate_v unto_o the_o son_n it_o do_v not_o follow_v neither_o that_o the_o name_n god_n and_o father_n be_v the_o same_o because_o the_o first_o be_v sometime_o use_v for_o the_o last_o see_v it_o be_v attribute_v unto_o the_o father_n in_o his_o person_n to_o constitute_v the_o deity_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o spring_n and_o in_o the_o comparison_n and_o order_n of_o person_n and_o not_o because_o the_o person_n of_o the_o father_n be_v in_o no_o wise_a distinguish_v from_o the_o divine_a essence_n paul_n do_v congratulate_v with_o the_o thessalonian_o for_o their_o work_n of_o faith_n labour_n of_o love_n and_o patience_n of_o hope_n and_o because_o their_o hope_n be_v in_o the_o come_v of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n these_o three_o he_o refer_v in_o god_n who_o he_o call_v father_n because_o he_o already_o have_v make_v mention_n of_o the_o mediator_n but_o if_o the_o name_n god_n and_o father_n be_v the_o same_o by_o reason_n that_o paul_n have_v to_o the_o word_n god_n join_v father_n by_o way_n of_o explication_n 1.2_o tit._n 2.13_o 2_o pet._n 1.2_o than_o the_o name_n great_a god_n and_o our_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n be_v also_o the_o same_o because_o two_o apostle_n explain_v the_o name_n of_o christ_n by_o that_o of_o god_n our_o saviour_n beside_o the_o argument_n be_v faulty_a for_o it_o have_v four_o term_n to_o the_o end_n that_o both_o proposition_n be_v true_a in_o the_o major_a the_o person_n of_o the_o father_n in_o the_o minor_a his_o essence_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v to_o this_o argument_n answer_v another_o the_o eternal_a father_n be_v not_o the_o son_n who_o john_n call_v the_o word_n but_o the_o essence_n of_o the_o divinity_n or_o that_o one_o god_n of_o israel_n be_v the_o eternal_a father_n of_o the_o only_o beget_v son_n therefore_o the_o essence_n or_o the_o god_n of_o israel_n be_v not_o the_o son_n call_v the_o word_n the_o major_n be_v false_a for_o to_o have_v it_o true_a the_o sense_n ought_v to_o be_v this_o that_o essence_n or_o that_o god_n which_o be_v the_o father_n be_v not_o the_o son_n that_o be_v the_o person_n of_o the_o father_n be_v not_o the_o person_n of_o the_o son_n this_o far_a they_o say_v the_o essence_n and_o one_o god_n be_v convertible_a but_o according_a to_o we_o in_o the_o unity_n of_o god_n there_o be_v trinity_n therefore_o in_o the_o essence_n there_o be_v also_o trinity_n but_o we_o say_v god_n who_o be_v one_o in_o nature_n be_v three_o in_o person_n so_o in_o that_o only_a essence_n there_o be_v a_o trinity_n that_o be_v whole_o and_o indivisible_o subsi_v in_o three_o person_n there_o be_v not_o three_o essence_n the_o minor_a proposition_n must_v be_v understand_v of_o a_o trinity_n of_o person_n and_o not_o of_o essence_n i_o observe_v before_o how_o they_o quarrel_n much_o with_o several_a expression_n use_v in_o this_o matter_n as_o trinity_n essence_n person_n etc._n etc._n which_o be_v neither_o profane_a nor_o unworthy_a of_o god_n see_v in_o scripture_n there_o be_v word_n which_o answer_v to_o they_o 1.4_o rom._n 1.20_o col._n 2.9_o phil._n 2.6_o 2_o pet._n 1.4_o as_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d both_o signify_v godhead_n and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o form_n of_o god_n and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d divine_a nature_n also_o the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o in_o latin_a be_v translate_v sometime_o substance_n sometime_o essence_n show_v the_o quiddity_n or_o nature_n of_o the_o thing_n as_o for_o the_o word_n person_n clastical_a author_n as_o well_o as_o divine_n in_o this_o holy_a mystery_n take_v it_o for_o a_o rational_a subsistence_n or_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n however_o out_o of_o these_o they_o
be_v make_v so_o upon_o earth_n we_o speak_v of_o the_o rise_n of_o the_o sun_n which_o have_v a_o be_v before_o he_o rise_v on_o our_o hemisphere_n but_o only_o at_o such_o a_o time_n he_o appear_v unto_o we_o like_o the_o star_n that_o guide_v the_o wiseman_n to_o the_o place_n where_o he_o be_v bear_v and_o of_o christ_n it_o be_v say_v thou_o have_v the_o dew_n of_o thy_o youth_n from_o the_o womb_n of_o the_o morning_n as_o to_o what_o socinus_n say_v that_o christ_n be_v say_v to_o be_v god_n but_o not_o that_o only_a god_n we_o answer_v how_o christ_n be_v not_o upon_o every_o account_n say_v to_o be_v god_n but_o only_o he_o be_v say_v to_o be_v such_o a_o god_n as_o true_a divine_a worship_n be_v due_a unto_o who_o alone_o be_v to_o be_v worship_v and_o serve_v as_o he_o say_v 4.10_o mat._n 4.10_o so_o he_o be_v no_o other_o but_o the_o only_a god_n in_o scripture_n call_v the_o true_a god_n they_o object_v the_o place_n where_o the_o holy_a ghost_n say_v 8.6_o 1_o cor._n 8.6_o but_o to_o we_o there_o be_v but_o one_o god_n the_o father_n of_o who_o be_v all_o thing_n who_o be_v distinguish_v from_o christ_n who_o be_v one_o lord_n by_o who_o be_v all_o thing_n but_o the_o adversary_n prejudice_n make_v that_o they_o either_o will_v not_o or_o can_v see_v how_o in_o the_o place_n st._n paul_n do_v not_o separate_v one_o god_n from_o christ_n nor_o one_o lord_n from_o the_o father_n for_o his_o scope_n be_v to_o teach_v we_o christian_n how_o there_o be_v not_o many_o god_n nor_o many_o lord_n but_o only_o one_o god_n and_o one_o lord_n now_o if_o the_o father_n be_v one_o god_n and_o one_o lord_n separately_z from_o christ_n then_o there_o will_v be_v two_o god_n and_o two_o lord_n which_o whole_o overturn_v the_o apostle_n design_n so_o that_o of_o necessity_n we_o must_v say_v the_o father_n and_o christ_n be_v one_o god_n and_o one_o lord_n consequent_o that_o god_n and_o the_o lord_n be_v the_o same_o for_o there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o that_o god_n be_v the_o lord_n and_o he_o who_o by_o divine_a reason_n be_v lord_n and_o oppose_v to_o idol_n as_o it_o be_v the_o true_a sense_n of_o the_o place_n he_o also_o for_o certain_a must_v needs_o be_v god_n so_o then_o when_o paul_n say_v that_o only_a god_n to_o be_v the_o father_n he_o also_o own_v he_o to_o be_v the_o only_a lord_n and_o when_o he_o say_v the_o one_o lord_n be_v christ_n he_o own_v he_o to_o be_v one_o god_n and_o as_o he_o exclude_v not_o the_o father_n from_o be_v lord_n so_o he_o exclude_v not_o christ_n from_o be_v god_n it_o be_v a_o weak_a notion_n ground_v upon_o these_o particle_n of_o who_o and_o by_o who_o be_v all_o thing_n for_o both_o the_o same_o in_o scripture_n be_v attribute_v to_o god_n 11.36_o rom._n 11.36_o of_o he_o and_o through_o he_o and_o to_o he_o be_v all_o thing_n so_o there_o be_v in_o they_o nothing_o to_o exclude_v christ_n from_o be_v god_n for_o both_o belong_v to_o father_n and_o christ_n only_o one_o be_v chief_o attribute_v to_o one_o the_o other_o chief_o to_o the_o other_o it_o be_v a_o error_n in_o the_o adversary_n to_o say_v the_o word_n by_o who_o to_o signify_v a_o second_o cause_n see_v that_o very_o same_o particle_n be_v elsewhere_o attribute_v unto_o god_n which_o in_o the_o same_o place_n we_o must_v also_o believe_v to_o be_v attribute_v unto_o christ_n see_v the_o apostle_n mind_n be_v to_o show_v there_o be_v only_o one_o god_n and_o one_o lord_n but_o in_o socinus_n sense_n there_o will_v be_v two_o god_n and_o two_o lord_n one_o of_o who_o be_v all_o thing_n the_o other_o by_o who_o be_v all_o thing_n though_o the_o same_o apostle_n do_v without_o any_o such_o particle_n absolute_o affirm_v there_o be_v one_o lord_n one_o god_n and_o father_n of_o all_o 6._o ephes_n 4_o 5_o 6._o wherefore_o man_n must_v conceive_v no_o mystery_n to_o be_v in_o those_o particle_n to_o make_v a_o distinction_n between_o god_n and_o lord_n one_o and_o the_o same_o nature_n or_o person_n be_v certain_o god_n and_o lord_n thus_o david_n say_v 85.8_o psal_n 85.8_o i_o will_v hear_v what_o god_n the_o lord_n will_v speak_v and_o if_o two_o be_v so_o one_o be_v no_o prejudice_n to_o the_o other_o hence_o i_o conclude_v how_o no_o stress_n be_v to_o be_v lay_v upon_o these_o particle_n of_o and_o by_o as_o if_o there_o be_v two_o different_a nature_n and_o principle_n as_o also_o in_o another_o place_n already_o quote_v they_o will_v upon_o the_o particle_n and_o where_o it_o be_v say_v to_o know_v thou_o the_o only_a true_a god_n and_o jesus_n christ_n where_o they_o will_v have_v the_o copulative_a particle_n to_o join_v different_a nature_n and_o person_n to_o exclude_v he_o from_o be_v the_o true_a god_n but_o after_o this_o manner_n of_o interpret_n the_o word_n god_n and_o father_n must_v import_v two_o different_a subject_n and_o nature_n so_o that_o god_n shall_v be_v one_o and_o father_n the_o other_o for_o it_o be_v say_v 1.4_o gal._n 1.4_o according_a to_o the_o will_n of_o god_n and_o our_o father_n which_o contradict_v their_o opinion_n of_o one_o only_a god_n namely_o the_o father_n but_o in_o that_o place_n the_o word_n god_n and_o father_n be_v essential_o take_v for_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n one_o only_a god_n farther_o they_o argue_v thus_o if_o christ_n be_v the_o son_n of_o that_o only_a god_n he_o be_v not_o the_o only_a god_n himself_o or_o else_o he_o will_v be_v his_o own_o son_n but_o he_o be_v not_o his_o own_o son_n therefore_o he_o be_v not_o the_o only_a god_n but_o i_o answer_v the_o son_n be_v distinguish_v from_o that_o one_o god_n not_o as_o to_o the_o nature_n but_o as_o to_o the_o person_n for_o the_o essence_n can_v be_v distinguish_v because_o the_o son_n have_v not_o part_n of_o the_o nature_n but_o whole_o together_o with_o the_o father_n the_o person_n must_v be_v distinguish_v for_o he_o be_v not_o son_n of_o himself_o but_o of_o another_o though_o he_o be_v god_n of_o himself_o hence_o follow_v that_o as_o to_o the_o nature_n the_o son_n be_v that_o one_o god_n not_o as_o to_o the_o person_n see_v in_o nature_n it_o do_v agree_v but_o must_v be_v distinguish_v as_o to_o the_o person_n another_o objection_n be_v this_o if_o christ_n be_v the_o son_n of_o that_o only_a god_n then_o that_o one_o be_v not_o god_n the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n but_o only_o the_o father_n so_o that_o only_a god_n be_v not_o in_o three_o person_n we_o answer_v when_o christ_n be_v call_v the_o son_n of_o one_o god_n one_o god_n be_v there_o take_v for_o the_o person_n of_o the_o father_n or_o as_o it_o subsi_v in_o the_o person_n of_o the_o father_n for_o christ_n be_v the_o son_n only_o of_o god_n the_o father_n but_o when_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n be_v say_v to_o be_v one_o god_n than_o one_o god_n be_v take_v essential_o they_o need_v not_o say_v where_o be_v one_o and_o three_o there_o be_v four_o as_o if_o the_o essence_n and_o three_o person_n be_v four_o thing_n real_o distinct_a but_o we_o answer_v where_o be_v one_o be_v and_o three_z being_n there_o indeed_o be_v four_o but_o not_o where_o be_v one_o be_v and_o three_z manner_n of_o be_v this_o may_v be_v illustrate_v by_o a_o example_n of_o metaphysic_n where_o be_v one_o ens_fw-la or_o be_v and_o three_o as_o property_n or_o quality_n unum_fw-la verum_fw-la and_o bonum_fw-la one_o must_v not_o conclude_v there_o be_v four_o but_o unum_fw-la verum_fw-la bonum_fw-la to_o be_v simple_o one_o be_v wherefore_o see_v in_o this_o most_o simple_a essence_n the_o person_n be_v subsistence_n or_o manner_n of_o subsist_v it_o follow_v that_o three_o person_n and_o one_o nature_n do_v not_o make_v four_o in_o god_n as_o to_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o tertium_fw-la which_o i_o have_v take_v notice_n of_o before_o it_o fail_v here_o because_o the_o essence_n be_v communicable_a for_o divine_a nature_n be_v infinite_a be_v so_o now_o we_o come_v to_o some_o objection_n relate_v to_o the_o son_n of_o god_n eternal_a generation_n the_o father_n alone_o say_v they_o be_v not_o beget_v but_o the_o son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n be_v beget_v and_o make_v so_o can_v be_v the_o true_a god_n we_o know_v how_o the_o relative_a property_n of_o the_o father_n be_v to_o beget_v of_o the_o son_n to_o be_v beget_v and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o proceed_v so_o the_o word_n god_n be_v attribute_v to_o son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n that_o the_o son_n be_v call_v only_o beget_v because_o he_o be_v the_o natural_a son_n and_o the_o first_o bear_v as_o mediator_n because_o he_o have_v many_o brethren_n he_o be_v call_v the_o
other_o but_o divine_a as_o it_o appear_v of_o what_o scripture_n say_v sacrifice_n and_o offering_n thou_o will_v not_o 10.5_o heb._n 10.5_o but_o a_o body_n have_v thou_o prepare_v i_o he_o certain_o need_v have_v have_v a_o be_v before_o this_o natural_a body_n be_v prepare_v for_o he_o i_o then_o he_o be_v a_o person_n before_o the_o body_n this_o inferiority_n must_v be_v understand_v of_o his_o person_n in_o that_o voluntary_a humiliation_n of_o he_o in_o his_o state_n of_o exinanition_n yet_o this_o his_o be_v inferior_a to_o the_o father_n in_o respect_n of_o his_o humanity_n do_v not_o at_o all_o take_v away_o the_o equality_n between_o he_o and_o the_o father_n in_o relation_n to_o his_o divine_a nature_n for_o he_o be_v the_o word_n son_n of_o god_n though_o when_o he_o be_v make_v flesh_n he_o be_v make_v that_o which_o he_o be_v not_o before_o with_o assume_v human_a and_o mortal_a nature_n yet_o he_o still_o remain_v that_o which_o he_o be_v before_o namely_o god_n bless_v for_o ever_o there_o be_v no_o addition_n diminution_n or_o alteration_n in_o his_o divine_a nature_n but_o continue_v the_o same_o person_n of_o the_o most_o holy_a trinity_n beget_v of_o the_o father_n from_o all_o eternity_n christ_n be_v less_o than_o the_o father_n in_o respect_n to_o his_o office_n of_o mediator_n we_o be_v in_o covenant_n with_o god_n not_o upon_o our_o account_n but_o upon_o that_o of_o c●●●st_n who_o be_v thus_o become_v the_o head_n of_o all_o man_n that_o be_v in_o covenant_n with_o god_n and_o in_o relation_n to_o this_o he_o be_v call_v the_o mediator_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n 9.15_o heb._n 9.15_o wherefore_o we_o must_v observe_v how_o in_o scripture_n the_o lord_n jesus_n be_v say_v to_o be_v make_v lord_n and_o ch●ist_n 2.36_o act_n 2.36_o but_o never_o say_v to_o be_v make_v god_n which_o thing_n be_v very_o different_a for_o by_o nature_n god_n be_v lor●_n but_o christ_n by_o will_n and_o appointment_n in_o respect_n of_o his_o personal_a dominion_n and_o of_o the_o oeconomical_a kingdom_n belong_v to_o his_o mediatorship_n he_o be_v god_n absolute_o but_o lord_n and_o christ_n relative_o unto_o we_o god_n essential_o and_z christ_n accidental_o in_o this_o last_o sense_n he_o be_v anoint_v with_o that_o oil_n and_o gift_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n for_o in_o the_o other_o sense_n he_o want_v no_o such_o thing_n he_o be_v not_o anoint_v simple_o as_o god_n but_o as_o christ_n a_o prophet_n a_o priest_n and_o a_o king_n for_o our_o sake_n and_o for_o our_o good_a and_o all_o place_n in_o scripture_n wherein_o the_o father_n be_v say_v to_o be_v great_a than_o christ_n to_o be_v the_o head_n of_o christ_n to_o have_v make_v christ_n lord_n to_o have_v exalt_v and_o anoint_v he_o and_o the_o like_a aught_o to_o be_v ta●●en_v in_o this_o sense_n that_o be_v in_o regard_n of_o his_o human_a nature_n and_o mediatorship_n and_o not_o as_o to_o the_o divine_a for_o when_o this_o be_v speak_v of_o our_o saviour_n himself_o say_v i_o and_o my_o father_n be_v one_o 10.30_o john_n 10.30_o there_o be_v no_o difference_n either_o in_o nature_n or_o power_n after_o this_o manner_n also_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v that_o place_n 27._o john_n 5.22_o 27._o wherein_o the_o father_n be_v say_v to_o have_v commit_v all_o judgement_n unto_o the_o son_n and_o give_v he_o authority_n to_o execute_v judgement_n because_o he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o man_n which_o have_v a_o relation_n to_o his_o office_n of_o mediatorship_n in_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n and_o judgement_n over_o the_o enemy_n thereof_o his_o essential_a kingdom_n he_o have_v of_o himself_o but_o this_o dispensatory_a one_o from_o the_o father_n not_o because_o he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n but_o because_o he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o man_n which_o reason_n tend_v to_o breed_v in_o we_o comfort_n and_o assurance_n in_o that_o we_o be_v to_o be_v judge_v by_o a_o man_n one_o who_o have_v take_v our_o nature_n with_o its_o infirmity_n sin_n except_v will_v compassionate_v we_o for_o he_o be_v tempt_v as_o we_o be_v and_o in_o human_a judgement_n it_o be_v a_o privilege_n to_o be_v wry_v by_o his_o peer_n and_o equal_n that_o be_v of_o the_o same_o ●ank_n and_o condition_n with_o we_o in_o this_o sense_n ought_v also_o to_o be_v take_v the_o place_n where_o it_o be_v say_v the_o son_n also_o shall_v be_v subject_a unto_o he_o that_o put_v all_o thing_n ander_fw-mi he_o 15.28_o 1_o cor._n 15.28_o and_o deliver_v up_o the_o kingdom_n into_o his_o hand_n the_o kingdom_n of_o rule_v govern_v and_o preserve_v of_o the_o church_n this_o give_v or_o dellver_v up_o of_o the_o kingdom_n be_v no_o sign_n of_o inequality_n for_o as_o the_o son_n be_v to_o give_v it_o up_o to_o the_o father_n so_o the_o father_n give_v it_o up_o to_o he_o without_o any_o diminution_n of_o his_o power_n neither_o shall_v the_o son_n receive_v any_o diminution_n of_o he_o he_o shall_v deliver_v it_o in_o a_o perfect_a oeconomical_a administration_n have_v overcome_v all_o enemy_n and_o bring_v all_o his_o elect_n to_o be_v crown_v with_o glory_n so_o there_o will_v be_v no_o more_o to_o do_v no_o need_n of_o be_v a_o king_n in_o that_o respect_n by_o the_o word_n then_o shall_v the_o son_n himself_o be_v subicel_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v the_o account_n he_o be_v to_o give_v of_o his_o administration_n thereof_o and_o this_o be_v a_o kind_n of_o subjection_n which_o shall_v be_v swallow_v up_o in_o that_o perfect_a happiness_n wherein_o god_n will_v be_v all_o in_o all_o no_o more_o enemy_n to_o fight_v no_o more_o need_n of_o a_o mediator_n but_o for_o their_o last_o gasp_n they_o reserve_v a_o frivolous_a and_o insignificant_a exception_n for_o some_o of_o they_o say_v our_o argument_n be_v not_o coherent_a sometime_o we_o plead_v for_o unity_n at_o other_o time_n for_o a_o trinity_n but_o we_o form_n our_o argument_n according_a to_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o matter_n and_o the_o principle_n of_o those_o who_o we_o do_v dispute_v against_o against_o the_o gentile_n and_o heathen_n we_o prove_v that_o there_o be_v but_o one_o true_a god_n against_o the_o jew_n that_o beside_o god_n the_o father_n there_o be_v also_o another_o person_n namely_o the_o son_n of_o god_n who_o be_v also_o true_a god_n we_o be_v to_o deal_v against_o several_a adversary_n to_o this_o truth_n arrian_n sabellian_o samosatenian_o socinian_o tritheist_n etc._n etc._n and_o according_o we_o frame_v our_o argument_n suitable_o with_o the_o principle_n of_o those_o who_o we_o dispute_v against_o if_o i_o deal_v against_o gentile_n my_o argument_n must_v not_o be_v draw_v out_o of_o scripture_n which_o they_o receive_v not_o but_o from_o natural_a reason_n and_o out_o of_o the_o write_n of_o their_o philosopher_n and_o other_o author_n as_o st._n paul_n do_v in_o athens_n act_v 17.28_o so_o if_o against_o samaritan_n i_o must_v argue_v only_o out_o of_o the_o pentatench_n or_o five_o book_n of_o moses_n if_o against_o jew_n only_o out_o of_o the_o old_a testament_n because_o they_o own_v not_o the_o new_a and_o so_o of_o the_o rest_n this_o be_v the_o substance_n of_o what_o they_o say_v in_o opposition_n to_o these_o heavenly_a truth_n which_o to_o compass_v they_o be_v not_o ashamed_a to_o wrest_v scripture_n to_o force_v upon_o they_o a_o sense_n contrary_a to_o the_o design_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o to_o the_o analogy_n of_o faith_n and_o in_o order_n to_o form_v a_o detestable_a system_fw-la whereby_o they_o do_v what_o they_o can_v to_o overthrow_v the_o whole_a foundation_n of_o our_o holy_a religion_n not_o only_o they_o for_o many_o year_n rack_v their_o own_o brain_n to_o extract_v all_o the_o poison_n which_o satan_n can_v infuse_v and_o 〈◊〉_d ●own_v natural_a corruption_n suggest_v but_o also_o call_v for_o help_n upon_o the_o most_o infamous_a and_o abominable_a heretic_n that_o ever_o be_v in_o the_o christian_a world_n and_o out_o of_o all_o make_v a_o quintessence_n of_o all_o that_o erroneous_o impious_o or_o blasphemous_o can_v be_v forge_v or_o say_v against_o the_o divine_a nature_n attribute_n person_n and_o grace_n of_o god_n yet_o not_o whole_o trust_v to_o this_o they_o have_v set_v up_o a_o diana_n a_o god-idol_n of_o their_o own_o even_o their_o own_o natural_a reason_n that_o where_o abuse_v scripture_n can_v serve_v the_o turn_n their_o unreasonable_a imagination_n may_v do_v it_o wherein_o they_o seem_v to_o scorn_v be_v guide_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n where_o it_o do_v not_o answer_v their_o end_n but_o divine_a thing_n must_v not_o be_v measure_v by_o our_o shallow_a capacity_n and_o if_o we_o believe_v scripture_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n than_o we_o must_v receive_v that_o which_o god_n teach_v we_o therein_o and_o we_o must_v not_o
spirit_n supply_v that_o which_o be_v want_v in_o we_o herein_o i_o handle_v not_o only_o some_o thing_n of_o the_o controversy_n but_o also_o do_v in_o some_o measure_n bring_v in_o the_o doctrinal_a part_n which_o be_v a_o great_a help_n to_o the_o elenctical_a and_o upon_o which_o indeed_o this_o last_o must_v be_v ground_v for_o i_o write_v not_o only_o to_o refute_v but_o also_o to_o instruct_v and_o afford_v a_o preservative_n against_o the_o poison_n and_o though_o sometime_o i_o bring_v in_o thing_n which_o direct_o relate_v to_o the_o jew_n yet_o they_o reach_v socinian_o as_o well_o as_o jew_n for_o both_o be_v enemy_n the_o first_o indeed_o deny_v christ_n to_o be_v the_o messiah_n though_o the_o ancient_n own_v he_o to_o be_v god_n and_o socinian_o own_o he_o to_o be_v a_o messiah_n but_o deny_v he_o to_o be_v true_a god_n i_o omit_v the_o debate_n about_o the_o divinity_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o of_o the_o high_a point_n of_o christ_n satisfaction_n etc._n etc._n the_o meditation_n on_o the_o most_o holy_a trinity_n and_o the_o lord_n jesus_n his_o divinity_n afford_v matter_n enough_o to_o fill_v up_o these_o sheet_n wherein_o i_o hope_v the_o truth_n be_v clear_v and_o confirm_v and_o error_n refute_v if_o the_o reader_n find_v good_a by_o it_o as_o i_o pray_v god_n be_v may_v as_o it_o do_v come_v from_o god_n so_o from_o first_o to_o last_o let_v he_o return_v the_o whole_a praise_n and_o glory_n to_o he_o who_o alone_o it_o belong_v unto_o the_o content_n of_o the_o chapter_n chap._n i._o of_o the_o person_n of_o head_n socinian_n and_o of_o their_o opinion_n page_n 1_o chap._n ii_o of_o divine_a essence_n p._n 13._o chap._n iii_o of_o the_o person_n of_o the_o godhead_n p._n 16._o chap._n iu._n of_o the_o holy_a trinity_n p._n 22._o chap._n v._o of_o christ_n divinity_n p._n 46._o chap._n vi_o christ_n be_v true_a natural_a son_n of_o god_n by_o eternal_a generation_n p._n 84._o chap._n vii_o essential_a divine_a attribute_n belong_v to_o christ_n p._n 138._o chap._n viii_o work_n proper_a to_o god_n belong_v to_o christ_n page_n 161._o chap._n ix_o worship_n proper_a and_o due_a to_o the_o true_a god_n belong_v to_o christ_n p._n 185._o chap._n x._o the_o socinian_o objection_n answer_v p._n 260._o chap._n xi_o animadversion_n upon_o a_o book_n call_v christianity_n not_o mysterious_a p._n 315._o chap._n i._o of_o the_o person_n of_o head_n socinian_n and_o of_o their_o opinion_n our_o bless_a lord_n and_o saviour_n in_o his_o parable_n 13_o parable_n mat._n 13_o of_o the_o sour_a and_o the_o tare_n do_v plain_o declare_v and_o forewarn_v we_o of_o what_o shall_v befall_v his_o church_n from_o his_o time_n which_o be_v that_o of_o her_o birth_n unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n in_o general_n the_o field_n be_v the_o world_n but_o in_o particular_a it_o be_v his_o church_n the_o sour_a as_o he_o explain_v it_o be_v himself_o both_o in_o person_n and_o by_o mean_n of_o the_o labourer_n his_o disciple_n and_o other_o servant_n of_o he_o the_o good_a seed_n be_v the_o child_n of_o the_o kingdom_n and_o the_o true_a sound_a doctrine_n thereof_o teach_v by_o his_o faithful_a minister_n but_o the_o tare_n be_v the_o child_n of_o the_o wicked_a one_o not_o only_o as_o to_o person_n but_o in_o relation_n to_o false_a doctrine_n error_n and_o heresy_n which_o whilst_o men_n that_o ought_v to_o have_v watch_v sleep_v christ_n enemy_n which_o be_v the_o devil_n take_v that_o opportunity_n for_o he_o lose_v none_o and_o in_o part_n through_o the_o fault_n of_o the_o watchman_n do_v his_o work_n this_o mystery_n be_v by_o s._n paul_n represent_v under_o the_o notion_n and_o name_n of_o a_o building_n whereof_o the_o lord_n jesus_n be_v the_o foundation_n for_o say_v he_o 12._o he_o 1_o cor._n 3.11_o 12._o other_o foundation_n can_v no_o man_n lay_v the_o wise_a and_o faithful_a builder_n do_v upon_o that_o foundation_n build_v gold_n silver_n and_o precious_a stone_n but_o the_o unfaithful_a and_o mercenary_a be_v not_o content_a to_o raise_v a_o superstructure_n of_o their_o own_o which_o be_v wood_n hay_o and_o stubble_n but_o also_o attempt_v to_o overthrow_v the_o foundation_n and_o in_o opposition_n to_o the_o city_n of_o god_n will_v build_v a_o babel_n of_o their_o own_o yet_o i_o make_v no_o doubt_n but_o through_o god_n just_a judgement_n it_o will_v at_o last_o end_n in_o their_o confusion_n as_o 〈◊〉_d happen_v unto_o all_o that_o 5.39_o that_o act_n 5.39_o be_v find_v even_o to_o fight_v against_o god_n sure_o in_o the_o superlative_a degree_n they_o fight_v against_o god_n who_o reach_n and_o as_o far_o as_o they_o can_v do_v strike_v at_o divine_a nature_n and_o at_o the_o godhead_n itself_o which_o any_o one_o do_v that_o speak_v or_o write_v against_o the_o holy_a trinity_n of_o person_n or_o deny_v the_o divinity_n of_o the_o son_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o socinian_n do_v to_o what_o i_o say_v etc._n say_v serious_n advice_n to_o a_o preservative_n against_o etc._n etc._n elsewhere_o of_o the_o author_n of_o such_o blasphemy_n i_o shall_v add_v some_o few_o circumstance_n of_o their_o rise_n and_o progress_n whereby_o it_o will_v appear_v how_o as_o the_o devil_n at_o our_o saviour_n come_v into_o the_o world_n be_v very_o busy_a to_o use_v mean_n and_o by_o herod_n to_o destroy_v his_o person_n so_o by_o the_o scribe_n and_o pharisee_n to_o oppose_v the_o preach_a and_o progress_n of_o the_o gospel_n thus_o about_o the_o time_n when_o god_n disperse_v popish_a error_n darkness_n and_o ignorance_n and_o through_o a_o happy_a reformation_n cause_v the_o light_n of_o the_o gospel_n again_o to_o shine_v the_o same_o enemy_n to_o god_n and_o mankind_n stir_v up_o instrument_n to_o stop_v the_o work_n or_o at_o least_o to_o corrupt_v and_o hinder_v it_o from_o come_v to_o its_o due_a perfection_n these_o hellish_a instrument_n be_v michael_n servetus_n bear_v in_o artagon_n one_o of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o spain_n who_o have_v past_o his_o youth_n in_o africa_n among_o jew_n and_o mahometan_n be_v infect_v with_o their_o blasphemy_n and_o be_v come_v back_o into_o europe_n do_v in_o 1525._o write_v book_n entitle_v the_o divine_a nature_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o error_n of_o the_o trinity_n etc._n etc._n that_o wretch_n make_v such_o a_o abominable_a and_o hellish_a comparison_n of_o the_o most_o adorable_a trinity_n that_o i_o abhor_v to_o think_v on_o it_o much_o more_o to_o set_v it_o down_o upon_o paper_n he_o come_v to_o geneva_n where_o neither_o the_o write_n of_o nor_o conference_n with_o calvin_n can_v work_v upon_o he_o so_o that_o at_o last_o in_o the_o year_n 1553._o he_o there_o be_v put_v to_o death_n for_o blasphemy_n and_o sedition_n the_o next_o be_v valentinus_n gentilis_fw-la of_o cosenza_n in_o italy●_n who_o forge_v the_o blasphemy_n of_o three_o god_n and_o otherwise_o corrupt_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o unity_n of_o essence_n and_o trinity_n of_o person_n this_o man_n after_o servetus_n death_n be_v in_o the_o same_o town_n put_v in_o prison_n and_o recant_v soon_o after_o he_o go_v away_o but_o return_v to_o his_o vomit_n for_o he_o again_o assert_v it_o in_o public_a and_o disperse_v it_o in_o poland_n and_o suitzerland_n but_o be_v take_v in_o the_o canton_n of_o bern_n in_o 1566._o be_v there_o put_v to_o death_n laelius_n socinus_n son_n to_o marius_n socinus_n a_o famous_a lawyer_n of_o sienna_n come_v also_o to_o geneva_n which_o at_o that_o time_n be_v the_o great_a place_n of_o refuge_n for_o those_o who_o go_v out_o of_o italy_n and_o neighbour_a country_n to_o forsake_v popery_n where_o he_o be_v know_v to_o calvin_n and_o thence_o he_o go_v to_o zurich_n but_o calvin_n have_v find_v he_o out_o do_v write_v he_o two_o sharp_a letter_n one_o in_o 1552._o the_o other_o in_o 1555._o at_o zurich_n he_o do_v but_o under_o the_o borrow_a name_n of_o martinus_n bellius_n write_v something_o to_o show_v how_o servetus_n have_v unjust_o be_v put_v to_o death_n in_o his_o commentary_n upon_o the_o first_o chapter_n of_o john_n he_o lay_v the_o foundation_n of_o whole_a socinianism_n which_o indeed_o be_v but_o a_o chaos_n and_o confusion_n of_o natural_a and_o spiritual_a ignorance_n and_o a_o mere_a contempt_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n zanchius_n be_v one_o of_o the_o first_o that_o refute_v it_o this_o loelius_n all_o the_o while_o he_o converse_v with_o zanchius_n never_o open_v himself_o to_o he_o only_o seem_v to_o propound_v he_o question_n according_a to_o the_o schoolway_n to_o exercise_v his_o part_n but_o not_o to_o be_v positive_a so_o that_o indeed_o he_o impose_v upon_o he_o and_o melanchton_n so_o cunning_a be_v he_o not_o to_o discover_v his_o opinion_n byr_o his_o nephew_n faustus_n bear_v in_o sienna_n in_o 1538._o be_v a_o bold_a man_n
essence_n also_o they_o make_v a_o confusion_n between_o be_v and_o the_o manner_n of_o it_o and_o they_o ask_v we_o why_o we_o do_v not_o rather_o multiply_v essence_n in_o the_o plurality_n of_o the_o person_n than_o person_n in_o the_o unity_n of_o essence_n whereunto_o we_o answer_v that_o we_o therein_o follow_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o the_o word_n and_o he_o who_o make_v three_o essence_n do_v also_o make_v three_o god_n but_o he_o that_o say_v there_o be_v one_o divine_a nature_n in_o three_o person_n do_v not_o make_v three_o god_n now_o scripture_n and_o reason_n teach_v we_o there_o be_v but_o one_o god_n and_o the_o same_o scripture_n say_v also_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n be_v but_o one_o god_n and_o it_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v how_o the_o word_n father_n when_o use_v alone_o as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o lord_n prayer_n without_o relation_n to_o the_o son_n be_v as_o well_o as_o that_o of_o god_n common_a to_o the_o three_o person_n but_o when_o it_o signify_v a_o person_n of_o the_o trinity_n first_o in_o order_n then_o it_o be_v relative_o to_o the_o son_n now_o the_o plurality_n of_o person_n in_o one_o divine_a essence_n be_v prove_v by_o argument_n draw_v out_o of_o five_o several_a head_n whereof_o the_o first_o do_v consist_v in_o several_a clear_a testimony_n out_o of_o scripture_n second_o from_o the_o relative_n or_o opposite_a relation_n as_o father_n son_n spirit_z to_o beget_v to_o be_v beget_v and_o to_o proceed_v from_o the_o father_n and_o from_o the_o son_n three_o by_o distinguish_a property_n as_o creator_n to_o the_o father_n redeemer_n to_o the_o son_n sanctifier_n to_o the_o holy_a ghost_n four_o by_o peculiar_a apparition_n to_o be_v read_v in_o both_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n and_o five_o by_o different_a operation_n the_o four_o last_o i_o shall_v not_o insist_v upon_o only_o some_o of_o they_o i_o shall_v have_v occasion_n to_o speak_v of_o in_o some_o place_n of_o my_o discourse_n but_o the_o first_o i_o intend_v by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n chief_o to_o enlarge_v upon_o these_o scripture_n proof_n be_v of_o three_o kind_n the_o first_o speak_v of_o a_o plurality_n of_o person_n in_o god_n the_o second_o of_o three_o person_n and_o the_o three_o mention_n the_o son_n by_o himself_o and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n by_o himself_o for_o about_o the_o father_n there_o be_v no_o dispute_n yet_o to_o avoid_v prolixity_n we_o shall_v make_v use_n only_o of_o some_o few_o place_n out_o of_o the_o many_o which_o scripture_n do_v afford_v we_o shall_v begin_v with_o that_o of_o genesis_n 1.1_o genesis_n gen._n 1.1_o in_o the_o beginning_n god_n create_v in_o the_o hebrew_n the_o word_n god_n be_v in_o the_o plural_a number_n not_o eloah_n which_o be_v the_o singular_a but_o elohim_n the_o plural_a sure_o there_o must_v be_v some_o reason_n why_o a_o nominative_a in_o the_o plural_a be_v join_v to_o a_o verb_n in_o the_o singular_a as_o bara_n be_v that_o signify_v create_v certain_o this_o show_v some_o kind_n of_o plurality_n in_o the_o divine_a nature_n we_o may_v well_o say_v it_o be_v not_o without_o cause_n that_o in_o a_o tongue_n whereof_o in_o a_o special_a manner_n god_n be_v the_o author_n and_o in_o which_o be_v many_o name_n in_o the_o singular_a number_n yet_o this_o in_o the_o plural_a be_v make_v use_n of_o to_o signify_v god_n not_o only_o in_o this_o place_n but_o very_o often_o and_o in_o many_o more_o there_o be_v many_o other_o name_n of_o god_n but_o none_o more_o frequent_o use_v than_o this_o in_o the_o plural_a why_o then_o if_o in_o the_o godhead_n there_o be_v but_o one_o single_a person_n shall_v god_n delight_v so_o much_o in_o be_v call_v so_o often_o in_o the_o plural_a i_o say_v far_o that_o as_o the_o history_n of_o the_o creation_n can_v not_o be_v write_v but_o by_o help_n of_o revelation_n and_o that_o god_n choose_v moses_n a_o man_n of_o very_o great_a wisdom_n so_o 〈◊〉_d be_v inspire_v of_o god_n insert_v therein_o nothing_o 〈◊〉_d may_v be_v call_v rash_a and_o superfluous_a so_o it_o be_v 〈◊〉_d at_o a_o venture_n that_o he_o choose_v that_o word_n among_o so_o many_o other_o to_o name_n god_n in_o the_o great_a work_n of_o creation_n which_o be_v terminate_v outward_o be_v common_a and_o belong_v to_o the_o three_o person_n of_o the_o trinity_n and_o a_o thing_n very_o observable_a be_v that_o in_o that_o first_o chapter_n of_o genesis_n no_o less_o than_o thirty_o two_o time_n that_o very_o same_o word_n elohim_n in_o the_o plural_a be_v construe_v with_o a_o verb_n in_o the_o singular_a when_o in_o the_o second_o chapter_n that_o of_o jehovah_n which_o be_v a_o singular_a be_v eleven_o time_n join_v to_o the_o verb_n of_o a_o singular_a number_n what_o else_o can_v the_o plural_a number_n in_o god_n signify_v but_o some_o plurality_n the_o name_n elohim_n be_v the_o first_o give_v to_o god_n in_o scripture_n and_o though_o it_o be_v plural_a yet_o it_o be_v not_o personal_a but_o essential_a and_o according_a to_o the_o hebrew_n idiom_n be_v speak_v both_o of_o the_o nature_n and_o of_o the_o person_n hence_o there_o be_v only_o one_o elohim_n not_o three_o as_o in_o the_o athanasian_n creed_n it_o be_v well_o observe_v that_o the_o father_n be_v almighty_a the_o son_n almighty_n the_o holy_a ghost_n almighty_a yet_o not_o three_o almighty_n but_o only_o one_o now_o the_o name_n elohim_n be_v derive_v from_o god_n power_n there_o be_v not_o three_o elohim_n no_o more_o than_o three_o almighty_n wherefore_o it_o be_v join_v with_o a_o adjective_n singular_a elohim_a zaddik_n deus_n just_a o_o god_n righteous_a psal_n 7.10_o which_o they_o who_o be_v for_o three_o spirit_n and_o three_o substance_n be_v desire_v to_o take_v notice_n of_o and_o how_o their_o hypothesis_n be_v herein_o contrary_a to_o the_o athanasian_n creed_n farthermore_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o 20.2_o the_o exod._n 20.2_o decalogue_n this_o word_n elohim_n be_v join_v with_o the_o pronoun_n possessive_a in_o the_o singular_a thy_o though_o the_o word_n god_n be_v in_o the_o plural_a and_o 24.19_o and_o josh_n 24.19_o elsewhere_o we_o have_v it_o join_v with_o a_o adjective_n in_o the_o plural_a and_o with_o a_o relative_n in_o the_o singular_a he_o be_v a_o holy_a god_n he_o be_v in_o the_o singular_a god_n and_o holy_a be_v in_o the_o plural_a nay_o we_o have_v it_o also_o prefix_v to_o a_o verb_n in_o the_o plural_a where_o abraham_n say_v 20.13_o say_v gen._n 20.13_o when_o god_n cause_v this_o verb_n be_v in_o the_o plural_a i_o to_o wander_v so_o we_o have_v it_o elsewhere_o 7.23_o elsewhere_o 2_o sam._n 7.23_o hence_o we_o may_v conclude_v how_o in_o the_o text_n in_o hand_n not_o by_o chance_n but_o by_o a_o special_a divine_a direction_n the_o name_n god_n be_v in_o the_o plural_a number_n and_o in_o the_o place_n already_o quote_v in_o the_o preface_n of_o the_o ten_o commandment_n god_n make_v use_v of_o the_o lord_n jehovah_n and_o god_n elohim_n the_o one_o as_o it_o seem_v to_o declare_v the_o unity_n of_o his_o nature_n and_o the_o other_o the_o plurality_n of_o the_o person_n adonai_n a_o name_n of_o god_n also_o in_o the_o plural_a number_n be_v frequent_o use_v either_o when_o god_n speak_v of_o himself_o or_o man_n to_o or_o of_o he_o another_o text_n to_o prove_v the_o plurality_n of_o person_n in_o the_o godhead_n be_v this_o 1.26_o this_o gen._n 1.26_o let_v we_o make_v man_n in_o our_o image_n and_o after_o our_o likeness_n which_o be_v a_o exhortation_n to_o the_o other_o person_n that_o have_v a_o hand_n in_o the_o creation_n the_o verb_n and_o the_o pronoun_n be_v use_v in_o the_o plural_a it_o be_v not_o say_v let_v i_o but_o let_v we_o make_v it_o be_v not_o say_v in_o my_o but_o in_o our_o image_n not_o after_o my_o but_o after_o our_o likeness_n this_o manner_n of_o speak_v so_o different_a from_o the_o forego_n be_v not_o in_o vain_a but_o with_o a_o purpose_n to_o give_v we_o for_o who_o sake_n that_o history_n be_v write_v a_o subject_a to_o meditate_v upon_o i_o know_v they_o say_v god_n there_o speak_v as_o it_o be_v usual_a with_o prince_n in_o the_o plural_a number_n for_o majesty_n and_o greatness_n sake_n and_o what_o if_o great_a man_n do_v so_o must_v this_o through_o man_n wander_n be_v father_v also_o upon_o god_n prince_n do_v represent_v their_o people_n and_o also_o they_o comprehend_v their_o counselor_n whence_o it_o be_v that_o in_o every_o proclamation_n we_o have_v that_o form_n by_o the_o advice_n of_o our_o privy_a council_n which_o god_n do_v not_o want_v let_v we_o more_o serious_o consider_v this_o do_v god_n speak_v it_o to_o no_o body_n i_o be_o necessitate_v to_o make_v use_n of_o that_o expression_n or_o to_o some_o
they_o do_v penetrate_v one_o another_o for_o they_o most_o perfect_o and_o infinite_o know_v and_o love_v one_o another_o now_o love_n be_v a_o earnest_n desire_v of_o union_n so_o than_o they_o be_v most_o entire_o unite_v the_o apostle_n make_v the_o necessary_a difference_n of_o the_o three_o on_o earth_n he_o say_v they_o agree_v in_o one_o but_o of_o the_o three_o in_o heaven_n he_o say_v they_o be_v one._n moreover_o either_o one_o know_v something_o which_o the_o other_o do_v not_o or_o love_v something_o which_o the_o other_o do_v not_o love_n or_o can_v do_v something_o which_o the_o other_o can_v do_v or_o not_o if_o the_o former_a how_o be_v they_o god_n for_o god_n know_v and_o can_v do_v all_o if_o the_o last_o than_o not_o only_o they_o have_v one_o will_n but_o also_o one_o mind_n one_o power_n one_o knowledge_n one_o love_n now_o let_v man_n think_v upon_o several_a nature_n of_o the_o same_o kind_n which_o mutual_o do_v penetrate_v themselves_o and_o by_o a_o mutual_a inclination_n do_v embrace_v and_o unite_v themselves_o inseparable_o and_o have_v the_o same_o thought_n will_n and_o action_n do_v not_o all_o this_o conclude_v for_o one_o and_o the_o same_o nature_n and_o that_o there_o be_v no_o difference_n but_o in_o some_o manner_n of_o exist_v which_o because_o they_o be_v such_o be_v distinct_a one_o from_o another_o without_o confusion_n all_o which_o from_o oneness_n of_o will_n lead_v to_o oneness_n of_o essence_n for_o the_o will_n of_o god_n be_v not_o a_o thing_n different_a from_o his_o nature_n another_o text_n wherein_o the_o most_o holy_a trinity_n be_v demonstrate_v and_o not_o only_o may_v be_v read_v but_o also_o be_v hear_v and_o see_v be_v that_o about_o our_o saviour_n baptism_n where_o the_o father_n speak_v from_o heaven_n and_o call_v he_o his_o son_n christ_n the_o son_n be_v baptize_v and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n appear_v in_o the_o shape_n of_o a_o dove_n if_o man_n do_v believe_v scripture_n this_o they_o must_v believe_v to_o be_v true_a s._n austin_n look_v upon_o this_o text_n as_o a_o strong_a and_o convince_a proof_n of_o that_o divine_a and_o essential_a truth_n vade_fw-la ad_fw-la jordanem_fw-la etc._n etc._n say_v he_o go_v to_o the_o river_n jordan_n and_o there_o thou_o shall_v find_v the_o holy_a trinity_n and_o be_v convince_v of_o the_o verity_n thereof_o beside_o these_o we_o have_v a_o cloud_n of_o other_o witness_n to_o prove_v this_o truth_n where_o the_o three_o person_n be_v mention_v under_o their_o proper_a name_n and_o first_o 23._o first_o act_n 2.22_o 23._o this_o jesus_n be_v by_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n exalt_v and_o have_v receive_v of_o the_o father_n the_o promise_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o three_o person_n be_v plain_o name_v again_o the_o same_o jesus_n christ_n be_v declare_v 4._o declare_v rom._n 1.3_o 4._o to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n with_o power_n according_a to_o the_o spirit_n of_o holiness_n elsewhere_o the_o same_o apostle_n say_v 6._o say_v tit._n 3.4_o 5_o 6._o god_n save_v we_o by_o the_o wash_n of_o regeneration_n and_o renew_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n through_o jesus_n christ_n and_o in_o another_o place_n 4.6_o place_n gal._n 4.6_o god_n have_v send_v forth_o the_o spirit_n of_o his_o son_n into_o your_o heart_n by_o the_o word_n god_n be_v mean_v the_o person_n of_o the_o father_n 9.14_o father_n heb._n 9.14_o how_o much_o more_o shall_v the_o blood_n of_o christ_n who_o through_o the_o eternal_a spirit_n offer_v himself_o without_o spot_n to_o god_n furthermore_o 2.18_o furthermore_o ephes_n 2.18_o through_o he_o christ_n we_o both_o have_v a_o access_n by_o one_o spirit_n unto_o the_o father_n our_o bless_a saviour_n himself_o out_o of_o his_o own_o sacred_a mouth_n do_v plain_o and_o positive_o speak_v to_o this_o purpose_n when_o he_o say_v 14.16.17_o say_v john_n 14.16.17_o i_o will_v pray_v the_o father_n and_o he_o will_v give_v you_o another_o comforter_n the_o father_n i_o the_o son_n and_o the_o comforter_n who_o he_o call_v the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n be_v three_o person_n which_o in_o the_o next_o chapter_n 26._o chapter_n chap._n 15_o 26._o be_v by_o he_o repeat_v but_o when_o the_o comforter_n be_v come_v who_o i_o will_v send_v to_o you_o from_o the_o father_n even_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n one_o text_n more_o i_o shall_v bring_v to_o confirm_v this_o 13.14_o this_o 2_o cor._n 13.14_o the_o grace_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n and_o the_o love_n of_o god_n that_o be_v the_o father_n and_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v with_o you_o all_o and_o in_o the_o text_n of_o another_o apostle_n 1.2_o apostle_n 1_o pet._n 1.2_o be_v contain_v the_o working_n of_o the_o three_o person_n in_o the_o trinity_n elect_v according_a to_o the_o before_o knowledge_n of_o god_n the_o father_n through_o the_o sanctification_n of_o the_o spirit_n unto_o obedience_n and_o sprinkle_n of_o the_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n as_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v full_a of_o proof_n to_o confirm_v this_o holy_a doctrine_n for_o indeed_o these_o mystery_n of_o the_o trinity_n and_o incarnation_n be_v more_o clear_o and_o full_o therein_o relate_v so_o out_o of_o the_o old_a testament_n we_o have_v enough_o to_o confute_v the_o enemy_n of_o this_o truth_n and_o because_o we_o look_v upon_o socinian_o in_o their_o principle_n to_o be_v a_o sort_n of_o jew_n and_o as_o well_o as_o they_o blasphemer_n against_o our_o holy_a and_o bless_a saviour_n so_o we_o will_v bring_v such_o argument_n against_o they_o as_o we_o will_v if_o we_o be_v dispute_v against_o unbelieving_a jew_n only_o a_o few_o text_n out_o of_o many_o we_o begin_v with_o the_o book_n of_o genesis_n chap._n 1._o wherein_o be_v contain_v a_o relation_n of_o the_o history_n of_o the_o creation_n which_o be_v a_o work_n common_a to_o the_o three_o person_n of_o the_o trinity_n and_o though_o we_o may_v not_o look_v upon_o it_o as_o the_o clear_a upon_o the_o matter_n yet_o in_o it_o be_v light_a enough_o to_o show_v the_o truth_n we_o now_o assert_v i_o shall_v say_v nothing_o of_o the_o name_n god_n under_o that_o of_o elohim_n which_o already_o we_o have_v speak_v of_o as_o represent_v the_o plurality_n of_o person_n in_o the_o most_o holy_a trinity_n but_o we_o may_v say_v that_o though_o the_o name_n god_n be_v there_o which_o it_o be_v not_o in_o the_o singular_a and_o take_v for_o the_o person_n of_o the_o father_n yet_o the_o son_n have_v a_o hand_n in_o the_o act_n of_o creation_n for_o it_o be_v god_n say_v here_o be_v the_o word_n which_o be_v the_o proper_a name_n of_o the_o son_n our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n who_o in_o scripture_n especial_o by_o s._n john_n be_v so_o often_o call_v by_o that_o name_n the_o word_n god_n say_v and_o speak_v be_v that_o which_o make_v the_o world_n we_o read_v god_n say_v when_o any_o thing_n be_v create_v which_o be_v compare_v with_o what_o be_v speak_v by_o john_n 1.3_o john_n john_n 1.3_o all_o thing_n be_v make_v by_o he_o that_o be_v the_o word_n the_o person_n of_o jesus_n christ_n for_o actiones_fw-la sunt_fw-la suppositorum_fw-la act_v be_v proper_a to_o person_n and_o without_o he_o be_v not_o any_o thing_n make_v that_o be_v make_v now_o that_o word_n god_n say_v be_v that_o which_o create_v every_o thing_n so_o then_o here_o be_v the_o person_n of_o the_o son_n but_o we_o also_o find_v the_o person_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n 1.2_o gen._n 1.2_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n move_v upon_o the_o face_n of_o the_o water_n by_o his_o act_n represent_v by_o motion_n to_o cherish_v give_v life_n and_o motion_n to_o thing_n as_o a_o hen_n do_v when_o sit_v upon_o her_o egg_n for_o the_o word_n in_o the_o original_a signify_v such_o a_o thing_n this_o sense_n be_v give_v by_o a_o competent_a interpreter_n 33.6.9_o interpreter_n psal_n 33.6.9_o by_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v the_o heaven_n make_v and_o all_o the_o host_n thereof_o by_o the_o breath_n of_o his_o mouth_n here_o we_o can_v read_v distinct_o the_o lord_n if_o it_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v only_o of_o the_o first_o person_n about_o which_o there_o be_v no_o dispute_n the_o word_n and_o the_o breath_n or_o spirit_n this_o though_o it_o be_v clear_a i_o can_v set_v in_o a_o great_a light_n with_o compare_v it_o with_o other_o place_n which_o i_o now_o forbear_v to_o do_v because_o i_o shall_v have_v occasion_n to_o make_v use_n of_o they_o in_o some_o other_o branch_n of_o my_o discourse_n another_o text_n be_v this_o 42.1_o this_o isai_n 42.1_o behold_v my_o servant_n who_o i_o uphold_v my_o elect_a in_o who_o my_o soul_n delight_v i_o have_v put_v my_o spirit_n upon_o he_o beside_o the_o person_n that_o speak_v namely_o the_o father_n here_o we_o have_v the_o son_n under_o the_o name_n
put_v our_o whole_a trust_n and_o confidence_n not_o only_o in_o the_o father_n but_o also_o in_o the_o son_n and_o in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n so_o thereby_o we_o own_o and_o declare_v they_o to_o be_v god_n as_o the_o father_n and_o in_o the_o lord_n prayer_n which_o be_v part_n of_o the_o worship_n we_o render_v unto_o god_n though_o we_o name_n but_o one_o that_o be_v the_o father_n yet_o we_o mean_v all_o for_o the_o word_n be_v take_v essential_o for_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n and_o not_o personal_o only_o for_o the_o first_o person_n because_o the_o whole_a trinity_n be_v our_o father_n in_o respect_n of_o creation_n preservation_n and_o redemption_n for_o every_o such_o outward_a work_n as_o say_v before_o be_v common_a to_o the_o three_o person_n and_o so_o we_o address_v our_o prayer_n to_o all_o three_o now_o i_o shall_v lay_v down_o some_o few_o argument_n to_o prove_v the_o truth_n this_o be_v one_o he_o in_o who_o name_n we_o be_v baptise_a be_v the_o true_a eternal_a god_n but_o we_o be_v baptise_a in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n therefore_o they_o three_o be_v true_a eternal_a god_n the_o major_n be_v clear_a for_o baptism_n be_v a_o covenant_n not_o with_o man_n or_o any_o creature_n but_o with_o god_n alone_o as_o it_o appear_v out_o of_o 3.21_o of_o 1_o pet._n 3.21_o peter_n where_o baptism_n be_v call_v a_o stipulation_n or_o answer_n of_o a_o good_a conscience_n towards_o god_n second_o they_o in_o who_o name_n we_o be_v baptise_a do_v justify_v we_o but_o we_o be_v baptise_a in_o the_o name_n of_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n wherefore_o they_o justify_v we_o and_o consequent_o they_o be_v true_a eternal_a god_n for_o none_o can_v justify_v but_o 8.33_o but_o rom._n 4.5_o &_o chap._n 8.33_o god_n alone_o three_o they_o who_o regenerate_v we_o be_v the_o true_a eternal_a god_n but_o they_o in_o who_o name_n we_o be_v baptize_v do_v regenerate_v we_o ergo_fw-la they_o be_v the_o true_a eternal_a god_n such_o as_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n if_o they_o deny_v those_o in_o who_o name_n we_o be_v baptize_v to_o justify_v and_o regenerate_v we_o we_o prove_v it_o for_o the_o wash_v in_o baptism_n signify_v our_o justification_n and_o regeneration_n which_o be_v perform_v by_o those_o in_o who_o name_n we_o be_v baptize_v which_o be_v clear_a out_o of_o st._n paul_n word_n that_o 5.26_o that_o ephes_n 5.26_o be_v christ_n may_v sanctify_v and_o cleanse_v it_o the_o church_n with_o the_o wash_n of_o water_n by_o the_o word_n and_o in_o another_o place_n he_o 3.5_o he_o tit._n 3.5_o save_v we_o by_o the_o wash_n of_o regeneration_n and_o another_o argument_n be_v this_o they_o who_o save_v we_o be_v true_a eternal_a god_n but_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n do_v therefore_o they_o be_v the_o true_a eternal_a god_n the_o major_a proposition_n be_v prove_v out_o of_o the_o prophet_n 21._o prophet_n isa_n 45.15_o 17_o 21._o o_o god_n of_o israel_n the_o saviour_n also_o israel_n shall_v be_v save_v in_o the_o lord_n with_o a_o everlasting_a salvation_n and_o i_o the_o lord_n and_o there_o be_v no_o god_n else_o beside_o i_o a_o just_a god_n and_o a_o saviour_n there_o be_v none_o beside_o i_o the_o expression_n in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n be_v observable_a for_o the_o name_n signify_v 1.6_o signify_v malac._n 1.6_o authority_n now_o because_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n be_v but_o one_o and_o the_o same_o for_o we_o be_v equal_o baptize_v in_o their_o name_n so_o the_o dignity_n be_v the_o same_o if_o so_o then_o these_o three_o person_n be_v but_o one_o god_n for_o none_o can_v have_v equal_a dignity_n with_o the_o father_n except_o he_o be_v god_n such_o a_o dignity_n have_v the_o son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n against_o this_o they_o object_v how_o the_o father_n be_v say_v 10.2_o say_v 1_o cor._n 10.2_o to_o be_v baptize_v unto_o moses_n but_o that_o be_v not_o to_o the_o purpose_n it_o be_v of_o a_o different_a nature_n in_o that_o place_n the_o design_n be_v to_o show_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o jew_n to_o be_v the_o type_n and_o figure_n of_o we_o but_o here_o the_o question_n be_v about_o the_o name_n and_o authority_n whereby_o we_o be_v baptize_v they_o be_v baptize_v under_o the_o ministry_n but_o not_o in_o the_o name_n of_o moses_n so_o now_o minister_n do_v baptize_v but_o not_o in_o their_o own_o name_n or_o authority_n chap._n v._o of_o christ_n divinity_n now_o i_o must_v come_v to_o the_o three_o classis_fw-la of_o my_o proof_n out_o of_o scripture_n namely_o those_o text_n which_o speak_v singular_o of_o the_o son_n as_o true_a eternal_a god_n the_o like_a of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o our_o bless_a saviour_n from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n to_o the_o time_n he_o be_v manifest_v in_o the_o flesh_n be_v the_o chief_a object_n of_o prophecy_n because_o in_o he_o through_o a_o eternal_a and_o unchangeable_a decree_n be_v the_o ground_n of_o the_o great_a of_o all_o outward_a god_n work_n for_o i_o look_v upon_o redemption_n on_o some_o account_n great_a than_o creation_n so_o from_o time_n to_o time_n god_n take_v care_n to_o renew_v and_o confirm_v the_o first_o gracious_a promise_n of_o the_o seed_n of_o the_o woman_n under_o several_a name_n of_o shiloh_n messiah_n emmanuel_n the_o branch_n etc._n etc._n and_o to_o describe_v he_o with_o several_a name_n and_o circumstance_n that_o when_o he_o be_v come_v there_o shall_v be_v no_o just_a cause_n to_o mistake_v or_o deny_v he_o to_o be_v he_o and_o the_o same_o and_o withal_o it_o be_v declare_v what_o he_o shall_v be_v in_o his_o person_n and_o do_v in_o his_o office_n so_o also_o what_o he_o be_v before_o he_o come_v namely_o god_n by_o his_o nature_n and_o attribute_n all_o which_o after_o his_o incarnation_n be_v so_o high_o confirm_v both_o by_o a_o far_a revelation_n and_o many_o wonder_n but_o as_o 2.34_o as_o luk._n 2.34_o he_o be_v set_v for_o a_o sign_n which_o shall_v be_v speak_v against_o so_o than_o he_o be_v oppose_v and_o so_o be_v now_o by_o the_o enemy_n to_o his_o person_n office_n and_o doctrine_n but_o against_o such_o detestable_a wretch_n he_o have_v not_o leave_v himself_o without_o witness_n to_o make_v himself_o know_v to_o be_v what_o he_o real_o be_v even_o god_n bless_v for_o ever_o wherefore_o our_o saviour_n command_v we_o to_o 5.39_o to_o john_n 5.39_o search_v the_o scripture_n for_o they_o testify_v of_o he_o therein_o we_o shall_v find_v his_o deity_n this_o course_n himself_o take_v when_o beginning_n at_o moses_n and_o all_o the_o prophet_n he_o expound_v unto_o they_o in_o all_o the_o scripture_n the_o thing_n concern_v himself_o to_o this_o purpose_n the_o word_n do_v afford_v such_o a_o plenty_n and_o variety_n of_o matter_n in_o such_o a_o essential_a point_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o so_o necessary_a to_o be_v know_v that_o indeed_o it_o will_v go_v near_o to_o run_v one_o into_o some_o confusion_n except_o some_o method_n be_v use_v to_o prevent_v it_o the_o difficulty_n lay_v not_o in_o what_o to_o say_v but_o how_o to_o say_v it_o wherefore_o our_o discourse_n and_o argument_n must_v be_v reduce_v under_o several_a head_n and_o class_n as_o may_v be_v name_n attribute_n work_n and_o worship_n of_o god_n some_o word_n use_v in_o this_o matter_n be_v in_o scripture_n as_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d godhead_n which_o some_o will_v have_v to_o differ_v from_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d divinity_n as_o cause_v a_o effect_n the_o first_o the_o essence_n the_o last_o a_o gift_n communicate_v though_o in_o scripture_n they_o be_v synonimous_a and_o both_o translate_a godhead_n in_o scripture_n be_v also_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d one_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d three_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d subsistance_n or_o person_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v other_o be_v derive_v as_o from_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d one_o and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d three_o be_v derive_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d unity_n and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d trinity_n from_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v or_o exist_v come_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d essence_n st._n john_n alone_o call_v the_o son_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o word_n and_o st._n paul_n alone_o or_o the_o author_n of_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n call_v he_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o character_n of_o the_o express_a image_n of_o the_o person_n of_o the_o father_n of_o the_o name_n of_o god_n some_o signify_v the_o essence_n as_o jehovah_n name_n prove_v from_o the_o name_n jah_n ehejah_n other_o the_o attribute_n as_o elehim_v schaddai_n adonai_n etc._n etc._n and_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n 〈◊〉_d
the_o god_n of_o his_o father_n abraham_n and_o isaac_n the_o better_a to_o know_v who_o this_o angel_n be_v let_v we_o hear_v he_o speak_v himself_o to_o jacob_n 13._o jacob_n gen._n 31.11_o 12_o 13._o the_o angel_n of_o god_n say_v jacob_n speak_v unto_o i_o in_o a_o dream_n and_o what_o say_v he_o i_o have_v see_v all_o that_o laban_n do_v unto_o thou_o i_o be_o the_o god_n of_o bethel_n where_o thou_o anoint_v the_o pillar_n and_o where_o thou_o vow_v a_o vow_n unto_o i_o sure_o this_o can_v be_v no_o create_a angel_n the_o same_o it_o be_v that_o appear_v unto_o moses_n in_o the_o bush_n mention_v by_o stephen_n 7.35_o stephen_n act_n 7.35_o by_o who_o hand_n authority_n and_o power_n moses_n become_v ruler_n and_o deliverer_n of_o the_o people_n out_o of_o egypt_n now_o in_o the_o same_o chapter_n stephen_n say_v v._o 32._o that_o he_o that_o appear_v unto_o moses_n in_o the_o bush_n be_v the_o god_n of_o abraham_n the_o god_n of_o isaac_n and_o the_o god_n of_o jacob_n and_o that_o same_o god_n he_o afterward_o call_v the_o angel_n which_o speak_v to_o he_o in_o mount_n sinai_n v._o 38._o to_o be_v short_a this_o be_v the_o angel_n of_o the_o lord_n which_o appear_v unto_o moses_n out_o of_o the_o bush_n which_o be_v call_v lord_n and_o god_n and_o call_v himself_o 6._o himself_o exod._n 3._o ●_o 4_o 6._o the_o god_n of_o abraham_n the_o god_n of_o isaac_n and_o the_o god_n of_o jacob._n the_o adversary_n can_v deny_v this_o to_o be_v the_o true_a and_o proper_a character_n of_o the_o true_a god_n moreover_o this_o be_v the_o angel_n promise_v to_o be_v send_v before_o the_o people_n let_v we_o hear_v what_o a_o character_n god_n give_v of_o he_o 21._o he_o exodus_fw-la 23.20_o 21._o beware_v of_o he_o and_o obey_v his_o voice_n provoke_v he_o not_o for_o he_o will_v not_o pardon_v your_o transgression_n for_o my_o name_n be_v in_o he_o if_o this_o have_v be_v one_o of_o his_o create_a angel_n will_v god_n have_v speak_v of_o he_o after_o this_o manner_n why_o god_n name_n in_o a_o most_o special_a manner_n more_o in_o he_o than_o in_o another_o here_o his_o name_n signify_v his_o nature_n and_o can_v any_o but_o the_o true_a essential_a god_n pardon_v transgression_n as_o it_o depend_v upon_o the_o will_n of_o this_o angel_n to_o do_v or_o not_o to_o do_v according_a to_o promise_v this_o same_o angel_n appear_v unto_o joshuah_n under_o the_o name_n of_o 15._o of_o josh_n 5.14_o 15._o captain_n of_o the_o host_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o of_o he_o require_v the_o same_o humble_a obedience_n as_o before_o he_o have_v receive_v of_o moses_n and_o this_o the_o apostle_n do_v point_n at_o 2.10_o at_o heb._n 2.10_o when_o speak_v of_o christ_n he_o call_v he_o the_o captain_n of_o our_o salvation_n of_o which_o the_o deliverance_n out_o of_o egypt_n be_v a_o type_n and_o a_o figure_n for_o he_o be_v the_o rock_n 10.4_o rock_n 1_o cor._n 10.4_o that_o follow_v they_o in_o the_o wilderness_n he_o be_v far_o call_v 63._o call_v isai_n 63._o the_o angel_n of_o god_n presence_n god_n in_o he_o be_v present_a wheresoever_o he_o be_v because_o he_o be_v god_n but_o he_o there_o be_v also_o call_v their_o saviour_n he_o save_v they_o be_v there_o any_o saviour_n beside_o the_o lord_n jesus_n the_o son_n of_o god_n he_o also_o be_v call_v the_o messenger_n ●_o messenger_n mal._n 3._o ●_o or_o angel_n of_o the_o covenant_n be_v not_o god_n covenant_n with_o man_n make_v in_o christ_n jesus_n have_v he_o not_o procure_v and_o publish_v it_o it_o be_v to_o strengthen_v the_o faith_n and_o confirm_v the_o hope_n of_o his_o people_n that_o god_n by_o the_o last_o of_o his_o prophet_n do_v so_o positive_o promise_v he_o shall_v come_v sure_o he_o then_o be_v and_o exi_v though_o he_o be_v not_o yet_o come_v the_o prophet_n add_v who_o you_o delight_v in_o will_v to_o god_n this_o be_v true_a in_o every_o christian_a but_o his_o enemy_n can_v take_v no_o delight_n in_o he_o however_o it_o remain_v true_a that_o no_o creature_n whatsoever_o can_v be_v this_o angel_n and_o that_o see_v it_o be_v not_o the_o person_n of_o the_o father_n it_o must_v be_v that_o of_o his_o son_n who_o be_v another_o himself_o and_o i_o think_v that_o to_o prove_v the_o deity_n of_o the_o messiah_n be_v to_o prove_v the_o plurality_n of_o person_n in_o the_o godhead_n for_o as_o i_o say_v before_o trinity_n import_v the_o divinity_n of_o the_o son_n and_o the_o divinity_n of_o the_o son_n imply_v plurality_n of_o person_n in_o the_o divine_a nature_n this_o angel_n under_o the_o shape_n of_o a_o man_n attend_v by_o two_o angel_n appear_v unto_o abraham_n 18._o abraham_n gen._n 18._o and_o in_o the_o same_o place_n he_o be_v call_v the_o lord_n or_o jehovah_n and_o man_n and_o behave_v himself_o both_o as_o lord_n and_o as_o man_n and_o as_o both_o be_v receive_v by_o abraham_n thus_o it_o be_v neither_o impossible_a nor_o contrary_a to_o scripture_n that_o god_n shall_v in_o human_a nature_n appear_v unto_o man_n as_o than_o he_o do_v unto_o abraham_n in_o his_o promise_n to_o abraham_n of_o a_o son_n by_o sarah_n and_o as_o to_o the_o judgement_n upon_o sodom_n he_o behave_v himself_o as_o god_n as_o he_o do_v as_o man_n in_o visible_o walk_v discourse_v have_v his_o foot_n wash_v rest_v and_o eat_v and_o as_o herein_o by_o act_v the_o true_a part_n of_o a_o man_n he_o be_v a_o true_a man_n so_o he_o be_v a_o true_a god_n for_o there_o he_o be_v six_o or_o seven_o time_n call_v jehovah_n and_o five_o adonai_n and_o he_o speak_v like_o the_o judge_n of_o the_o world_n in_o who_o power_n it_o lie_v to_o punish_v or_o pardon_v and_o the_o adversary_n can_v bring_v nothing_o against_o the_o union_n of_o divine_a with_o humane_a nature_n in_o the_o person_n of_o christ_n but_o what_o this_o instance_n of_o the_o appear_a can_v refute_v for_o indeed_o the_o personal_a union_n of_o the_o divine_a with_o human_a nature_n can_v be_v no_o better_o nor_o more_o plain_o represent_v than_o by_o this_o example_n and_o if_o this_o appear_v be_v a_o sign_n and_o forerunner_n of_o christ_n dwelling_n and_o converse_v among_o man_n certain_o it_o become_v he_o to_o be_v such_o as_o he_o then_o appear_v namely_o god_n and_o man._n now_o that_o this_o be_v a_o foresight_n of_o his_o incarnation_n our_o saviour_n himself_o declare_v it_o 8.56_o it_o john_n 8.56_o relate_v to_o this_o your_o father_n abraham_n rejoice_v to_o see_v my_o day_n and_o he_o see_v it_o and_o be_v glad_a and_o upon_o the_o same_o account_n he_o upbraid_v they_o when_o he_o say_v 39.40_o john_n 39.40_o if_o you_o be_v abraham_n child_n you_o will_v do_v the_o work_n of_o abraham_n but_o you_o seek_v to_o kill_v i_o that_o do_v not_o abraham_n for_o he_o never_o offer_v to_o kill_v as_o a_o blasphemer_n that_o man_n who_o with_o two_o other_o he_o receive_v into_o his_o house_n and_o who_o carry_v himself_o as_o god_n on_o the_o contrary_a he_o all_o the_o while_n behave_v himself_o towards_o he_o as_o be_v god_n and_o at_o that_o time_n the_o same_o person_n that_o appear_v unto_o abrham_n be_v not_o only_o call_v the_o lord_n v._o 1._o the_o lord_n appear_v unto_o abraham_n but_o also_o the_o judge_n of_o all_o the_o earth_n five_o 25._o a_o property_n belong_v to_o none_o but_o the_o true_a god_n and_o that_o christ_n be_v to_o judge_v all_o the_o earth_n it_o appear_v out_o of_o act_n 17.31_o and_o 2_o cor._n 5.10_o as_o indeed_o the_o destruction_n of_o sodom_n and_o gomorah_n be_v a_o figure_n of_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o world_n and_o of_o christ_n second_o come_v the_o father_n say_v christ_n have_v commit_v all_o judgement_n to_o the_o son_n john_n 5.22_o here_o i_o shall_v add_v a_o text_n which_o may_v have_v a_o place_n in_o another_o part_n of_o my_o discourse_n it_o be_v this_o god_n by_o the_o prophet_n 11._o prophet_n isai_n 40.9_o 10_o 11._o speak_v to_o zion_n jerusalem_n and_o the_o city_n of_o judah_n behold_v your_o god_n behold_v the_o lord_n will_v come_v with_o strong_a hand_n etc._n etc._n here_o certain_o by_o your_o god_n be_v mean_v the_o god_n of_o israel_n for_o the_o god_n of_o z●on_n of_o jerusalem_n and_o of_o the_o city_n of_o judah_n be_v the_o same_o with_o the_o god_n of_o israel_n now_o who_o that_o person_n be_v here_o call_v god_n it_o do_v appear_v out_o of_o the_o scope_n of_o the_o place_n wherein_o the_o prophet_n do_v certain_o speak_v of_o the_o come_n of_o the_o messiah_n who_o be_v christ_n as_o it_o be_v plain_a out_o of_o v._o 3._o the_o voice_n of_o he_o that_o cry_v in_o the_o wilderness_n prepare_v you_o the_o way_n for_o the_o lord_n make_v straight_o in_o the_o desert_a
it_o be_v not_o appellative_a or_o common_a but_o proper_a for_o if_o it_o be_v not_o so_o god_n will_v not_o absolute_o be_v one_o for_o that_o be_v common_a which_o belong_v to_o many_o and_o proper_a that_o which_o belong_v only_o to_o one_o and_o the_o name_n of_o one_o only_a thing_n must_v needs_o be_v proper_a since_o scripture_n teach_v we_o there_o be_v but_o one_o god_n the_o name_n of_o god_n must_v needs_o be_v proper_a and_o far_o when_o a_o name_n do_v of_o itself_o belong_v to_o one_o and_o to_o other_o in_o relation_n only_o to_o that_o same_o one_o it_o must_v be_v account_v to_o be_v that_o one_o be_v proper_a name_n thus_o the_o name_n of_o god_n of_o itself_o belong_v to_o god_n alone_o not_o in_o relation_n to_o any_o thing_n else_o but_o to_o other_o it_o belong_v only_o in_o relation_n to_o the_o only_a true_a god_n and_o as_o the_o word_n god_n speak_v of_o the_o true_a god_n be_v as_o already_o say_v take_v essential_o or_o personal_o so_o be_v the_o name_n father_n either_o for_o the_o essence_n of_o god_n or_o for_o the_o first_o person_n of_o the_o trinity_n now_o the_o person_n be_v take_v either_o abstractive_o or_o concretive_o when_o we_o say_v the_o word_n god_n be_v take_v personal_o we_o do_v not_o mean_v abstractive_o or_o separately_z from_z but_o concretive_o or_o joint_o with_o the_o essence_n so_o the_o name_n father_n be_v take_v either_o essential_o or_o personal_o in_o the_o first_o manner_n when_o in_o the_o lord_n prayer_n we_o say_v our_o father_n and_o personal_o when_o in_o the_o creed_n we_o say_v i_o believe_v in_o god_n the_o father_n thus_o far_o we_o in_o these_o matter_n do_v agree_v with_o the_o adversary_n that_o there_o be_v but_o one_o god_n and_o that_o 42.8_o that_o isai_n 42.8_o he_o give_v not_o his_o name_n and_o glory_n to_o another_o for_o to_o who_o god_n do_v communicate_v the_o honour_n of_o his_o name_n and_o title_n to_o the_o same_o he_o thereby_o impart_v his_o glory_n now_o there_o be_v a_o name_n of_o god_n proper_a and_o another_o appellative_a this_o be_v give_v to_o the_o creature_n and_o it_o be_v either_o proper_o or_o figurative_o in_o the_o first_o sense_n the_o word_n be_v not_o always_o to_o be_v understand_v to_o be_v the_o absolute_a be_v but_o a_o relative_a one_o as_o when_o some_o nation_n do_v through_o error_n and_o idolatry_n name_n to_o herself_o some_o divinity_n or_o other_o in_o this_o sense_n god_n and_o people_n be_v relative_n so_o the_o name_n god_n take_v in_o the_o predicament_n of_o relation_n and_o not_o in_o that_o of_o substance_n may_v proper_o be_v speak_v of_o a_o creature_n thus_o i_o speak_v proper_o when_o i_o say_v chamos_n be_v the_o god_n of_o the_o moabite_n and_o malcom_n of_o the_o ammonite_n but_o when_o i_o come_v to_o examine_v the_o opinion_n of_o those_o nation_n it_o be_v very_o true_a that_o they_o be_v the_o god_n of_o such_o nation_n but_o it_o be_v not_o true_a that_o they_o be_v god_n in_o nature_n and_o substance_n they_o be_v but_o erroneous_o look_v upon_o as_o god_n by_o such_o nation_n so_o this_o be_v not_o a_o substantial_a and_o absolute_a truth_n only_a relative_n which_o the_o adversary_n may_v not_o affirm_v of_o the_o son_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o be_v feign_v and_o invent_v god_n between_o which_o the_o word_n of_o god_n make_v a_o difference_n 1.9_o difference_n 1_o thess_n 1.9_o you_o turn_v to_o god_n from_o idol_n to_o serve_v the_o live_n and_o true_a god_n now_o the_o figurative_a signification_n be_v when_o by_o reason_n of_o some_o likeness_n god_n name_n be_v attribute_v to_o some_o creature_n 8._o creature_n psal_n 8._o thus_o angel_n be_v call_v elohim_n and_o 1.6_o and_o job_n 1.6_o son_n of_o god_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o excellency_n of_o their_o nature_n magistrate_n be_v call_v 82.6_o call_v psal_n 82.6_o god_n and_o son_n of_o god_n upon_o the_o account_n of_o the_o dignity_n of_o their_o office_n but_o here_o the_o case_n be_v very_o different_a the_o question_n be_v whether_o the_o name_n of_o god_n be_v proper_o or_o improper_o and_o figurative_o attribute_v to_o the_o son_n and_o to_o the_o holy_a ghost_n i_o mean_v the_o name_n take_v appellative_o denote_v in_o he_o that_o be_v so_o call_v the_o divine_a nature_n and_o essence_n socinian_n though_o they_o be_v brazenfaced_a enough_o yet_o not_o to_o that_o degree_n as_o to_o say_v that_o the_o person_n of_o the_o son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n be_v call_v god_n only_o by_o way_n of_o figure_n but_o they_o cavil_v that_o the_o word_n signify_v not_o a_o nature_n but_o a_o office_n so_o the_o proper_a signification_n of_o the_o word_n they_o extend_v to_o angel_n and_o magistrate_n as_o if_o the_o word_n god_n signify_v governor_n preserver_n and_o benefactor_n etc._n etc._n but_o before_o their_o heresy_n break_v out_o no_o man_n ever_o teach_v so_o than_o no_o language_n give_v that_o sense_n to_o the_o word_n for_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o greek_a signify_v the_o nature_n for_o some_o account_v to_o be_v god_n be_v false_a one_o 4.8_o one_o gal._n 4.8_o which_o by_o nature_n be_v not_o god_n and_o philosopher_n reckon_v the_o god_n of_o the_o heathen_n among_o the_o animal_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d speak_v and_o rational_a and_o the_o hebrew_n word_n elohah_n do_v certain_o proper_o signify_v the_o nature_n as_o be_v give_v to_o the_o supreme_a be_v which_o be_v so_o call_v not_o relative_o but_o absolute_o when_o to_o the_o first_o man_n the_o common_a name_n be_v attribute_v he_o be_v not_o simple_o call_v adam_n till_o that_o become_v his_o proper_a name_n now_o as_o to_o the_o origin_n or_o etymology_n of_o the_o word_n it_o be_v false_o deduce_v from_o the_o signification_n of_o govern_v help_a and_o preserve_v but_o true_o from_o the_o notion_n of_o the_o word_n worship_n and_o adoration_n we_o must_v not_o think_v that_o our_o first_o parent_n be_v so_o want_v in_o their_o piety_n towards_o their_o maker_n who_o they_o worship_v so_o devout_o to_o call_v he_o by_o a_o common_a name_n proper_a to_o creature_n as_o if_o afterward_o it_o have_v be_v attribute_v to_o he_o by_o way_n of_o excellency_n and_o be_v it_o likely_a that_o god_n have_v be_v so_o want_v in_o what_o relate_v to_o his_o honour_n as_o be_v himself_o the_o author_n of_o the_o hebrew_n tongue_n the_o knowledge_n whereof_o he_o infuse_v into_o adam_n and_o eve_n as_o not_o to_o provide_v a_o name_n proper_a to_o distinguish_v his_o own_o nature_n for_o have_v institute_v for_o himself_o a_o religious_a worship_n and_o adoration_n he_o must_v need_v also_o have_v declare_v a_o proper_a name_n incommunicable_a to_o any_o creature_n whatsoever_o now_o the_o name_n of_o god_n be_v give_v the_o son_n not_o only_o attributive_o 1.1_o attributive_o joh._n 1.1_o the_o word_n be_v god_n and_o 9.13_o and_o rom._n 9.13_o christ_n god_n bless_v for_o ever_o but_o also_o subjective_o 3.16_o subjective_o 1_o tim_n 3.16_o god_n be_v manifest_v in_o the_o flesh_n and_o 20.28_o and_o act_n 20.28_o god_n purchase_v his_o church_n with_o his_o own_o blood_n even_o in_o the_o old_a testament_n 7._o testament_n psal_n 97.6_o 7._o the_o heaven_n declare_v his_o righteousness_n and_o all_o the_o people_n see_v his_o glory_n etc._n etc._n worship_v he_o all_o you_o god_n now_o the_o adversary_n do_v confess_v that_o as_o often_o as_o the_o name_n of_o god_n be_v speak_v subjective_o as_o they_o call_v it_o it_o signify_v a_o substance_n and_o person_n but_o of_o god_n the_o father_n of_o christ_n still_o they_o own_v it_o signify_v a_o substance_n and_o person_n of_o the_o godhead_n but_o why_o only_o of_o the_o father_n of_o christ_n that_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d mere_o their_o opinion_n without_o any_o proof_n as_o to_o that_o which_o they_o say_v about_o the_o article_n in_o the_o greek_a i_o show_v already_o it_o be_v a_o idle_a distinction_n for_o out_o of_o some_o place_n of_o scripture_n i_o show_v how_o the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d signify_v the_o true_a god_n be_v sometime_o with_o a_o article_n and_o sometime_o without_o as_o 3.16_o as_o 1_o tim._n 3.16_o god_n be_v manifest_a in_o the_o flesh_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v the_o same_o as_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d say_v thomas_n 20.28_o thomas_n joh._n 20.28_o my_o lord_n and_o my_o god_n he_o speak_v to_o one_o who_o he_o know_v be_v to_o be_v worship_v with_o religious_a worship_n and_o he_o own_a it_o so_o yet_o scripture_n command_v and_o often_o repeat_v that_o the_o lord_n our_o god_n alone_o be_v to_o be_v worship_v which_o our_o saviour_n christ_n confirm_v 4.10_o confirm_v mat._n 4.10_o with_o his_o own_o mouth_n and_o paul_n 4.8_o paul_n gal._n 4.8_o after_o he_o and_o
in_o this_o comparison_n of_o person_n all_o thing_n may_v be_v acceptable_a unto_o he_o but_o hence_o it_o do_v not_o follow_v that_o christ_n be_v not_o of_o the_o same_o nature_n with_o the_o father_n see_v they_o be_v not_o compare_v in_o relation_n to_o the_o essen●●_n but_o herein_o he_o do_v condescend_v to_o their_o capacity_n who_o not_o own_v his_o deity_n he_o will_v by_o degree_n bring_v to_o the_o knowledge_n thereof_o as_o to_o the_o use_n of_o the_o name_n of_o god_n in_o scripture_n the_o remain_a evidence_n be_v reduce_v under_o two_o kind_n first_o in_o some_o the_o name_n of_o god_n be_v absolute_o take_v for_o god_n the_o father_n second_o in_o other_o be_v add_v a_o exclusive_a particle_n which_o be_v by_o some_o join_v with_o the_o name_n of_o god_n and_o by_o other_o with_o the_o thing_n speak_v of_o and_o attribute_v unto_o god_n out_o of_o the_o first_o nothing_o may_v be_v deduce_v contrary_a to_o this_o doctrine_n for_o in_o all_o those_o place_n by_o they_o quote_v which_o anon_o we_o shall_v mention_v be_v a_o comparison_n of_o the_o person_n wherein_o the_o name_n of_o god_n be_v proper_o attribute_v to_o the_o father_n upon_o the_o account_n of_o order_n and_o origin_n but_o it_o be_v inconsequent_a to_o say_v that_o in_o every_o place_n where_o the_o name_n of_o god_n be_v absolute_o take_v that_o be_v without_o comparison_n of_o the_o person_n it_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v only_o of_o the_o father_n for_o in_o several_a place_n where_o the_o word_n god_n be_v indefinite_o set_v down_o yet_o it_o be_v by_o no_o mean_n to_o be_v reduce_v to_o the_o father_n alone_o as_o to_o the_o other_o sort_n of_o proof_n wherein_o a_o exclusive_a particle_n be_v express_v that_o exclusive_a particle_n relate_v to_o the_o creature_n and_o to_o every_o thing_n which_o by_o nature_n be_v not_o god_n whither_o they_o be_v thing_n in_o nature_n as_o sun_n moon_n and_o star_n which_o heathen_n worship_v as_o god_n or_o else_o those_o which_o be_v effect_n of_o man_n fancy_n and_o imagination_n such_o be_v several_a idol_n by_o foolish_a man_n worship_v as_o god_n wherefore_o see_v the_o true_a and_o essential_a god_n be_v oppose_v to_o those_o which_o by_o nature_n be_v not_o god_n it_o follow_v that_o by_o the_o word_n god_n may_v well_o be_v understand_v father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n likewise_o though_o sometime_o mention_v be_v make_v only_o of_o one_o person_n we_o must_v not_o take_v it_o as_o if_o thereby_o the_o other_o person_n be_v exclude_v but_o only_o that_o which_o by_o nature_n be_v not_o god_n and_o that_o this_o be_v a_o right_a interpretation_n it_o may_v well_o be_v prove_v out_o of_o several_a place_n of_o scripture_n as_o for_o instance_n when_o god_n say_v by_o 43.11_o by_o isa_n 43.11_o the_o prophet_n i_o even_o i_o be_o the_o lord_n and_o beside_o i_o there_o be_v no_o saviour_n and_o by_o another_o 13.4_o another_o hos_fw-la 13.4_o for_o there_o be_v no_o saviour_n beside_o i_o here_o in_o the_o adversary_n opinion_n salvation_n be_v attribute_v to_o the_o father_n but_o that_o the_o son_n be_v not_o exclude_v it_o appear_v out_o of_o several_a place_n among_o the_o rest_n out_o of_o this_o 4.12.10_o this_o act._n 4.12.10_o neither_o be_v there_o salvation_n in_o any_o other_o that_o be_v in_o jesus_n christ_n who_o have_v be_v crucify_v and_o we_o know_v scripture_n do_v not_o contradict_v itself_o and_o if_o out_o of_o the_o prophet_n one_o will_v exclude_v the_o son_n he_o may_v as_o well_o out_o of_o this_o exclude_v the_o father_n again_o the_o lord_n jesus_n say_v no_o man_n know_v the_o father_n but_o the_o son_n now_o if_o all_o but_o the_o son_n be_v exclude_v from_o know_v the_o father_n as_o in_o the_o forego_n text_n he_o will_v be_v exclude_v from_o be_v a_o saviour_n so_o in_o this_o from_o know_v himself_o also_o the_o holy_a ghost_n will_v be_v exclude_v from_o know_v the_o father_n though_o he_o be_v say_v to_o 2.10_o to_o 1_o cor._n 2.10_o search_v all_o thing_n yea_o the_o deep_a thing_n of_o god_n in_o this_o very_a same_o sense_n paul_n say_v 10._o say_v chap._n 2.1_o 10._o i_o determine_v not_o to_o know_v any_o thing_n among_o you_o save_v jesus_n christ_n and_o he_o crucify_v he_o do_v not_o thereby_o deny_v that_o he_o determine_v to_o know_v the_o father_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n but_o he_o mean_v he_o know_v nor_o own_v no_o way_n of_o salvation_n out_o of_o christ_n and_o v._o ●1_n the_o thing_n of_o god_n know_v no_o man_n but_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n but_o in_o other_o place_n we_o read_v how_o 5.20_o how_o joh._n 5.20_o the_o father_n know_v the_o son_n and_o the_o son_n know_v the_o father_n and_o the_o father_n show_v the_o son_n all_o thing_n that_o himself_o do_v hence_o we_o may_v conclude_v how_o the_o apostle_n speak_v exclusive_o only_a of_o creature_n not_o of_o the_o son_n nor_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n chap._n vi_o christ_n be_v true_a natural_a son_n of_o god_n by_o eternal_a generation_n but_o we_o must_v by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n come_v to_o another_o head_n as_o scripture_n give_v christ_n true_o proper_o and_o essential_o the_o name_n of_o god_n so_o it_o do_v give_v he_o that_o of_o son_n of_o god_n the_o first_o we_o show_v already_o the_o second_o whereby_o he_o be_v declare_v the_o second_o person_n of_o the_o bless_a trinity_n we_o must_v now_o speak_v of_o as_o we_o observe_v that_o the_o word_n god_n in_o scripture_n be_v speak_v in_o several_a sense_n as_o the_o true_a god_n proper_o angel_n and_o magistrate_n improper_o and_o 46._o and_o judg._n 9.2_o l._n 46._o idol_n 4.4_o idol_n 2_o cor._n 4.4_o the_o devil_n and_o the_o 3.19_o the_o phil._n 3.19_o belly_n abusive_o so_o here_o i_o must_v say_v how_o the_o name_n son_n of_o god_n admit_v of_o three_o different_a signification_n for_o god_n have_v three_o sort_n of_o son_n for_o all_o other_o be_v reduce_v under_o these_o three_o head_n the_o first_o be_v by_o creation_n and_o preservation_n which_o be_v a_o continue_a creation_n for_o 17.28_o for_o act._n 17.28_o in_o he_o we_o live_v and_o move_v and_o have_v our_o be_v thus_o adam_n be_v call_v 3.38_o call_v luke_n 3.38_o son_n of_o god_n and_o man_n 6.2_o man_n gen._n 6.2_o son_n of_o god_n on_o this_o account_n god_n be_v father_n of_o all_o creature_n whether_o in_o heaven_n as_o angel_n nay_o of_o the_o sun_n moon_n star_n of_o the_o bird_n of_o the_o air_n and_o on_o earth_n of_o all_o man_n beast_n plant_n etc._n etc._n and_o of_o fish_n under_o water_n this_o in_o relation_n to_o nature_n and_o in_o general_a to_o the_o whole_a creation_n the_o second_o kind_n of_o god_n son_n or_o child_n be_v by_o adoption_n and_o grace_n such_o be_v his_o elect_n and_o people_n of_o these_o in_o a_o special_a manner_n god_n be_v call_v the_o father_n in_o a_o three_o way_n scripture_n speak_v of_o a_o son_n of_o god_n and_o of_o none_o else_o thus_o the_o only_o beget_v from_o all_o eternity_n namely_o our_o bless_a lord_n and_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n who_o be_v not_o son_n according_a to_o the_o first_o manner_n which_o be_v common_a to_o all_o man_n will_v make_v no_o difference_n between_o he_o and_o other_o and_o bring_v he_o into_o a_o crowd_n of_o the_o whole_a work_n of_o creation_n neither_o be_v he_o son_n of_o god_n upon_o the_o account_n of_o grace_n and_o adoption_n which_o they_o will_v have_v he_o to_o be_v but_o if_o he_o be_v by_o adoption_n how_o can_v he_o be_v the_o only_o beget_v son_n see_v that_o through_o grace_n god_n have_v adopt_v so_o many_o adopt_v son_n once_o and_o before_o their_o adoption_n be_v not_o son_n of_o god_n which_o can_v be_v say_v of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n that_o the_o time_n have_v be_v when_o he_o be_v not_o son_n of_o god_n all_o and_o every_o adopt_a son_n of_o god_n be_v once_o 2._o once_o ephes_n 2._o dead_a in_o trespass_n and_o sin_n and_o by_o nature_n child_n of_o wrath_n even_o as_o other_o once_o 1.13_o once_o colos_n 1.13_o under_o the_o power_n of_o darkness_n and_o 5.10_o and_o rom._n 5.10_o enemy_n to_o god_n none_o of_o which_o thing_n may_v without_o blasphemy_n be_v speak_v or_o think_v of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n he_o be_v call_v son_n not_o by_o creation_n for_o 1.16_o for_o colos_n 1.16_o all_o thing_n be_v create_v by_o he_o and_o one_o can_v be_v creator_n and_o creature_n nor_o by_o adoption_n for_o 1.5_o for_o ephes_n 1.5_o in_o he_o we_o be_v adopt_v nor_o by_o any_o dignity_n or_o eminency_n over_o inferior_a creature_n as_o be_v angel_n for_o the_o 5._o the_o heb._n 1.4_o 5._o apostle_n deny_v it_o nor_o also_o upon_o the_o account_n of_o a_o personal_a union_n or_o incarnation_n as_o he_o be_v call_v son_n
of_o man_n because_o manifest_v in_o the_o flesh_n he_o be_v not_o call_v son_n of_o god_n upon_o any_o such_o account_n or_o in_o any_o of_o these_o sense_n as_o socinian_o will_v have_v he_o 4.14.15_o 1_o job_n 4.14.15_o for_o they_o can_v deny_v the_o lord_n jesus_n to_o be_v call_v god_n son_n of_o god_n for_o that_o name_n be_v give_v he_o in_o so_o many_o place_n of_o scripture_n and_o herein_o they_o will_v seem_v to_o agree_v but_o not_o sincere_o for_o they_o cavil_v about_o the_o manner_n and_o disagree_v as_o to_o the_o true_a sense_n he_o be_v call_v son_n of_o god_n by_o reason_n of_o a_o eternal_a generation_n by_o the_o father_n wherefore_o he_o be_v call_v god_n 32._o god_n rom._n 8.3_o 32._o own_o and_o proper_a son_n and_o 3.16_o and_o joh._n 3.16_o only_o beget_v christ_n be_v from_o the_o father_n by_o generation_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n by_o spiration_n to_o be_v from_o the_o father_n by_o generation_n be_v to_o be_v generate_v or_o beget_v by_o the_o father_n long_o before_o the_o fullness_n of_o time_n and_o his_o appear_v in_o the_o flesh_n god_n absolute_o say_v to_o he_o 2.7_o he_o psal_n 2.7_o thou_o be_v my_o son_n this_o day_n have_v unbegotten_a thou_o this_o represent_v with_o comparison_n as_o when_o call_v 8._o call_v prov_n 8._o wisdom_n for_o as_o wisdom_n be_v produce_v by_o the_o mind_n so_o be_v the_o son_n by_o the_o father_n and_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n by_o the_o similitude_n of_o 1.15_o of_o colos_n 1.15_o a_o image_n of_o 〈◊〉_d father_n 1.3_o father_n heb_fw-mi 1.3_o person_n and_o of_o the_o brightness_n of_o his_o glory_n and_o of_o the_o inward_a 1.1_o inward_a job_n 1.1_o word_n in_o the_o mind_n for_o as_o a_o image_n be_v not_o every_o likeness_n but_o the_o express_a effigy_n or_o representation_n of_o that_o whereof_o it_o be_v the_o image_n so_o the_o son_n in_o his_o essence_n and_o essential_a attribute_n be_v so_o much_o the_o express_a image_n of_o the_o father_n that_o 14.9_o that_o joh._n 14.9_o whosoever_o see_v he_o do_v see_v the_o father_n also_o as_o the_o brightness_n of_o the_o beam_n be_v from_o the_o sun_n so_o the_o son_n be_v from_o the_o father_n as_o light_v from_o light_n as_o equal_o the_o glorious_a image_n of_o his_o nature_n as_o a_o letter_n do_v exact_o represent_v the_o character_n out_o of_o which_o it_o be_v draw_v thus_o the_o son_n do_v exact_o represent_v the_o father_n by_o who_o he_o be_v beget_v as_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o word_n be_v conceive_v by_o the_o mind_n and_o remain_v in_o it_o so_o be_v the_o son_n beget_v by_o the_o father_n and_o remain_v in_o he_o and_o as_o the_o wisdom_n image_n brightness_n the_o word_n be_v one_o thing_n from_o another_o so_o the_o son_n be_v of_o the_o father_n from_o the_o father_n not_o as_o a_o essence_n be_v from_o another_o but_o as_o a_o person_n be_v from_o a_o person_n because_o he_o be_v the_o character_n or_o express_v image_n of_o the_o person_n of_o the_o father_n all_o these_o in_o create_a thing_n be_v accident_n but_o in_o the_o son_n who_o be_v in_o himself_o and_o by_o himself_o they_o be_v essential_a hence_o appear_v how_o in_o this_o there_o be_v a_o true_a distinction_n of_o the_o person_n beget_v and_o beget_v so_o then_o christ_n be_v call_v the_o son_n of_o god_n not_o by_o reason_n of_o any_o gracious_a communication_n of_o existence_n or_o of_o power_n but_o upon_o the_o account_n of_o a_o secret_a and_o incomprehensible_a generation_n of_o the_o father_n of_o his_o essence_n for_o he_o be_v the_o true_a proper_a only_o beget_v high_o belove_a son_n of_o the_o live_a god_n and_o the_o prepositive_a article_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o son_n frequent_o join_v to_o this_o subject_a do_v denote_v a_o filiation_n or_o sonship_n altogether_o of_o another_o kind_n from_o that_o of_o 1.5_o of_o heb._n 1.5_o angel_n or_o man_n which_o can_v be_v no_o other_o than_o a_o essential_a one_o a_o true_a son_n be_v beget_v of_o the_o essence_n of_o his_o father_n but_o the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v a_o true_a son_n therefore_o he_o be_v beget_v of_o the_o essence_n of_o his_o father_n again_o the_o proper_a son_n be_v say_v to_o be_v and_o be_v he_o that_o have_v his_o proper_a father_n now_o he_o be_v the_o proper_a father_n who_o have_v beget_v his_o son_n of_o his_o own_o essence_n farthermore_o the_o only_o beget_v son_n be_v only_o he_o that_o be_v beget_v of_o the_o substance_n of_o his_o father_n which_o be_v demonstrate_v by_o the_o opposition_n of_o natural_a and_o adopt_a son_n who_o be_v love_v for_o the_o sake_n of_o the_o well_o belove_a natural_a son_n of_o god_n that_o confession_n of_o peter_n in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o disciple_n thou_o be_v not_o repeat_v not_o matth._n 16.14_o 16_o 17._o repeat_v john_n the_o baptist_n nor_o elias_n nor_o jeremias_n who_o have_v be_v great_a in_o god_n favour_n nor_o none_o of_o the_o prophet_n they_o be_v a_o mere_a nothing_o in_o comparison_n of_o christ_n but_o 17._o but_o joh._n 6.68_o 69._o ver._n 17._o thou_o be_v christ_n the_o son_n of_o the_o live_a god_n be_v not_o only_o in_o its_o true_a sense_n approve_v of_o by_o our_o saviour_n but_o he_o also_o there_o attribute_n it_o to_o divine_a revelation_n as_o of_o a_o incomprehensible_a mystery_n bless_a art_n thou_o simon_n bar-●●●as_a for_o flesh_n and_o blood_n have_v not_o reveal_v it_o unto_o thou_o but_o my_o father_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n isaac_n as_o they_o object_n be_v call_v 11.17_o call_v gen_n 23.2_o and_o heb._n 11.17_o only_o beget_v son_n but_o he_o be_v not_o absolute_o so_o call_v but_o relative_o secundum_fw-la quid_fw-la because_o he_o be_v the_o only_o beget_v son_n of_o abraham_n by_o sarah_n in_o a_o lawful_a marriage_n and_o thereby_o make_v his_o only_a heir_n to_o the_o exclusion_n of_o ishmael_n who_o he_o have_v before_o by_o hagar_n he_o be_v only_o beget_v son_n in_o relation_n to_o the_o promise_n which_o be_v express_v in_o the_o follow_a verse_n 11.18_o verse_n heb._n 11.18_o of_o who_o it_o be_v say_v that_o in_o isaac_n shall_v thy_o seed_n be_v call_v the_o excellency_n of_o filiation_n be_v between_o those_o who_o differ_v in_o degree_n but_o here_o the_o difference_n be_v great_a than_o in_o the_o whole_a kind_n as_o heb._n 1.4_o 5._o isaac_n be_v a_o type_n of_o christ_n in_o relation_n to_o the_o sacrifice_n but_o not_o of_o the_o generation_n the_o father_n have_v beget_v his_o son_n through_o the_o communication_n of_o his_o nature_n and_o so_o of_o a_o true_a and_o proper_a generation_n but_o not_o of_o a_o physical_a or_o natural_a such_o as_o man_n and_o of_o other_o animate_v creature_n but_o by_o a_o supernatural_a whereby_o god_n beget_v according_a to_o the_o truth_n of_o his_o word_n for_o the_o more_o excellent_a he_o be_v that_o beget_v so_o the_o more_o excellent_a be_v the_o generation_n as_o it_o appear_v by_o the_o example_n of_o every_o thing_n that_o do_v generate_v that_o which_o be_v esteem_v a_o perfection_n in_o natural_a generation_n be_v in_o a_o infinite_o most_o eminent_a degree_n attribute_v unto_o god_n as_o to_o beget_v that_o which_o be_v like_a unto_o himself_o and_o by_o the_o communication_n of_o his_o nature_n as_o to_o the_o thing_n itself_o the_o generation_n beside_o its_o be_v assert_v in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n the_o secundity_n of_o god_n nature_n be_v a_o reason_n for_o it_o for_o it_o requite_v a_o communication_n to_o several_a person_n according_a to_o that_o of_o the_o prophet_n 66.9_o prophet_n isa_n 66.9_o shall_v i_o cause_v to_o bring_v forth_o and_o not_o bring_v forth_o or_o beget_v myself_o say_v the_o lord_n as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v shall_v i_o make_v other_o fruitful_a and_o be_v barren_a myself_o that_o in_o relation_n to_o the_o son_n and_o to_o the_o holy_a ghost_n may_v be_v do_v in_o two_o way_n after_o the_o manner_n of_o spiritual_a substance_n namely_o beget_v the_o son_n by_o a_o natural_a intellection_n and_o by_o the_o same_o will_v or_o love_n breathe_v the_o holy_a ghost_n both_o consubstantial_a to_o himself_o and_o of_o the_o same_o nature_n and_o perfection_n distinguish_v among_o themselves_o and_o one_o from_o another_o only_o by_o their_o personality_n and_o personal_a attribute_n this_o consideration_n serve_v to_o demonstrate_v not_o only_o the_o generation_n of_o the_o son_n but_o also_o the_o procession_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o consequent_o the_o whole_a trinity_n for_o scripture_n describe_v son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n as_o exist_v of_o themselves_o as_o the_o father_n work_v understand_a witness_v send_v etc._n etc._n take_v not_o only_o passive_o which_o be_v of_o thing_n but_o active_o which_o be_v of_o person_n for_o it_o belong_v to_o none_o
but_o person_n endue_v with_o reason_n and_o as_o i_o say_v before_o to_o person_n it_o belong_v to_o act_v the_o high_a name_n of_o god_n own_o son_n only_o beget_v etc._n etc._n which_o in_o scripture_n be_v give_v the_o lord_n jesus_n be_v not_o upon_o the_o account_n of_o his_o miraculous_a conception_n in_o the_o womb_n of_o the_o virgin_n as_o socinian_o will_v have_v it_o we_o confess_v therein_o god_n have_v a_o special_a hand_n and_o it_o be_v effect_v in_o a_o extraordinary_a manner_n but_o this_o be_v not_o enough_o to_o entitle_v he_o to_o the_o filiation_n which_o the_o question_n be_v now_o about_o to_o distinguish_v he_o from_o all_o other_o in_o the_o world_n call_v son_n of_o god_n as_o anon_o we_o shall_v have_v occasion_n to_o speak_v of_o adam_n have_v also_o a_o miraculous_a birth_n yet_o the_o name_n of_o only_o beget_v and_o god_n own_o and_o proper_a son_n do_v not_o belong_v to_o he_o in_o christ_n conception_n and_o birth_n god_n do_v not_o concur_v material_o but_o efficient_o with_o his_o power_n but_o not_o with_o his_o substance_n see_v christ_n as_o to_o the_o flesh_n be_v not_o of_o any_o invisible_a seed_n of_o god_n but_o of_o the_o 1.3_o the_o rom._n 1.3_o seed_n of_o david_n what_o brother_n he_o have_v be_v quite_o of_o another_o 2.12_o another_o rom._n 8.29_o heb._n 2.12_o order_n and_o quality_n they_o be_v such_o not_o by_o generation_n but_o by_o regeneration_n by_o adoption_n not_o by_o 1.18_o by_o 1_o job_n 1.12_o 1_o joh._n 3.1_o 1_o pet._n 1.23_o jam._n 1.18_o nature_n as_o the_o text_n quote_v in_o the_o margin_n which_o may_v be_v peruse_v do_v declare_v wherefore_o christ_n be_v son_n of_o god_n in_o another_o manner_n than_o man_n be_v so_o he_o be_v call_v the_o image_n of_o god_n and_o the_o character_n of_o his_o person_n in_o a_o most_o different_a way_n from_o that_o whereby_o adam_n be_v say_v to_o be_v make_v according_a to_o god_n likeness_n as_o in_o creature_n it_o be_v a_o perfection_n to_o beget_v their_o simile_n or_o that_o which_o be_v like_a unto_o themselves_o that_o may_v not_o be_v deny_v god_n now_o as_o we_o can_v conceive_v a_o communicability_n of_o a_o nature_n which_o be_v spiritual_a and_o ad_fw-la intra_fw-la but_o by_o the_o two_o faculty_n of_o understanding_n and_o willing_a who_o operation_n be_v immanent_a so_o it_o may_v well_o be_v say_v that_o there_o can_v be_v but_o two_o procession_n in_o god_n one_o by_o way_n of_o intellection_n whereby_o the_o son_n be_v beget_v who_o be_v call_v the_o word_n wisdom_n and_o image_n of_o the_o father_n and_o the_o other_o by_o way_n of_o volition_n whereby_o be_v breathe_v the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o for_o that_o reason_n be_v special_o call_v love_n and_o though_o the_o son_n do_v also_o understand_v himself_o yet_o he_o beget_v neither_o himself_n nor_o another_o for_o he_o understand_v himself_o not_o of_o a_o notional_a intellection_n to_o generate_v which_o belong_v only_o to_o the_o father_n but_o with_o a_o notional_a one_o which_o be_v common_a to_o the_o father_n and_o to_o the_o holy_a ghost_n this_o be_v say_v not_o to_o prove_v our_o faith_n but_o only_o to_o demonstrate_v that_o what_o we_o believe_v be_v not_o contrary_a to_o reason_n though_o it_o be_v above_o it_o for_o all_o these_o matter_n as_o i_o observe_v before_o and_o as_o all_o orthodox_n and_o learned_a man_n that_o write_v upon_o they_o be_v agree_v be_v to_o be_v ground_v on_o scripture_n rather_o than_o upon_o human_a reason_n the_o chief_a part_n of_o our_o comfort_n and_o salvation_n lie_v in_o the_o belief_n of_o this_o doctrine_n for_o as_o in_o christ_n be_v but_o one_o person_n so_o there_o be_v two_o nature_n whereby_o he_o be_v in_o a_o capacity_n of_o perfect_v our_o redemption_n which_o otherwise_o he_o can_v not_o be_v in_o we_o own_v he_o be_v call_v son_n of_o god_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d eminent_o and_o by_o excellency_n but_o beside_o he_o be_v also_o call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d belove_v proper_a only_o beget_v whereby_o he_o be_v distinguish_v from_o adopt_a son_n and_o by_o his_o be_v call_v son_n of_o the_o live_a god_n distinguish_v from_o elijab_n jeremiah_n and_o such_o extraordinary_a person_n that_o have_v be_v in_o the_o world_n which_o conclude_v his_o consubstantiality_n with_o the_o father_n for_o it_o have_v be_v a_o monstruous_a generation_n if_o out_o of_o the_o father_n bosom_n have_v come_v a_o son_n of_o another_o nature_n he_o that_o be_v to_o be_v bear_v of_o a_o virgin_n be_v to_o be_v call_v the_o son_n of_o the_o high_a not_o by_o reason_n of_o a_o miraculous_a conception_n as_o pretend_v by_o crollius_n out_o of_o maldonat_a the_o jesuit_n but_o because_o of_o a_o eternal_a generation_n chief_o as_o also_o by_o reason_n afterward_o of_o a_o personal_a union_n of_o both_o nature_n for_o though_o upon_o that_o account_n he_o may_v also_o be_v call_v the_o son_n of_o god_n yet_o that_o can_v not_o entitle_v he_o to_o be_v the_o only_o beget_v because_o he_o be_v dear_a and_o belove_a but_o he_o be_v dear_a and_o belove_v because_o the_o only_o beget_v of_o the_o father_n christ_n the_o first_o beget_v in_o respect_n to_o adopt_a brethren_n not_o because_o their_o sonship_n be_v of_o the_o same_o nature_n with_o he_o but_o only_o thus_o far_o as_o adoption_n imitate_v nature_n as_o civilian_n say_v so_o their_o adoption_n 1.23_o adoption_n 1_o pet._n 1.23_o and_o regeneration_n be_v a_o kind_n of_o imitation_n of_o his_o eternal_a generation_n and_o to_o he_o belong_v all_o the_o privilege_n of_o the_o first-born_a and_o be_v call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o 3.14_o the_o colos_n 1.17_o 18._o rev._n 3.14_o beginning_n of_o the_o creature_n not_o passive_o but_o active_o christ_n be_v call_v the_o beginning_n of_o the_o creation_n of_o god_n or_o of_o all_o thing_n by_o he_o create_v that_o be_v the_o beginner_n or_o the_o first_o efficient_a cause_n of_o all_o creature_n according_a to_o a_o style_n use_v in_o scripture_n when_o the_o thing_n be_v set_v for_o the_o person_n as_o when_o the_o jewish_a nation_n be_v call_v by_o the_o name_n of_o 2.9_o of_o rom._n 4.9_o gal._n 2.9_o circumcision_n the_o act_n for_o the_o agent_n and_o the_o abstract_n for_o the_o concrete_a thus_o christ_n be_v say_v of_o god_n make_v unto_o we_o wisdom_n righteousness_n sanctification_n and_o redemption_n that_o be_v he_o make_v we_o wise_a unto_o salvation_n make_v we_o righteous_a for_o he_o be_v our_o justifier_n sanctifier_n and_o redeemer_n thus_o he_o be_v often_o call_v 4.2_o call_v 1_o john_n 2._o and_o 4.2_o the_o popitation_n for_o our_o sin_n and_o our_o salvation_n for_o propitiatour_n and_o saviour_n though_o there_o be_v a_o infinite_a difference_n between_o christ_n and_o human_a generation_n yet_o herein_o they_o agree_v that_o it_o import_v in_o he_o that_o be_v beget_v a_o communication_n of_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o begetter_n it_o be_v say_v of_o adam_n 5.3_o adam_n gen._n 5.3_o that_o he_o beget_v a_o son_n in_o his_o own_o likeness_n after_o his_o image_n be_v this_o to_o be_v understand_v of_o a_o like_a nature_n only_o and_o not_o of_o the_o same_o undisputable_o he_o beget_v he_o out_o of_o his_o own_o substance_n and_o his_o own_o nature_n and_o no_o other_o he_o communicate_v unto_o he_o well_o represent_v by_o the_o word_n in_o his_o own_o likeness_n and_o after_o his_o image_n the_o word_n likeness_n do_v not_o show_v any_o disparity_n or_o difference_n but_o a_o equality_n and_o sameness_n of_o nature_n which_o here_o by_o the_o by_o i_o observe_v in_o relation_n to_o a_o thing_n i_o shall_v have_v occasion_n to_o mention_v about_o the_o honour_n to_o be_v render_v unto_o christ_n that_o all_o man_n shall_v honour_v the_o son_n as_o they_o honour_v the_o father_n for_o they_o will_v have_v it_o only_o to_o be_v like_a but_o not_o equal_a or_o the_o same_o when_o here_o likeness_n be_v take_v for_o sameness_n and_o equality_n now_o as_o of_o seth_n so_o we_o must_v say_v of_o christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n as_o the_o other_o be_v of_o adam_n for_o as_o seth_n have_v not_o be_v adam_n son_n except_o he_o be_v of_o the_o same_o nature_n so_o christ_n can_v not_o true_o and_o proper_o be_v god_n son_n except_o he_o be_v of_o the_o same_o nature_n with_o the_o father_n seth_n be_v beget_v after_o his_o father_n image_n that_o be_v of_o the_o same_o nature_n and_o the_o lord_n jesus_n more_o strong_o to_o show_v the_o sameness_n in_o nature_n with_o the_o father_n which_o he_o have_v in_o a_o more_o eminent_a way_n than_o ever_o seth_n have_v his_o from_o adam_n be_v not_o say_v to_o be_v after_o his_o father_n image_n but_o in_o more_o noble_a expressive_a and_o lively_a word_n say_v to_o be_v the_o express_a image_n
for_o the_o unjust_a as_o a_o lamb_n without_o blemish_n and_o without_o spot_n it_o seem_v these_o socinian_o set_v their_o hand_n and_o seal_n to_o his_o condemnation_n the_o same_o question_v as_o be_v between_o our_o saviour_n and_o the_o jew_n be_v now_o between_o socinian_o and_o we_o he_o say_v he_o be_v son_n of_o god_n equal_a and_o one_o with_o the_o father_n which_o socinian_n no_o more_o than_o jew_n be_v willing_a to_o believe_v and_o do_v flat_o deny_v in_o the_o sense_n for_o which_o he_o be_v condemn_v namely_o for_o call_v himself_o the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o make_v himself_o equal_a with_o god_n when_o the_o devil_n himself_o be_v not_o so_o peremptory_a for_o he_o make_v it_o but_o questionable_a when_o at_o the_o time_n he_o tempt_v he_o he_o say_v if_o thou_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n yet_o at_o several_a other_o time_n those_o wicked_a spirit_n own_v he_o to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o the_o live_a god_n but_o socinian_o give_v he_o the_o lie_n when_o he_o do_v several_a time_n call_v and_o suffer_v himself_o to_o be_v call_v son_n of_o god_n in_o the_o true_a sense_n and_o contrary_a to_o that_o of_o socinian_o sure_o he_o who_o be_v the_o truth_n will_v not_o have_v speak_v against_o it_o nor_o allow_v other_o to_o tell_v a_o lie_n now_o it_o be_v most_o certain_a that_o he_o call_v himself_o son_n of_o god_n not_o only_o in_o the_o forequote_v place_n of_o john_n where_o he_o own_v he_o call_v himself_o the_o son_n of_o god_n according_a to_o the_o sense_n which_o the_o jew_n have_v give_v his_o word_n and_o have_v make_v himself_o god_n in_o opposition_n to_o man_n that_o be_v god_n by_o nature_n which_o no_o man_n be_v but_o also_o in_o other_o place_n as_o when_o he_o ask_v the_o blind_a man_n do_v thou_o believe_v in_o the_o son_n of_o god_n which_o he_o declare_v himself_o to_o be_v in_o who_o the_o man_n ought_v to_o believe_v and_o to_o worship_v he_o as_o he_o do_v and_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o man_n must_v believe_v in_o and_o worship_v the_o only_a true_a god_n also_o martha_n 11.27_o martha_n joh._n 11.27_o declare_v she_o believe_v he_o to_o be_v the_o christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n by_o a_o gradation_n from_o his_o office_n to_o his_o person_n for_o the_o christ_n or_o messiah_n which_o shall_v come_v into_o the_o world_n the_o ancient_a jew_n according_a to_o several_a prophecy_n believe_v the_o messiah_n to_o be_v the_o true_a son_n of_o god_n and_o god_n by_o nature_n which_o that_o second_o psalm_n do_v clear_o prove_v among_o many_o other_o thou_o be_v my_o son_n wherefore_o the_o psalmist_n v._o 10._o exhort_v king_n to_o be_v wise_a and_o the_o judge_n of_o the_o earth_n to_o be_v instruct_v and_o to_o serve_v the_o lord_n with_o fear_n and_o to_o kiss_v the_o son_n to_o kiss_v his_o foot_n in_o token_n of_o obedience_n and_o submission_n lest_o he_o be_v angry_a and_o they_o perish_v from_o the_o way_n when_o his_o wrath_n be_v kindle_v but_o a_o little_a a_o little_a wrath_n be_v sufficient_a to_o break_v the_o heathen_n and_o the_o uttermost_a part_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o to_o dash_v they_o in_o piece_n like_o a_o potter_n vessel_n all_o this_o be_v speak_v of_o he_o to_o who_o it_o be_v say_v thou_o be_v my_o son_n and_o in_o the_o latter_a end_n of_o the_o last_o verse_n the_o prophet_n declare_v bless_v be_v all_o that_o put_v their_o trust_n in_o he_o and_o man_n be_v not_o to_o put_v their_o trust_n in_o any_o but_o in_o the_o true_a god_n by_o nature_n in_o which_o sense_n scripture_n show_v how_o christ_n be_v call_v god_n and_o son_n of_o god_n not_o only_o in_o that_o positive_a text_n i_o and_o the_o father_n be_v one_o but_o also_o out_o of_o this_o other_o 8.19_o other_o john_n 8.19_o you_o neither_o know_v i_o nor_o my_o father_n for_o if_o you_o have_v know_v i_o you_o shall_v have_v know_v my_o father_n also_o because_o we_o be_v one_o and_o he_o that_o see_v i_o see_v he_o that_o send_v i_o because_o he_o be_v the_o express_a image_n of_o he_o that_o send_v he_o and_o all_o this_o be_v confirm_v in_o that_o other_o notable_a place_n 11._o place_n john_n 12.45_o ch_n 14.9_o 10_o 11._o he_o that_o have_v see_v i_o have_v see_v the_o father_n for_z i_o be_o in_o the_o father_n and_o the_o father_n in_o i_o this_o truth_n must_v needs_o be_v very_o important_a for_o it_o be_v affirm_v in_o one_o verse_n and_o confirm_v in_o the_o next_o which_o truth_n appear_v yet_o far_o v._o 7._o if_o you_o have_v know_v i_o you_o shall_v have_v know_v my_o father_n also_o and_o from_o henceforth_o you_o know_v he_o and_o have_v see_v he_o the_o reason_n must_v needs_o be_v this_o because_o you_o have_v see_v i_o and_o in_o the_o same_o chapter_n to_o show_v that_o oneness_n and_o sameness_n of_o he_o in_o nature_n and_o power_n with_o the_o father_n he_o say_v whatsoever_o you_o shall_v ask_v in_o my_o name_n that_o i_o will_v do_v which_o for_o great_a assurance_n and_o confirmation_n be_v repeat_v in_o the_o next_o verse_n if_o you_o shall_v ask_v any_o thing_n in_o my_o name_n i_o will_v do_v it_o i_o myself_o there_o be_v no_o need_n for_o you_o to_o go_v to_o any_o one_o else_o s._n paul_n speak_v of_o the_o mystery_n of_o godliness_n 3.16_o godliness_n 1_o tim_n 3.16_o whereof_o the_o first_o part_n be_v that_o god_n be_v manifest_a in_o the_o flesh_n say_v it_o be_v a_o great_a one_o by_o his_o expression_n the_o thing_n be_v unquestionable_a and_o most_o certain_a for_o he_o say_v without_o controversy_n great_a be_v the_o mystery_n of_o godliness_n but_o socinian_n be_v of_o another_o mind_n for_o they_o make_v not_o only_o a_o great_a controversy_n but_o give_v a_o flat_a denial_n of_o god_n be_v manifest_a in_o the_o flesh_n and_o one_o of_o they_o here_o among_o we_o have_v late_o reprint_v and_o set_v his_o name_n to_o a_o book_n with_o this_o title_n christian_a religion_n not_o mysterious_a as_o it_o be_v to_o give_v the_o apostle_n the_o lie_n on_o which_o i_o intend_v by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n to_o make_v some_o few_o general_a observation_n towards_o the_o latter_a end_n of_o my_o discourse_n we_o must_v do_v our_o duty_n though_o other_o neglect_v they_o and_o endeavour_v out_o of_o scripture_n to_o convince_v or_o confound_v the_o enemy_n of_o the_o truth_n who_o be_v suffer_v with_o bare_a face_n to_o sow_v their_o tare_n and_o spread_v their_o poison_n and_o blasphemy_n as_o if_o it_o be_v only_o a_o problem_n and_o a_o disputable_a case_n whether_o or_o not_o the_o lord_n jesus_n do_v just_o or_o unjust_o suffer_v for_o blasphemy_n for_o have_v affirm_v himself_o to_o be_v son_n of_o god_n good_a lord_n what_o time_n be_v we_o come_v to_o and_o how_o great_a a_o darkness_n be_v the_o nation_n fall_v into_o after_o so_o much_o light_n and_o now_o we_o be_v upon_o the_o matter_n of_o blasphemy_n let_v i_o observe_v how_o in_o scripture_n there_o be_v enough_o say_v about_o it_o to_o prove_v christ_n to_o be_v the_o essential_a son_n of_o god_n let_v the_o etymology_n and_o derivation_n of_o the_o word_n blasphemy_n be_v what_o it_o will_v it_o be_v most_o certain_a that_o in_o scripture_n 6._o scripture_n rev._n 13.5_o 6._o it_o be_v use_v to_o express_v when_o any_o thing_n be_v say_v or_o do_v against_o god_n in_o his_o nature_n or_o attribute_n or_o when_o one_o do_v assume_v and_o arrogate_v unto_o himself_o that_o which_o belong_v to_o god_n alone_o in_o the_o first_o sense_n we_o read_v when_o hezekiah_n hear_v the_o word_n of_o rabshakeh_a 22._o 2_o king_n 19.3_o 6_o 22._o he_o say_v this_o be_v a_o day_n of_o blasphemy_n and_o god_n call_v it_o so_o within_o few_o verse_n after_o the_o servant_n of_o the_o king_n of_o assyria_n have_v blaspheme_v i_o and_o again_o who_o have_v thou_o blaspheme_v in_o the_o second_o sense_n the_o jew_n call_v our_o bless_a saviour_n blasphemer_n we_o stone_v thou_o not_o say_v they_o to_o he_o 10.33_o he_o john_n 10.33_o for_o a_o good_a work_n but_o for_o blasphemy_n and_o because_o that_o thou_o be_v a_o man_n make_v thyself_o god_n and_o so_o after_o his_o confession_n before_o the_o chief_a priest_n they_o say_v you_o have_v hear_v the_o blasphemy_n wherefore_o if_o blasphemy_n be_v against_o god_n true_o and_o essential_o take_v may_v we_o not_o conclude_v the_o lord_n jesus_n to_o be_v true_o essential_o god_n he_o call_v blasphemy_n what_o the_o jew_n have_v say_v against_o he_o 23._o he_o mark_v 3.22_o 23._o that_o be_v do_v cast_v devil_n by_o beelzebub_n prince_n of_o devil_n the_o evangelist_n lay_v upon_o occasion_n of_o the_o abuse_v put_v upon_o he_o after_o he_o be_v bring_v before_o the_o high_a priest_n 22.65_o priest_n luk._n 22.65_o and_o
many_o other_o thing_n blasphemous_o speak_v they_o against_o he_o and_o paul_n what_o before_o his_o conversion_n he_o say_v or_o act_v against_o he_o for_o that_o same_o call_v himself_o 1.13_o himself_o 1_o tim._n 1.13_o a_o blasphemer_n and_o when_o he_o make_v other_o to_o do_v as_o he_o do_v that_o he_o call_v 18.6_o call_v act_n 26.11_o 2_o tim._n 3.2_o act._n 18.6_o he_o compel_v they_o to_o blaspheme_v i_o believe_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n point_v at_o socinian_o among_o other_o when_o he_o say_v by_o the_o apostle_n that_o in_o the_o last_o day_n man_n shall_v be_v blasphemer_n as_o be_v those_o that_o oppose_v paul_n when_o he_o preach_v christ_n wherein_o they_o blaspheme_v we_o have_v many_o head_n more_o and_o abundance_n of_o text_n of_o scripture_n to_o prove_v the_o lord_n jesus_n to_o be_v true_a natural_a son_n of_o god_n beget_v of_o the_o father_n from_o all_o eternity_n and_o these_o place_n we_o in_o the_o follow_a part_n of_o our_o discourse_n shall_v have_v occasion_n to_o make_v use_n of_o one_o of_o the_o full_a and_o plain_a we_o shall_v begin_v with_o afford_v by_o john_n 1.1_o john_n joh._n 1.1_o in_o the_o beginning_n be_v the_o word_n and_o the_o word_n be_v with_o god_n and_o the_o word_n be_v god_n which_o to_o corrupt_v the_o heresiarch_n socinus_n use_v his_o utmost_a wicked_a endeavour_n the_o word_n be_v say_v to_o have_v be_v in_o the_o beginning_n not_o as_o if_o he_o than_o have_v begin_v to_o be_v but_o that_o then_o he_o be_v exist_v and_o so_o from_o all_o eternity_n before_o any_o creature_n be_v make_v there_o be_v no_o time_n only_a eternity_n christ_n be_v call_v the_o wisdom_n of_o god_n to_o show_v he_o as_o well_o as_o the_o father_n be_v from_o everlasting_a it_o be_v blasphemy_n to_o think_v that_o ever_o there_o be_v a_o time_n when_o god_n want_v his_o wisdom_n which_o speak_v of_o himself_o say_v 8.23_o say_v prov._n 8.23_o i_o be_v set_v up_o from_o everlasting_a and_o god_n by_o he_o manifest_v himself_o in_o the_o world_n in_o the_o creation_n thereof_o that_o christ_n the_o word_n be_v eternal_a that_o be_v he_o be_v before_o his_o incarnation_n before_o the_o virgin_n mary_n and_o before_o the_o gospel_n begin_v to_o be_v preach_v it_o appear_v out_o of_o john_n evidence_n in_o the_o beginning_n be_v the_o word_n out_o of_o which_o both_o his_o deity_n and_o eternity_n be_v prove_v the_o other_o evangelist_n do_v write_v of_o christ_n humanity_n in_o relation_n to_o his_o birth_n or_o temporal_a generation_n when_o he_o take_v upon_o he_o our_o human_a nature_n and_o in_o time_n be_v bear_v of_o the_o bless_a virgin_n mary_n for_o in_o her_o womb_n the_o word_n be_v make_v flesh_n and_o his_o body_n therein_o form_v out_o of_o her_o substance_n without_o company_n of_o man._n but_o john_n fall_v immediate_o upon_o his_o divinity_n and_o call_v he_o the_o word_n for_o he_o be_v the_o davar_n promise_v unto_o the_o father_n now_o this_o be_v in_o the_o beginning_n that_o be_v before_o any_o thing_n be_v when_o thing_n begin_v to_o be_v make_v he_o then_o be_v when_o the_o world_n be_v not_o yet_o make_v afterward_o he_o indeed_o be_v make_v flesh_n but_o have_v a_o pre-existing_a be_v socinian_n cavil_v that_o by_o the_o beginning_n be_v mean_v the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n which_o be_v clear_o false_a for_o that_o do_v not_o answer_v the_o scope_n of_o the_o evangelist_n who_o design_n be_v to_o prove_v the_o word_n to_o be_v god_n which_o to_o do_v he_o draw_v his_o argument_n from_o his_o be_v in_o the_o beginning_n so_o by_o the_o word_n beginning_n that_o must_v be_v understand_v which_o conclude_v the_o word_n to_o be_v god_n their_o interpretation_n agree_v with_o that_o of_o arius_n that_o time_n have_v be_v when_o the_o word_n be_v not_o and_o because_o it_o be_v in_o that_o sense_n take_v in_o some_o place_n 1.2_o place_n mark_v 1.1_o luke_n 1.2_o for_o a_o temporal_a beginning_n that_o be_v the_o time_n of_o his_o incarnation_n it_o do_v not_o follow_v that_o it_o be_v so_o to_o be_v take_v in_o s._n john_n for_o mark_n begin_v his_o book_n with_o these_o word_n the_o beginning_n of_o the_o gospel_n of_o jesus_n christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n he_o write_v the_o gospel_n for_o he_o be_v a_o evangelist_n and_o in_o his_o very_a first_o word_n he_o give_v the_o content_n of_o what_o he_o be_v write_v but_o herein_o the_o person_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o immediate_o concern_v he_o with_o other_o evangelist_n give_v a_o account_n of_o his_o humanity_n but_o john_n speak_v of_o his_o divinity_n he_o allude_v to_o moses_n who_o have_v give_v the_o history_n of_o the_o creation_n and_o begin_v his_o gospel_n in_o the_o word_n wherewith_o moses_n begin_v his_o book_n of_o genesis_n in_o the_o beginning_n god_n create_v the_o heaven_n and_o the_o earth_n and_o he_o his_o gospel_n in_o the_o beginning_n be_v the_o word_n but_o our_o evangelist_n be_v not_o satisfy_v to_o say_v the_o word_n be_v with_o god_n but_o add_v in_o the_o next_o verse_n the_o same_o be_v in_o the_o begin_n with_o god_n and_o so_o v._o 3_o he_o fall_v upon_o speak_v of_o the_o creation_n for_o all_o thing_n be_v make_v by_o he_o etc._n etc._n we_o know_v how_o in_o scripture_n the_o word_n beginning_n as_o well_o as_o several_a other_o have_v different_a signification_n but_o in_o this_o place_n such_o a_o sense_n destroy_v the_o analogy_n of_o faith_n and_o contradict_v those_o text_n which_o affirm_v the_o eternity_n of_o god_n son_n which_o hereafter_o we_o shall_v have_v occasion_n to_o mention_v as_o that_o of_o the_o prophet_n 53.8_o prophet_n isai_n 53.8_o who_o shall_v declare_v his_o generation_n it_o be_v ab_fw-la impossibili_fw-la as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v no_o man_n can_v declare_v it_o and_o elsewhere_o under_o the_o type_n of_o solomon_n it_o be_v say_v 72.17_o say_v psal_n 72.17_o his_o name_n shall_v endure_v for_o ever_o etc._n etc._n not_o only_o of_o a_o eternity_n à_fw-la parte_fw-la post_fw-la but_o also_o a_o part_n ante_fw-la as_o without_o end_v so_o without_o beginning_n as_o express_v in_o the_o prophetical_a psalm_n of_o christ_n kingdom_n and_o priesthood_n 110.3_o priesthood_n psalm_n 110.3_o from_o the_o womb_n of_o the_o morning_n thou_o have_v the_o dew_n of_o his_o youth_n and_o now_o i_o be_o upon_o this_o first_o verse_n of_o the_o first_o chapter_n of_o st._n john_n i_o shall_v observe_v three_o thing_n much_o to_o our_o purpose_n the_o first_o that_o the_o word_n begin_v absolute_o speak_v do_v in_o scripture_n relate_v to_o the_o creation_n or_o beginning_n of_o the_o world_n out_o of_o several_a place_n so_o well_o know_v in_o scripture_n i_o shall_v now_o only_o quote_v one_o and_o more_o hereafter_o as_o i_o shall_v have_v occasion_n for_o have_v it_o not_o be_v tell_v you_o from_o the_o beginning_n have_v you_o 40.21_o you_o isa_n 40.21_o not_o understand_v from_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o earth_n here_o by_o beginning_n be_v signify_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o earth_n the_o second_o thing_n i_o observe_v be_v this_o the_o word_n be_v with_o god_n here_o be_v a_o personal_a distinction_n between_o god_n and_o the_o word_n who_o be_v with_o god_n as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v reside_v till_o he_o be_v make_v flesh_n and_o in_o respect_n to_o this_o incarnation_n he_o be_v say_v to_o have_v come_v down_o from_o the_o father_n the_o three_o thing_n observe_v be_v this_o the_o word_n be_v god_n the_o person_n call_v the_o word_n as_o it_o appear_v by_o the_o article_n be_v the_o subject_a here_o call_v and_o assert_v to_o be_v god_n that_o be_v in_o the_o same_o essential_a sense_n as_o the_o god_n with_o who_o the_o word_n be_v be_v say_v to_o be_v god_n that_o be_v by_o nature_n for_o as_o in_o this_o verse_n but_o one_o word_n though_o thrice_o name_v be_v to_o be_v understand_v so_o but_o one_o true_a god_n in_o nature_n though_o thrice_o name_v be_v mean_v in_o the_o place_n thus_o the_o essentiality_n and_o eternity_n of_o the_o word_n who_o be_v the_o son_n with_o the_o father_n be_v here_o evident_o set_v forth_o but_o this_o be_v more_o at_o large_a set_v down_o in_o the_o next_o reason_n but_o a_o second_o reason_n be_v that_o john_n make_v the_o word_n equal_a with_o god_n when_o he_o say_v the_o word_n be_v with_o god_n which_o have_v a_o relation_n to_o his_o eternity_n it_o be_v always_o with_o god_n for_o here_o not_o only_o he_o distinguish_v the_o person_n but_o make_v the_o word_n equal_a with_o god_n the_o father_n he_o say_v the_o word_n that_o be_v in_o the_o beginning_n be_v one_o and_o god_n the_o father_n who_o he_o be_v with_o another_z the_o person_n of_o the_o son_n and_o of_o the_o father_n be_v distinct_a indeed_o but_o in_o make_v they_o
condescension_n be_v a_o wonderful_a argument_n of_o god_n goodness_n which_o be_v the_o great_a glory_n of_o divine_a nature_n this_o be_v cause_n of_o thankfulness_n not_o of_o cavil_n and_o exception_n he_o know_v what_o be_v best_a and_o fit_a for_o he_o to_o do_v and_o want_v not_o our_o counsel_n have_v the_o son_n of_o god_n appear_v as_o a_o great_a prince_n he_o probable_o will_v thereby_o have_v make_v more_o hypocrite_n than_o real_a convert_v and_o not_o so_o well_o persuade_v man_n to_o holiness_n and_o goodness_n for_o argument_n to_o do_v it_o must_v not_o be_v fetch_v from_o the_o pomp_n and_o prosperity_n of_o this_o world_n but_o from_o the_o great_a reward_n and_o glory_n of_o that_o which_o be_v to_o come_v but_o before_o i_o leave_v this_o point_n i_o must_v take_v notice_n of_o that_o place_n wherein_o the_o apostle_n make_v the_o son_n of_o god_n upon_o his_o come_n into_o the_o world_n speak_v thus_o 10.5_o heb._n 10.5_o but_o a_o body_n have_v thou_o prepare_v i_o the_o body_n be_v prepare_v against_o his_o come_n into_o the_o world_n and_o that_o prepare_a body_n at_o his_o come_n he_o take_v so_o than_o he_o be_v before_o the_o body_n be_v prepare_v for_o he_o and_o before_o his_o come_n into_o the_o world_n for_o nothing_o can_v be_v say_v to_o be_v sit_v as_o the_o word_n imply_v in_o the_o original_a for_o one_o who_o be_v not_o hence_o we_o conclude_v how_o the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v before_o his_o incarnation_n and_o have_v a_o be_v but_o we_o now_o return_v to_o our_o proof_n the_o next_o place_n be_v of_o the_o same_o prophet_n 9.6_o isa_n 9.6_o for_o unto_o we_o a_o child_n be_v bear_v unto_o we_o a_o son_n be_v give_v and_o the_o government_n shall_v be_v upon_o his_o shoulder_n and_o his_o name_n shall_v be_v call_v wonderful_a counsellor_n the_o mighty_a god_n the_o everlasting_a father_n the_o prince_n of_o peace_n of_o the_o increase_n of_o his_o government_n and_o peace_n there_o shall_v be_v no_o end_n etc._n etc._n i_o ask_v be_v this_o appliable_a to_o any_o son_n that_o be_v to_o be_v bear_v of_o ahaz_n for_o this_o be_v the_o same_o person_n mention_v in_o the_o forequote_v place_n and_o may_v be_v see_v if_o compare_v together_o observe_v how_o the_o different_a expression_n do_v denote_v different_a nature_n the_o child_n be_v for_o humanity_n the_o son_n for_o the_o divinity_n the_o child_n be_v bear_v but_o the_o son_n not_o bear_v but_o give_v in_o relation_n to_o human_a nature_n he_o have_v a_o beginning_n and_o a_o progress_n he_o be_v a_o child_n before_o he_o be_v a_o man_n but_o the_o son_n not_o so_o a_o child_n be_v not_o before_o he_o be_v bear_v but_o the_o son_n have_v a_o be_v and_o do_v exist_v before_o he_o be_v give_v yet_o both_o unite_v in_o one_o person_n for_o the_o child_n be_v not_o one_o person_n and_o the_o son_n another_o for_o all_o along_o the_o prophet_n though_o he_o have_v name_v a_o child_n and_o a_o son_n speak_v in_o the_o singular_a number_n his_o shoulder_n his_o name_n his_o government_n as_o his_o name_n be_v wonderful_a so_o be_v the_o manner_n of_o the_o union_n these_o two_o nature_n be_v in_o one_o person_n without_o confusion_n the_o divine_a retain_v her_o propriety_n so_o have_v the_o human_a and_o yet_o these_o different_a propriety_n be_v so_o unite_v in_o one_o person_n that_o the_o person_n may_v be_v call_v by_o the_o name_n of_o both_o nature_n christ_n be_v god_n and_o christ_n be_v man_n in_o the_o concrete_a though_o in_o the_o abstract_n it_o may_v not_o be_v say_v divinity_n be_v humanity_n nor_o humanity_n divinity_n they_o be_v unite_v but_o without_o confusion_n but_o to_o return_v to_o our_o point_n there_o be_v never_o so_o many_o glorious_a name_n join_v together_o to_o describe_v one_o person_n as_o we_o find_v to_o be_v in_o this_o place_n to_o he_o alone_o they_o all_o belong_v because_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n say_v so_o which_o if_o they_o be_v not_o proper_o his_o by_o right_n he_o will_v not_o give_v they_o wonderful_a in_o his_o name_n in_o his_o nature_n in_o his_o person_n in_o his_o incarnation_n wonderful_a every_o way_n counsellor_n for_o he_o be_v the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o father_n without_o which_o the_o only_a wise_a god_n never_o do_v any_o thing_n the_o mighty_a god_n most_o proper_a to_o god_n and_o never_o in_o the_o singular_a number_n give_v any_o creature_n 10.21_o creature_n isa_n 10.21_o the_o remnant_n say_v our_o prophet_n shall_v return_v even_o the_o remnant_n of_o jacob_n unto_o the_o mighty_a god_n the_o true_a essential_a god_n the_o god_n of_o israel_n be_v mean_v in_o the_o place_n it_o be_v such_o a_o name_n as_o be_v make_v use_n of_o when_o in_o a_o most_o eminent_a way_n god_n be_v describe_v 10.17_o describe_v deut._n 10.17_o your_o god_n be_v god_n of_o god_n and_o the_o cord_n of_o lord_n a_o great_a god_n mighty_a and_o terrible_a and_o 9.32_o and_o nehem._n 9.32_o now_o therefore_o our_o god_n the_o great_a the_o mighty_a and_o the_o terrible_a god_n and_o elsewhere_o 32.18_o elsewhere_o jerem_n 32.18_o the_o great_a the_o mighty_a god_n the_o lord_n of_o host_n be_v his_o name_n and_o when_o the_o question_n be_v to_o know_v who_o be_v the_o king_n of_o glory_n the_o answer_n be_v the_o lord_n strong_a and_o mighty_a this_o high_a and_o divine_a name_n be_v here_o in_o the_o place_n attribute_v to_o jesus_n christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n about_o who_o be_v the_o prophecy_n that_o which_o follow_v be_v no_o less_o considerable_a or_o incommunicable_a the_o everlasting_a father_n or_o as_o 〈…〉_o father_n of_o eternity_n nothing_o more_o noble_a or_o become_a god_n can_v be_v say_v than_o to_o call_v he_o so_o nothing_o ●ut_v the_o true_a god_n be_v eternal_a and_o nothing_o more_o prop●●●_n to_o god_n than_o eternity_n how_o can_v a_o child_n or_o any_o meet_a mortal_a man_n be_v call_v everlasting_a father_n now_o what_o can_v hinder_v we_o hence_o to_o argue_v thus_o the_o mighty_a god_n and_o everlasting_a father_n be_v true_a god_n by_o nature_n but_o christ_n be_v such_o out_o of_o this_o place_n therefore_o christ_n be_v true_a god_n by_o nature_n two_o thing_n more_o be_v here_o say_v of_o this_o son_n of_o god_n he_o be_v the_o prince_n of_o peace_n for_o by_o his_o death_n he_o make_v our_o peace_n with_o god_n and_o procure_v a_o inward_a peace_n of_o conscience_n and_o reconcile_v thing_n in_o heaven_n and_o on_o the_o earth_n he_o come_v into_o the_o world_n in_o time_n of_o universal_a peace_n when_o the_o roman_a empire_n the_o great_a in_o the_o world_n full_o enjoy_v it_o and_o for_o a_o sign_n the_o temple_n of_o janus_n in_o rome_n be_v shut_v up_o nay_o herod_n and_o pilate_n 23.12_o luke_n 23.12_o both_o his_o enemy_n be_v before_o his_o death_n upon_o his_o account_n reconcile_v one_o to_o another_o second_o it_o be_v say_v of_o he_o the_o government_n shall_v be_v upon_o his_o shoulder_n and_o of_o the_o increase_n of_o his_o government_n and_o peace_n there_o shall_v be_v no_o end_n after_o the_o father_n have_v say_v to_o he_o 9_o he_o psal_n 2.7_o 8_o 9_o thou_o be_v my_o son_n this_o day_n have_v i_o beget_v thou_o he_o promise_v to_o give_v he_o the_o heathen_n for_o his_o inheritance_n and_o the_o utmost_a part_n of_o the_o earth_n for_o his_o possession_n thou_o shall_v break_v they_o with_o a_o rod_n of_o iron_n thou_o shall_v dash_v they_o in_o piece_n like_o a_o potter_n vessel_n whereunto_o agree_v another_o scripture_n 5._o scripture_n rev._n 12_o 5._o of_o the_o manchild_n that_o be_v to_o rule_v all_o nation_n with_o a_o rod_n of_o iron_n this_o he_o declare_v unto_o pilate_n 1.33_o pilate_n john_n 18.37_o rev._n 11.15_o luke_n 1.33_o i_o be_o a_o king_n to_o this_o end_n be_v i_o bear_v and_o for_o this_o cause_n come_v i_o into_o the_o world_n so_o then_o the_o kingdom_n of_o this_o world_n be_v his_o and_o he_o shall_v reign_v for_o ever_o and_o ever_o and_o of_o his_o kingdom_n there_o shall_v be_v no_o end_n the_o new_a testament_n do_v also_o in_o several_a place_n demonstrate_v two_o nature_n in_o the_o person_n of_o christ_n s._n john_n have_v affirm_v the_o word_n to_o be_v god_n which_o relate_v to_o his_o eternal_a generation_n he_o do_v afterward_o speak_v of_o his_o incarnation_n when_o he_o say_v 1.14_o say_v joh._n 1.14_o the_o word_n that_o be_v god_n be_v make_v flesh_n that_o be_v the_o person_n call_v the_o word_n the_o son_n of_o god_n take_v upon_o he_o our_o human_a nature_n and_o so_o unite_v two_o nature_n divine_a and_o human_a in_o one_o person_n for_o this_o word_n be_v in_o the_o whole_a chapter_n speak_v of_o as_o of_o a_o person_n act_v make_v or_o create_v come_v all_o this_o be_v the_o character_n of_o a_o person_n
and_o what_o john_n express_v thus_o the_o word_n be_v make_v flesh_n s._n paul_n call_v it_o 3.16_o it_o 1_o tim._n 3.16_o god_n be_v manifest_a in_o the_o flesh_n if_o by_o the_o word_n flesh_n human_a nature_n be_v mean_v as_o certain_o it_o be_v than_o this_o import_v that_o god_n appear_v make_v himself_o know_v and_o be_v manifest_a in_o assume_v our_o human_a nature_n and_o that_o the_o god_n that_o be_v thus_o make_v flesh_n and_o be_v manifest_a be_v christ_n jesus_n the_o second_o person_n of_o the_o godhead_n who_o be_v in_o the_o form_n that_o be_v in_o the_o nature_n of_o god_n for_o the_o nature_n be_v the_o be_v of_o a_o thing_n and_o the_o form_n give_v that_o be_v well_o jesus_n christ_n in_o the_o form_n of_o god_n think_v it_o not_o robbery_n to_o be_v equal_a with_o god_n 7._o god_n phil._n 2.6_o 7._o because_o it_o be_v his_o right_n 〈◊〉_d take_v upon_o he_o the_o form_n of_o a_o servant_n and_o be_v make_v in_o the_o likeness_n of_o man_n and_o be_v find_v in_o fashion_n as_o a_o man_n he_o be_v god_n before_o he_o be_v make_v in_o that_o likeness_n this_o be_v plain_a that_o a_o god_n become_v man_n he_o be_v make_v that_o which_o he_o be_v not_o yet_o cease_v not_o to_o be_v that_o which_o he_o be_v that_o this_o god_n that_o be_v make_v flesh_n and_o manifest_v in_o the_o flesh_n and_o find_v in_o the_o likeness_n of_o man_n here_o be_v explain_v what_o we_o must_v understand_v by_o flesh_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n the_o second_o person_n of_o the_o most_o holy_a trinity_n be_v declare_v elsewhere_o 8.3_o elsewhere_o rom._n 8.3_o god_n send_v his_o own_o son_n in_o likeness_n of_o sinful_a flesh_n all_o these_o represent_v christ_n as_o god_n and_o as_o man_n do_v clear_o demonstrate_v he_o to_o be_v both_o god_n and_o man_n another_o place_n there_o be_v much_o to_o our_o purpose_n it_o be_v this_o 9.5_o this_o rom._n 9.5_o of_o who_o the_o israelite_n as_o concern_v the_o flesh_n christ_n come_v who_o be_v over_o all_o god_n bless_v for_o ever_o this_o restriction_n as_o concern_v the_o flesh_n do_v imply_v that_o christ_n come_v not_o from_o the_o jew_n concern_v some_o other_o thing_n this_o settle_v two_o relation_n in_o christ_n one_o according_a to_o the_o flesh_n as_o express_v act_n 2.30_o what_o must_v the_o other_o be_v scripture_n usual_o do_v oppose_v the_o spirit_n to_o the_o flesh_n and_o the_o flesh_n to_o the_o spirit_n so_o in_o christ_n there_o must_v be_v a_o principle_n that_o be_v spiritual_a or_o else_o this_o restriction_n according_a to_o the_o flesh_n be_v frivolous_a and_o not_o pertinent_a one_o thing_n can_v be_v distinguish_v of_o itself_o a_o thing_n be_v in_o itself_o but_o one_o thing_n and_o distinction_n be_v between_o different_a thing_n for_o no_o one_o thing_n do_v differ_v from_o itself_o now_o that_o as_o there_o be_v in_o christ_n a_o principle_n concern_v the_o flesh_n and_o another_o according_a to_o the_o spirit_n anon_o we_o shall_v by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n have_v occasion_n to_o speak_v of_o but_o now_o thus_o far_o we_o must_v say_v that_o as_o by_o the_o flesh_n his_o humanity_n be_v mean_v so_o be_v his_o divine_a nature_n by_o the_o spirit_n for_o 3.17_o for_o 1_o joh._n 4.24_o 2_o cor._n 3.17_o god_n be_v a_o spirit_n the_o text_n we_o now_o be_v upon_o be_v remarkable_a upon_o several_a account_n our_o bless_a saviour_n as_o it_o be_v very_o well_o know_v be_v a_o jew_n bear_v of_o the_o seed_n of_o abraham_n of_o the_o tribe_n of_o judah_n and_o of_o the_o family_n of_o david_n this_o be_v the_o apostle_n meaning_n when_o he_o say_v of_o who_o as_o concern_v the_o flesh_n christ_n come_v which_o do_v necessary_o imply_v he_o come_v not_o of_o they_o concern_v some_o other_o thing_n in_o he_o the_o pedigree_n of_o his_o manhood_n be_v indeed_o derive_v from_o thence_o but_o it_o have_v be_v in_o vain_a there_o to_o have_v seek_v for_o another_o genealogy_n of_o this_o melchisedec_n the_o article_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d join_v with_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d show_v how_o in_o he_o beside_o human_a nature_n there_o be_v another_o for_o s._n paul_n who_o trouble_v not_o his_o reader_n with_o superfluous_a expression_n will_v not_o have_v add_v those_o word_n except_o in_o christ_n have_v be_v another_o nature_n or_o to_o what_o purpose_n say_v according_a to_o the_o flesh_n if_o he_o have_v be_v a_o mere_a man_n and_o herein_o chief_o lie_v the_o prerogative_n of_o the_o jew_n that_o christ_n who_o be_v god_n be_v bear_v among_o they_o their_o privilege_n do_v not_o herein_o consist_v that_o moses_n jo●huah_n elijah_n john_n baptist_n etc._n etc._n be_v bear_v among_o they_o they_o all_o be_v but_o man_n but_o that_o christ_n be_v because_o he_o be_v god_n for_o this_o he_o add_v as_o the_o great_a reason_n and_o speak_v of_o his_o divine_a nature_n who_o be_v over_o all_o god_n bless_v for_o ever_o he_o say_v not_o be_v call_v but_o be_v he_o be_v god_n over_o all_o the_o father_n of_o the_o same_o stock_n tha●_n be_v bear_v of_o the_o jew_n before_o he_o or_o over_o all_o thing_n whatsoever_o the_o word_n bless_v for_o ever_o be_v in_o scripture_n attribute_v to_o the_o true_a eternal_a god_n and_o even_o in_o our_o saviour_n time_n when_o the_o jew_n say_v the_o bless_a they_o mean_v the_o true_a god_n thus_o the_o high_a priest_n ask_v the_o lord_n jesus_n 14.61_o jesus_n mark_v 14.61_o be_v thou_o the_o christ_n the_o son_n of_o the_o bless_a which_o another_o evangelist_n express_v thus_o 70._o thus_o luke_n 20_o 70._o be_v thou_o the_o son_n of_o god_n in_o another_o place_n the_o same_o apostle_n afford_v a_o convince_a proof_n of_o this_o truth_n that_o in_o christ_n be_v two_o nature_n where_o he_o speak_v of_o they_o thus_o 4._o thus_o rom._n 1.3_o 4._o concern_v his_o son_n jesus_n christ_n our_o lord_n which_o be_v make_v of_o the_o seed_n of_o david_n according_a to_o the_o flesh_n and_o declare_v to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n with_o power_n according_a to_o the_o spirit_n of_o holiness_n by_o the_o resurrection_n from_o the_o dead_a wherein_o s._n paul_n teach_v in_o what_o respect_n christ_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n not_o according_a to_o the_o flesh_n for_o thus_o he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o man_n of_o the_o seed_n of_o david_n but_o according_a to_o the_o spirit_n of_o holiness_n which_o be_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n nature_n and_o according_a to_o that_o spirit_n he_o have_v be_v declare_v to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n with_o power_n certain_o the_o opposition_n use_v by_o the_o apostle_n show_v he_o can_v be_v son_n of_o god_n upon_o both_o account_n but_o only_o upon_o one_o for_o if_o he_o have_v be_v according_a to_o both_o paul_n will_v have_v say_v declare_v the_o son_n of_o god_n as_o to_o the_o flesh_n and_o as_o to_o the_o spirit_n and_o herein_o will_v have_v make_v no_o difference_n between_o the_o son_n of_o god_n according_a to_o the_o flesh_n and_o according_a to_o the_o spirit_n for_o as_o it_o be_v contrary_a to_o 9.5_o to_o rom._n 9.5_o scripture_n to_o call_v the_o lord_n jesus_n god_n according_a to_o the_o flesh_n for_o god_n and_o flesh_n be_v opposite_a so_o it_o be_v contrary_a to_o say_v christ_n be_v son_n of_o god_n according_a to_o the_o flesh_n for_o by_o the_o same_o reason_n one_o be_v say_v to_o be_v son_n of_o god_n by_o the_o same_o he_o may_v be_v call_v god_n as_o we_o see_v it_o both_o join_v 82.6_o join_v psal_n 82.6_o i_o have_v say_v you_o be_v god_n and_o all_o of_o you_o be_v child_n of_o the_o most_o high_a and_o we_o read_v where_o the_o jew_n upbraid_v our_o saviour_n 36._o saviour_n joh._n 10.33_o 36._o that_o he_o make_v himself_o god_n that_o be_v absolute_o he_o render_v the_o word_n thus_o i_o say_v i_o be_o the_o son_n of_o god_n jesus_n christ_n be_v say_v 8._o say_v phil._n 2.5_o 6_o 7_o 8._o to_o be_v in_o the_o form_n of_o god_n and_o make_v in_o the_o likeness_n of_o man_n it_o be_v not_o say_v make_v in_o the_o form_n of_o god_n but_o be_v his_o be_v be_v relate_v to_o god_n and_o make_v to_o man_n he_o be_v god_n but_o make_v man_n he_o be_v make_v in_o the_o likeness_n of_o man_n and_o form_v in_o fashion_n as_o a_o man_n certain_o here_o be_v two_o nature_n assert_v divine_a and_o human_a whence_o we_o say_v that_o as_o by_o his_o incarnation_n he_o be_v real_o man_n so_o as_o sure_o his_o be_v in_o the_o form_n of_o god_n signify_v that_o he_o be_v real_o god_n before_o he_o become_v man_n as_o he_o be_v man_n after_o his_o be_v bear_v of_o the_o virgin_n mary_n these_o expression_n conclude_v for_o both_o his_o deity_n and_o humanity_n and_o if_o
of_o man_n body_n it_o be_v to_o distinguish_v it_o from_o the_o soul_n so_o of_o his_o soul_n to_o distinguish_v it_o from_o the_o body_n for_o though_o in_o one_o man_n there_o be_v soul_n and_o body_n yet_o the_o soul_n be_v not_o the_o body_n nor_o the_o body_n the_o soul_n so_o in_o christ_n though_o he_o be_v but_o one_o person_n yet_o that_o person_n consist_v of_o divine_a and_o human_a nature_n one_o express_v by_o spirit_n the_o other_o by_o flesh_n a_o necessary_a distinction_n to_o make_v we_o know_v which_o nature_n in_o he_o be_v speak_v of_o for_o they_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v confound_v each_o have_v its_o proper_a attribute_n but_o as_o their_o way_n of_o argue_v be_v altogether_o cavil_n and_o sophistry_n so_o they_o will_v put_v a_o false_a gloss_n upon_o our_o saviour_n forequote_v word_n that_o which_o be_v bear_v of_o the_o flesh_n be_v flesh_n etc._n etc._n as_o if_o he_o be_v speak_v of_o that_o which_o be_v natural_o do_v but_o christ_n conception_n and_o birth_n be_v supernatural_a but_o see_v what_o a_o wrong_a principle_n they_o go_v upon_o for_o the_o conception_n by_o the_o spirit_n they_o reckon_v to_o be_v natural_a as_o if_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n bestow_v upon_o we_o in_o a_o spiritual_a generation_n or_o regeneration_n be_v natural_a to_o we_o when_o it_o be_v a_o supernatural_a gift_n of_o divine_a grace_n now_o see_v the_o lord_n jesus_n according_a to_o the_o flesh_n be_v not_o bear_v of_o any_o spiritual_a but_o a_o carnal_a matter_n he_o be_v not_o proper_o bear_v as_o of_o a_o seed_n and_o so_o may_v not_o be_v call_v son_n of_o god_n according_a to_o the_o flesh_n though_o through_o the_o operation_n of_o the_o spirit_n he_o be_v bear_v of_o fleshly_a matter_n but_o that_o one_o may_v proper_o be_v say_v to_o be_v bear_v of_o the_o spirit_n it_o be_v not_o enough_o to_o have_v the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v the_o author_n of_o his_o birth_n but_o also_o he_o must_v be_v bear_v of_o spiritual_a seed_n to_o the_o end_n there_o may_v be_v a_o proportion_n between_o a_o spiritual_a and_o a_o carnal_a birth_n or_o else_o if_o to_o have_v one_o to_o be_v proper_o bear_v of_o god_n it_o be_v enough_o for_o god_n to_o create_v a_o carnal_a seed_n than_o it_o will_v follow_v that_o all_o thing_n which_o at_o first_o be_v create_v out_o of_o the_o earth_n and_o water_n through_o a_o production_n of_o seed_n by_o god_n may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v proper_o bear_v of_o god_n which_o be_v absurd_a so_o that_o after_o that_o manner_n christ_n may_v not_o be_v say_v to_o be_v proper_o bear_v of_o god_n and_o be_v his_o son_n the_o knowledge_n of_o this_o matter_n be_v of_o so_o high_a a_o concernment_n that_o i_o must_v somewhat_o more_o enlarge_v upon_o it_o socinian_n will_v have_v christ_n to_o be_v true_o and_o proper_o son_n of_o god_n according_a to_o the_o flesh_n because_o say_v they_o god_n act_v the_o part_n of_o a_o man_n but_o we_o say_v how_o to_o the_o end_n one_o may_v in_o point_n of_o generation_n act_n the_o part_n of_o a_o man_n it_o be_v not_o enough_o to_o afford_v any_o matter_n of_o generation_n but_o it_o be_v necessary_a it_o be_v out_o of_o his_o own_o substance_n for_o if_o he_o afford_v another_o and_o foreign_a matter_n that_o which_o be_v bear_v may_v upon_o the_o account_n of_o such_o matter_n by_o no_o mean_n be_v call_v his_o son_n nor_o be_v say_v to_o be_v bear_v of_o such_o a_o one_o because_o he_o be_v not_o of_o his_o own_o matter_n and_o substance_n neither_o may_v he_o be_v account_v to_o be_v true_a father_n to_o one_o so_o bear_v he_o that_o be_v not_o bear_v of_o the_o flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o a_o man_n may_v not_o be_v call_v such_o a_o man_n be_v proper_a son_n certain_o if_o a_o woman_n shall_v beget_v a_o son_n of_o another_o and_n not_o of_o her_o own_o substance_n she_o may_v not_o be_v call_v his_o true_a mother_n for_o she_o communicate_v nothing_o unto_o he_o by_o the_o same_o reason_n one_o may_v not_o be_v call_v a_o true_a father_n who_o be_v author_n of_o generation_n not_o of_o his_o own_o body_n and_o substance_n but_o of_o another_o to_o be_v a_o true_a son_n one_o must_v be_v beget_v not_o only_o by_o the_o father_n but_o also_o of_o the_o father_n by_o the_o father_n efficient_o and_o of_o the_o father_n in_o some_o manner_n material_o that_o be_v either_o of_o the_o father_n be_v own_o substance_n or_o out_o of_o that_o which_o be_v derive_v therefrom_o hence_o it_o appear_v how_o in_o the_o generation_n of_o christ_n according_a to_o the_o flesh_n the_o father_n act_v not_o proper_o the_o part_n of_o a_o man_n because_o he_o communicate_v not_o his_o own_o substance_n but_o make_v use_v of_o that_o of_o another_o wherefore_o christ_n may_v not_o according_a to_o the_o flesh_n be_v proper_o and_o absolute_o call_v son_n of_o god_n but_o only_o secundum_fw-la quid_fw-la and_o in_o some_o respect_n as_o adam_n by_o god_n form_v out_o of_o clay_n be_v indeed_o call_v 3.38_o call_v luke_n 3.38_o son_n of_o god_n but_o improper_o for_o he_o be_v not_o beget_v in_o the_o manner_n of_o a_o son_n so_o christ_n according_a to_o the_o flesh_n must_v not_o proper_o be_v call_v son_n of_o god_n not_o be_v beget_v of_o god_n substance_n in_o the_o manner_n of_o a_o son_n to_o be_v proper_o a_o father_n be_v not_o to_o supply_v the_o part_n of_o a_o father_n as_o socinian_n say_v but_o real_o to_o beget_v of_o his_o own_o substance_n or_o else_o he_o may_v not_o proper_o be_v call_v such_o a_o one_o be_v son_n our_o saviour_n indeed_o as_o to_o his_o human_a nature_n be_v proper_o mary_n son_n because_o beget_v of_o her_o substance_n but_o in_o this_o generation_n of_o christ_n god_n supply_v indeed_o the_o part_n of_o a_o man_n as_o much_o as_o relate_v to_o the_o absolute_a generation_n of_o a_o man_n but_o not_o as_o to_o the_o generation_n of_o a_o son_n so_o that_o in_o relation_n to_o god_n it_o may_v be_v call_v a_o production_n rather_o than_o a_o generation_n a_o man_n by_o god_n will_n may_v be_v make_v of_o nothing_o or_o of_o any_o matter_n but_o a_o son_n be_v a_o relative_n to_o the_o father_n with_o who_o he_o have_v a_o consanguinity_n and_o unity_n of_o blood_n he_o must_v be_v form_v of_o the_o very_a substance_n of_o his_o father_n to_o say_v that_o god_n create_v a_o new_a matter_n in_o the_o virgin_n be_v womb_n be_v to_o talk_v at_o random_n without_o the_o least_o ground_n for_o it_o in_o scripture_n neither_o be_v it_o necessary_a for_o god_n can_v out_o of_o the_o virgin_n blood_n have_v cause_v a_o perfect_a generation_n of_o a_o man_n wherefore_o we_o conclude_v that_o since_o christ_n be_v call_v god_n the_o father_n proper_a and_o own_o son_n he_o must_v be_v beget_v of_o god_n the_o father_n be_v own_o and_o proper_a nature_n and_o substance_n hence_o we_o do_v also_o infer_v that_o the_o name_n of_o son_n of_o god_n signify_v some_o essential_a thing_n in_o christ_n and_o not_o a_o office_n and_o dignity_n as_o appear_v out_o of_o the_o act_n 8.37_o act_n act_n 8.37_o i_o believe_v say_v the_o eunuch_n that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n for_o if_o to_o be_v christ_n and_o son_n of_o god_n signify_v the_o same_o thing_n than_o the_o word_n will_v contain_v this_o tautology_n that_o christ_n be_v christ_n but_o upon_o this_o solemn_a occasion_n of_o his_o be_v about_o to_o be_v baptize_v in_o answer_n to_o what_o philip_n have_v say_v that_o he_o be_v to_o be_v baptize_v in_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n so_o he_o must_v make_v a_o declaration_n that_o he_o believe_v in_o christ_n and_o of_o what_o he_o believe_v he_o to_o be_v namely_o the_o son_n of_o god_n so_o that_o the_o name_n son_n be_v not_o the_o name_n of_o a_o office_n as_o that_o of_o christ_n but_o the_o name_n of_o the_o person_n that_o exercise_v that_o office_n as_o good_a as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v this_o jesus_n christ_n who_o thou_o have_v preach_v to_o i_o be_v not_o to_o be_v consider_v only_o as_o the_o son_n of_o the_o virgin_n mary_n who_o die_v and_o be_v crucify_v but_o also_o as_o the_o son_n of_o god_n who_o live_v for_o ever_o to_o be_v christ_n and_o to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v not_o the_o same_o thing_n but_o different_a relation_n the_o sonship_n have_v a_o relation_n to_o a_o father_n as_o the_o patornity_n have_v to_o a_o son_n but_o the_o relation_n of_o the_o word_n christ_n be_v either_o to_o god_n who_o 1.9_o who_o heb._n 1.9_o anoint_v he_o or_o to_o the_o church_n over_o which_o 9.9_o which_o zech._n 9.9_o he_o be_v make_v king_n so_o then_o according_a to_o the_o formal_a reason_n son_n of_o god_n
and_o christ_n do_v not_o denote_v the_o same_o thing_n neither_o can_v christ_n by_o virtue_n of_o his_o office_n which_o he_o receive_v but_o in_o time_n be_v proper_o call_v son_n of_o god_n and_o equal_a with_o god_n as_o it_o appear_v 5.18_o appear_v john_n 10.33_o 37_o 38._o compare_v with_o john_n 5.18_o he_o make_v himself_o and_o real_o be_v no_o sort_n of_o man_n more_o prone_a to_o wrest_v scripture_n than_o socinus_n and_o socinian_n wherefore_o in_o the_o matter_n now_o in_o hand_n in_o that_o confession_n which_o peter_n make_v of_o and_o to_o our_o saviour_n matthew_n have_v these_o word_n 16.16_o word_n mat._n 16.16_o thou_o be_v christ_n the_o son_n of_o the_o live_a god_n and_o john_n upon_o another_o occasion_n 6.69_o occasion_n john_n 6.69_o we_o believe_v and_o be_v sure_a that_o thou_o be_v that_o christ_n the_o son_n of_o the_o live_a god_n but_o because_o mark_n say_v only_o 8.29_o only_o mark_v 8.29_o thou_o be_v the_o christ_n and_o luke_n 9.20_o luke_n luke_n 9.20_o the_o christ_n of_o god_n wherefore_o say_v he_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n contain_v the_o full_a meaning_n of_o son_n of_o the_o live_a god_n but_o who_o know_v not_o the_o diversity_n by_o the_o evangelist_n use_v in_o their_o narration_n one_o more_o at_o large_a the_o other_o more_o brief_o one_o set_v down_o all_o the_o other_o only_o some_o part_n as_o it_o be_v observe_v between_o matthew_n and_o mark_n be_v relation_n if_o after_o the_o socinian_n way_n from_o the_o comparison_n of_o word_n one_o can_v conclude_v all_o to_o be_v but_o one_o and_o the_o same_o sense_n many_o absurdity_n will_v arise_v therefrom_o as_o for_o instance_n matthew_n relate_v that_o our_o saviour_n say_v to_o the_o man_n sick_a of_o the_o palsy_n 9.2_o mat._n 9.2_o son_n be_v of_o good_a cheer_n thy_o sin_n be_v forgive_v thou_o but_o mark_v leaf_n out_o the_o word_n 2.5_o word_n mark_v 2.5_o be_v of_o good_a cheer_n say_v son_n thy_o sin_n be_v forgive_v thou_o and_o luke_n instead_o of_o the_o word_n son_n use_v that_o of_o man_n 5.20_o man_n luke_n 5.20_o thy_o sin_n be_v forgive_v thou_o then_o according_a to_o this_o way_n of_o argue_v it_o may_v be_v conclude_v how_o the_o word_n son_n and_o man_n be_v but_o one_o and_o the_o same_o and_o signify_v but_o one_o and_o the_o same_o thing_n for_o who_o matthew_n and_o mark_n call_v son_n luke_n call_v man_n so_o after_o this_o rate_n man_n and_o son_n now_o do_v not_o differ_v as_o a_o absolute_a name_n that_o denote_v nature_n and_o a_o relative_a signify_v a_o relation_n to_o a_o father_n it_o be_v say_v how_o in_o a_o vision_n cornelius_n see_v a_o angel_n of_o god_n act_v 10.3_o and_o v._o 30_o he_o say_v to_o peter_n behold_v a_o man_n stand_v before_o i_o in_o bright_a clothing_n what_o he_o see_v in_o the_o same_o vision_n be_v call_v a_o angel_n and_o a_o man_n must_v we_o conclude_v a_o angel_n to_o be_v a_o man_n after_o the_o same_o manner_n they_o will_v wrest_v some_o other_o place_n as_o when_o matthew_n say_v 26.63_o mat._n 26.63_o the_o high_a priest_n say_v unto_o he_o i_o abjure_v thou_o by_o the_o live_a god_n that_o thou_o tell_v we_o whether_o thou_o be_v the_o christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o mark_v 14.61_o mark_v mar._n 14.61_o again_o the_o high_a priest_n ask_v he_o be_v thou_o the_o christ_n the_o son_n of_o the_o bless_a and_o luke_n 67._o luke_n luke_n 26.66_o 67._o the_o chief_a priest_n and_o the_o scribe_n lead_v he_o into_o their_o counsel_n say_v be_v thou_o the_o christ_n tell_v we_o where_o the_o name_n son_n of_o god_n be_v omit_v the_o heresiarch_n do_v conclude_v that_o the_o word_n son_n of_o god_n and_o christ_n be_v the_o same_o but_o we_o already_o show_v the_o falseness_n of_o such_o consequence_n and_o this_o be_v far_a to_o be_v observe_v how_o though_o the_o relation_n by_o the_o evangelist_n be_v not_o contrary_a yet_o they_o sometime_o differ_v and_o be_v not_o express_v in_o the_o same_o word_n matthew_n use_v the_o name_n son_n of_o god_n mark_n call_v he_o the_o son_n of_o the_o bless_a where_o the_o word_n god_n and_o bless_a signify_v the_o same_o thing_n though_o one_o express_v the_o nature_n the_o other_o the_o worship_n this_o difference_n of_o relate_v do_v far_a appear_v that_o matthew_n and_o mark_n say_v the_o high_a priest_n ask_v but_o luke_n say_v it_o of_o the_o chief_a priest_n and_o scribe_n shall_v we_o then_o concludé_v that_o the_o high_a priest_n and_o the_o scribe_n be_v the_o same_o but_o withal_o the_o word_n son_n of_o god_n be_v not_o quite_o leave_v out_o by_o luke_n for_o we_o find_v it_o v._o 70._o then_o say_v they_o all_o be_v thou_o then_o the_o son_n of_o god_n here_o by_o the_o by_o take_v notice_n how_o what_o our_o saviour_n say_v of_o himself_o under_o the_o name_n of_o son_n of_o man_n by_o reason_n of_o what_o be_v say_v of_o sit_v on_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o the_o power_n of_o god_n they_o well_o take_v the_o meaning_n to_o be_v son_n of_o god_n which_o christ_n confirm_v and_o indeed_o he_o often_o declare_v himself_o to_o be_v true_a son_n of_o god_n but_o we_o read_v not_o where_o that_o ever_o he_o deny_v it_o but_o to_o return_v to_o our_o text_n hence_o appear_v the_o insignificancy_n of_o their_o exception_n for_o all_o the_o evangelist_n do_v join_v the_o name_n of_o christ_n and_o son_n of_o god_n and_o we_o be_v to_o take_v special_a notice_n how_o after_o our_o saviour_n have_v affirm_v he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n they_o all_o conclude_v he_o have_v blaspheme_v which_o there_o have_v be_v no_o cause_n for_o they_o to_o say_v except_o thereby_o have_v be_v mean_v he_o who_o be_v beget_v of_o the_o essence_n and_o nature_n of_o god_n and_o therein_o equal_a with_o he_o it_o seem_v they_o will_v not_o be_v persuade_v but_o that_o christ_n and_o son_n of_o god_n be_v synonimous_a to_o which_o end_n they_o far_o make_v use_n of_o other_o place_n whereof_o the_o first_o have_v these_o word_n 5._o word_n 1_o joh._n 5.1_o vers_fw-la 5._o whosoever_o believe_v that_o jesus_n be_v the_o christ_n be_v bear_v of_o god_n the_o next_o be_v thus_o who_o be_v he_o that_o overcome_v the_o world_n but_o he_o that_o believe_v that_o jesus_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n the_o last_o be_v this_o 4.15_o †_o ‑_o chap._n 4.15_o whosoever_o shall_v confess_v that_o jesus_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n god_n dwell_v in_o he_o and_o he_o in_o god_n whence_o they_o will_v infer_v that_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n and_o son_n of_o god_n be_v the_o same_o because_o they_o be_v put_v one_o for_o the_o other_o but_o the_o consequence_n be_v not_o good_a for_o all_o that_o follow_v be_v this_o that_o christ_n and_o the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v the_o same_o which_o we_o own_o and_o be_v true_a both_o do_v meet_v in_o the_o person_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n for_o he_o be_v son_n of_o god_n and_o christ_n but_o we_o deny_v the_o name_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v the_o same_o with_o that_o of_o son_n of_o god_n because_o this_o last_o be_v a_o name_n of_o nature_n and_o the_o first_o of_o office_n and_o to_o say_v he_o be_v son_n of_o god_n because_o he_o be_v christ_n be_v a_o mere_a beg_n of_o the_o question_n christ_n be_v call_v immanuel_n wonderful_n counselour_n mighty_a god_n the_o everlasting_a father_n the_o prince_n of_o peace_n by_o isaiah_n and_o the_o lord_n our_o righteousness_n by_o jeremiah_n 23.6_o jeremiah_n chap._n 23.6_o all_o which_o name_n be_v give_v to_o one_o and_o the_o same_o person_n yet_o none_o may_v say_v they_o do_v formal_o signify_v the_o same_o thing_n no_o more_o than_o prudence_n courage_n and_o liberality_n can_v be_v say_v to_o be_v the_o same_o because_o they_o meet_v in_o one_o and_o the_o same_o subject_n and_o the_o same_o person_n may_v be_v prudent_a courageous_a and_o liberal_a it_o be_v bad_a logical_a from_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o person_n to_o argue_v for_o the_o unity_n of_o name_n see_v one_o and_o the_o same_o person_n may_v be_v call_v by_o several_a name_n god_n be_v merciful_a and_o just_a yet_o though_o mercy_n and_o justice_n be_v in_o god_n they_o differ_v one_o from_o another_o between_o themselves_o abstractive_o take_v though_o we_o know_v in_o god_n they_o be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o thing_n thus_o though_o the_o word_n son_n of_o god_n and_o christ_n belong_v to_o one_o and_o the_o same_o person_n yet_o in_o themselves_o they_o differ_v one_o from_o another_o as_o do_v god_n and_o lord_n which_o in_o scripture_n be_v often_o join_v together_o as_o the_o lord_n god_n and_o put_v one_o for_o another_o yet_o god_n be_v a_o name_n of_o nature_n and_o lord_n signify_v his_o dominion_n they_o in_o themselves_o denote_v
different_a thing_n tho'_o pertain_v to_o one_o and_o the_o same_o subject_a or_o else_o every_o lord_n be_v a_o god_n thus_o a_o husband_n be_v a_o god_n unto_o his_o wife_n because_o sarah_n call_v abraham_n her_o lord_n the_o lord_n of_o the_o unfaithful_a servant_n be_v his_o god_n because_o he_o call_v he_o his_o lord_n the_o lord_n of_o the_o vineyard_n be_v the_o god_n of_o the_o vineyard_n because_o call_v its_o lord_n and_o many_o more_o such_o instance_n and_o i_o shall_v illustrate_v the_o thing_n by_o a_o trivial_a say_v among_o we_o a_o servant_n may_v say_v his_o master_n be_v lord_n but_o not_o god_n at_o home_n the_o text_n that_o say_v 23._o say_v 1_o john_n 2.22_o 23._o who_o be_v a_o liar_n but_o he_o that_o deni_v that_o jesus_n be_v the_o christ_n he_o be_v antichrist_n that_o deni_v the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n whosoever_o deni_v the_o son_n the_o same_o have_v not_o the_o father_n these_o word_n do_v import_v how_o he_o that_o deny_v jesus_n to_o be_v the_o christ_n do_v thereby_o deny_v the_o son_n not_o that_o christ_n and_o the_o son_n do_v formal_o signify_v the_o same_o in_o themselves_o but_o because_o to_o be_v christ_n and_o son_n of_o god_n do_v meet_v in_o one_o person_n so_o that_o none_o but_o the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v christ_n and_o redeemer_n of_o the_o world_n withal_o after_o this_o socinian_n way_n of_o argue_v it_o will_v follow_v in_o this_o text_n that_o the_o name_n christ_n father_n and_o son_n do_v signify_v the_o same_o for_o here_o the_o apostle_n offer_v two_o proposition_n the_o first_o he_o be_v a_o liar_n that_o deny_v jesus_n to_o be_v the_o christ_n the_o last_o he_o be_v antichrist_n that_o deny_v the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n the_o adversary_n make_v they_o both_o equivalent_a for_o in_o both_o be_v the_o same_o object_n of_o denial_n whence_o they_o infer_v that_o christ_n and_o the_o son_n be_v of_o the_o same_o signification_n but_o according_a to_o this_o kule_n it_o may_v be_v conclude_v that_o christ_n the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n signify_v the_o same_o because_o in_o the_o first_o proposition_n christ_n be_v the_o object_n of_o the_o denial_n and_o in_o the_o last_o the_o father_n and_o son_n together_o any_o one_o may_v see_v the_o absurdity_n of_o such_o consequence_n but_o because_o christ_n to_o prove_v himself_o to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n speak_v to_o the_o jew_n about_o his_o sanctification_n by_o the_o father_n which_o sanctification_n be_v the_o anoint_v speak_v of_o by_o peter_n 10.38_o peter_n act_n 10.38_o wherefore_o they_o will_v have_v that_o to_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o his_o be_v son_n of_o god_n but_o if_o there_o be_v no_o other_o reason_n of_o that_o divine_a filiation_n but_o the_o sanctification_n and_o anoint_v than_o the_o cause_n by_o the_o angel_n give_v in_o 1.35_o in_o luke_n 1.35_o scripture_n be_v false_a so_o then_o christ_n be_v call_v the_o son_n of_o god_n not_o only_o upon_o the_o account_n of_o his_o extraordinary_a birth_n and_o of_o his_o kingly_a office_n as_o socinus_n say_v but_o for_o be_v of_o the_o same_o nature_n and_o essence_n with_o the_o father_n which_o that_o text_n of_o john_n 10._o be_v not_o against_o for_o in_o that_o place_n our_o saviour_n do_v not_o give_v in_o the_o cause_n why_o he_o be_v son_n of_o god_n but_o only_o go_v about_o to_o refute_v the_o slander_n of_o blasphemy_n by_o the_o jew_n cast_v upon_o he_o not_o by_o a_o argument_n à_fw-fr pari_fw-la take_v from_o equal_a thing_n but_o from_o the_o lesser_a to_o the_o great_a he_o have_v say_v v._n 30._o i_o and_o my_o father_n be_v one_o thereby_o express_o assert_v his_o consubstantiality_n and_o oneness_n of_o nature_n with_o the_o father_n whereupon_o they_o take_v stone_n to_o stone_n he_o because_o of_o that_o pretend_a blasphemy_n in_o that_o he_o be_v man_n make_v himself_o god_n which_o objection_n he_o answer_v with_o a_o instance_n from_o less_o to_o great_a thus_o if_o those_o be_v without_o blasphemy_n call_v god_n who_o exercise_v a_o divine_a office_n in_o their_o rule_n and_o judge_v of_o man_n much_o more_o and_o upon_o a_o better_a account_n may_v christ_n the_o messiab_n from_o eternity_n beget_v by_o the_o father_n and_o in_o time_n send_v down_o from_o heaven_n into_o the_o world_n be_v call_v god_n wherefore_o there_o be_v no_o blasphemy_n nor_o have_v you_o any_o just_a cause_n of_o ston_a i_o because_o i_o say_v i_o be_o the_o son_n of_o god_n one_o with_o the_o father_n the_o name_n son_n of_o god_n relate_v to_o the_o eternal_a generation_n by_o and_o consubstantiality_n with_o the_o father_n therefore_o not_o a_o name_n of_o office_n but_o of_o nature_n and_o person_n and_o the_o name_n christ_n and_o son_n agree_v as_o to_o the_o material_a in_o one_o person_n but_o not_o in_o the_o formal_a the_o name_n son_n be_v by_o reason_n of_o a_o eternal_a generation_n and_o that_o of_o christ_n upon_o the_o account_n of_o a_o temporal_a anoint_v to_o a_o office_n in_o the_o mean_a while_o we_o retain_v the_o proper_a and_o literal_a sense_n of_o the_o word_n and_o not_o the_o metaphorical_a till_o we_o see_v cause_n to_o the_o contrary_n and_o this_o we_o leave_v for_o they_o to_o prove_v how_o because_o magistrate_n by_o reason_n of_o their_o office_n be_v call_v child_n of_o the_o most_o high_a therefore_o not_o because_o of_o a_o eternal_a generation_n and_o coessentiality_n with_o the_o father_n but_o for_o his_o royal_a dignity_n the_o lord_n jesus_n be_v call_v son_n of_o god_n to_o be_v short_a we_o have_v other_o text_n to_o prove_v how_o the_o name_n god_n son_n signify_v some_o essential_a thing_n in_o christ_n as_o that_o heretofore_o quote_v christ_n be_v make_v of_o the_o seed_n of_o david_n according_a to_o the_o flesh_n etc._n etc._n the_o flesh_n signify_v his_o humanity_n as_o do_v declare_v the_o son_n of_o god_n according_a to_o the_o spirit_n of_o holiness_n his_o divinity_n for_o we_o see_v 9.24_o see_v dan._n 9.24_o to_o anoint_v the_o most_o holy_a do_v denote_v by_o the_o most_o holy_a his_o divine_a person_n and_o by_o to_o anoint_v his_o office_n of_o mediator_n so_o we_o have_v that_o of_o the_o angel_n to_o the_o virgin_n the_o holy_a ghost_n shall_v come_v upon_o thou_o and_o the_o power_n of_o the_o high_a shall_v overshadow_v thou_o therefore_o also_o that_o holy_a thing_n that_o shall_v be_v bear_v of_o thou_o shall_v be_v call_v the_o son_n of_o god_n the_o angel_n meaning_n be_v that_o in_o christ_n conception_n the_o power_n of_o god_n be_v necessary_a to_o the_o end_n he_o that_o be_v to_o be_v bear_v may_v be_v call_v son_n of_o god_n but_o if_o that_o name_n have_v relate_v only_o to_o the_o office_n and_o he_o that_o be_v to_o be_v invest_v with_o it_o have_v be_v a_o mere_a man_n no_o need_n of_o that_o power_n of_o the_o spirit_n in_o the_o conception_n now_o the_o angel_n call_v holy_a that_o which_o it_o essential_a in_o christ_n he_o be_v holy_a before_o he_o shall_v be_v bear_v and_o that_o essential_a holy_a thing_n be_v call_v the_o son_n of_o god_n the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d signify_v not_o that_o man_n that_o be_v to_o be_v bear_v not_o holy_a in_o the_o concrete_a but_o holy_a in_o the_o abstract_n withal_o see_v in_o baptism_n the_o word_n son_n do_v not_o in_o christ_n signify_v his_o office_n but_o his_o nature_n for_o the_o name_n father_n and_o holy_a ghost_n do_v not_o denote_v any_o office_n but_o person_n so_o in_o christ_n it_o signify_v his_o divine_a nature_n not_o his_o office_n all_o this_o may_v also_o be_v prove_v out_o of_o other_o text_n as_o this_o 3.16_o this_o john_n 3.16_o god_n so_o love_v the_o world_n that_o he_o give_v his_o only_a beget_v son_n etc._n etc._n compare_v with_o 8.32_o with_o rom._n 8.32_o he_o that_o spare_v not_o his_o own_o son_n but_o deliver_v he_o up_o for_o we_o all_o wherein_o god_n love_n towards_o the_o world_n and_o we_o be_v so_o high_o commend_v which_o if_o it_o be_v only_o a_o office_n lay_v upon_o christ_n will_v come_v very_o short_a of_o that_o inflnite_a love_n of_o god_n which_o as_o paul_n say_v 18._o say_v ephes_n 3.19_o 18._o pass_v knowledge_n and_o give_v it_o the_o four_o dimension_n breadth_n length_n depth_n and_o height_n but_o to_o say_v that_o god_n spare_v not_o his_o own_o belove_a and_o only_o beget_v son_n but_o deliver_v he_o to_o death_n this_o be_v love_n indeed_o the_o same_o we_o may_v learn_v out_o of_o this_o 5.8_o heb._n 5.8_o that_o though_o he_o be_v a_o son_n yet_o learn_v he_o obedience_n by_o the_o thing_n which_o he_o suffer_v what_o man_n be_v he_o that_o will_v sacrifice_v his_o son_n to_o the_o safety_n and_o preservation_n of_o his_o enemy_n yet_o god_n have_v do_v it_o
nor_o of_o ens_fw-la be_v and_o essence_n and_o as_o to_o his_o immensity_n or_o infiniteness_n according_a to_o which_o he_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d whole_o whole_a whole_a in_o himself_o whole_a in_o all_o whole_a in_o every_o one_o and_o whole_a out_o of_o all_o he_o be_v neither_o circumscribe_v define_v by_o include_v in_o or_o exclude_v out_o of_o any_o place_n all_o these_o be_v past_a understanding_n not_o only_o of_o man_n but_o of_o angel_n also_o let_v those_o who_o pretend_v to_o know_v all_o thing_n and_o that_o to_o they_o nothing_o be_v a_o mystery_n take_v notice_n of_o this_o thus_o much_o in_o short_a of_o the_o incommunicable_a attribute_n or_o as_o otherwise_o call_v of_o the_o first_o order_n and_o as_o to_o those_o of_o the_o second_o and_o communicable_a to_o creature_n which_o yet_o must_v be_v well_o understand_v for_o a_o thing_n may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v impart_v or_o communicate_v in_o two_o way_n either_o when_o the_o same_o thing_n in_o number_n and_o species_n be_v impart_v to_o another_o or_o when_o the_o same_o be_v by_o analogy_n in_o likeness_n and_o proportion_n in_o the_o first_o way_n no_o propriety_n of_o god_n can_v be_v communicate_v to_o the_o creature_n because_o all_o infinite_a and_o the_o same_o with_o the_o nature_n but_o in_o the_o last_o in_o some_o measure_n and_o degree_n they_o be_v in_o as_o much_o as_o some_o effect_n like_v unto_o his_o attribute_n according_a to_o their_o capacity_n come_v out_o of_o they_o the_o attribute_n of_o this_o last_o sort_n may_v be_v reduce_v under_o these_o three_o head_n mercy_n wisdom_n and_o power_n mercy_n move_v and_o will_v wisdom_n do_v contrive_v and_o dispose_v and_o power_n execute_v all_o three_o in_o god_n infinite_a and_o eternal_a all_o three_o to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o son_n in_o the_o work_v of_o creation_n preservation_n and_o redemption_n in_o relation_n to_o the_o two_o first_o absolute_o consider_v in_o his_o divine_a nature_n and_o to_o the_o last_o in_o both_o divine_a and_o human_a in_o the_o capacity_n of_o mediator_n wherein_o he_o be_v both_o god_n and_o man_n for_o indeed_o the_o office_n of_o mediator_n require_v a_o person_n that_o shall_v be_v both_o to_o perform_v those_o thing_n that_o be_v to_o be_v do_v in_o relation_n to_o both_o because_o to_o suffer_v and_o die_v be_v the_o part_n of_o human_a nature_n which_o the_o divine_a be_v not_o capable_a of_o but_o to_o overcome_v death_n and_o our_o spiritual_a enemy_n can_v not_o be_v effect_v but_o by_o a_o divine_a power_n withal_o it_o become_v the_o majesty_n of_o god_n that_o the_o mediator_n shall_v be_v god_n for_o that_o majesty_n be_v so_o great_a that_o none_o but_o one_o that_o be_v intimate_v and_o equal_a with_o the_o father_n can_v interpose_v between_o god_n and_o man_n angel_n themselves_o can_v and_o dare_v not_o undertake_v it_o for_o they_o stand_v in_o need_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v confirm_v in_o their_o state_n of_o integrity_n beside_o that_o they_o be_v not_o pure_a in_o god_n sight_n much_o less_o any_o man_n mere_o such_o i_o ask_v who_o but_o a_o god_n can_v destroy_v sin_n appease_v god_n wrath_n overcome_v the_o power_n of_o satan_n with_o natural_a and_o eternal_a death_n who_o can_v make_v expiation_n for_o offence_n commit_v against_o a_o infinite_a god_n but_o he_o that_o be_v infinite_a himself_n by_o who_o intercession_n can_v god_n anger_n be_v pacify_v but_o through_o he_o that_o be_v his_o belove_a son_n by_o who_o power_n can_v satan_n and_o the_o whole_a power_n of_o darkness_n be_v overcome_v but_o by_o he_o that_o be_v strong_a than_o all_o devil_n and_o hell_n and_o who_o can_v conquer_v death_n but_o he_o that_o have_v destroy_v he_o who_o have_v the_o power_n of_o death_n and_o as_o none_o but_o a_o god_n can_v deliver_v we_o from_o all_o these_o evil_n under_o who_o power_n we_o be_v so_o none_o but_o a_o god_n can_v restore_v we_o to_o the_o good_n we_o have_v lose_v who_o can_v have_v restore_v we_o to_o a_o perfect_a righteousness_n but_o he_o that_o be_v righteousness_n itself_o who_o to_o god_n image_n but_o he_o that_o be_v the_o express_a image_n of_o his_o person_n and_o the_o brightness_n of_o his_o glory_n who_o can_v make_v we_o child_n of_o god_n but_o he_o that_o be_v his_o natural_a only_o beget_v and_o belove_a son_n who_o can_v bestow_v upon_o we_o the_o holy_a ghost_n but_o he_o from_o who_o the_o holy_a ghost_n proceed_v and_o who_o can_v give_v we_o eternal_a life_n but_o he_o that_o be_v life_n itself_o and_o by_o who_o can_v we_o come_v to_o god_n but_o through_o he_o that_o be_v the_o way_n out_o of_o all_o this_o it_o appear_v how_o none_o but_o a_o true_a and_o not_o a_o make_v god_n can_v be_v a_o mediator_n between_o god_n and_o we_o 2.25_o we_o 1_o sam._n 2.25_o if_o one_o man_n sin_n against_o another_o say_v eli_n the_o judge_n shall_v judge_v he_o but_o if_o a_o man_n sin_n against_o the_o lord_n who_o shall_v entreat_v for_o he_o no_o mere_a man_n can_v only_o he_o that_o be_v lord_n god_n himself_o divine_a essence_n be_v necessary_o attend_v with_o the_o divine_a attribute_n eternity_n first_o eternity_n and_o it_o be_v most_o simple_a they_o be_v not_o otherwise_o distinguish_v then_o after_o our_o manner_n of_o conceive_v so_o that_o out_o of_o the_o forego_n evidence_n they_o must_v necessary_o be_v attribute_v unto_o the_o son_n and_o first_o eternity_n have_v already_o prove_v christ_n deity_n and_o his_o eternal_a generation_n we_o have_v speak_v many_o thing_n belong_v to_o this_o head_n eternity_n be_v indivisible_a as_o the_o beget_n power_n of_o the_o father_n be_v infinite_a so_o it_o have_v a_o terminus_fw-la a_o object_n of_o infinite_a perfection_n namely_o his_o son_n coeternal_a and_o coessential_a and_o because_o the_o generation_n be_v from_o eternity_n so_o be_v it_o true_a that_o the_o son_n be_v continual_o and_o perpetual_o beget_v for_o we_o must_v not_o say_v god_n be_v first_o god_n and_o then_o father_n but_o without_o beginning_n always_o god_n and_o always_o father_n and_o see_v he_o ever_o be_v father_n he_o ever_o have_v a_o son_n this_o reason_n be_v much_o to_o our_o purpose_n and_o we_o can_v easy_o far_o enlarge_v upon_o it_o yet_o in_o order_n to_o prove_v this_o eternity_n we_o must_v draw_v argument_n out_o of_o scripture_n without_o which_o in_o these_o matter_n all_o our_o reason_n be_v no_o reason_n at_o all_o both_o testament_n do_v abound_v in_o proof_n but_o out_o of_o many_o we_o shall_v make_v use_n of_o few_o first_o out_o of_o the_o old_a and_o begin_v with_o the_o place_n where_o it_o speak_v of_o christ_n kingdom_n and_o of_o the_o glory_n and_o power_n thereof_o he_o say_v 110.3_o say_v psal_n 110.3_o from_o the_o womb_n of_o the_o morning_n thou_o have_v the_o dew_n of_o thy_o youth_n the_o mean_v and_o sense_n of_o the_o word_n be_v thou_o be_v from_o eternity_n morning_n imply_v a_o day_n and_o the_o first_o part_n of_o it_o too_o day_n import_v a_o time_n which_o begin_v with_o the_o creation_n for_o before_o there_o be_v no_o time_n all_o be_v eternity_n now_o christ_n who_o here_o david_n call_v his_o lord_n be_v not_o say_v to_o have_v the_o dew_n of_o his_o youth_n from_o the_o morning_n but_o from_o the_o womb_n of_o the_o morning_n that_o be_v before_o there_o be_v any_o morning_n any_o time_n at_o all_o for_o before_o any_o creature_n be_v bring_v forth_o it_o be_v in_o the_o womb_n and_o what_o be_v the_o womb_n of_o time_n but_o eternity_n which_o be_v the_o day_n speak_v of_o in_o another_o place_n 2._o place_n psal_n 2._o this_o day_n have_v i_o beget_v thou_o with_o god_n there_o be_v no_o time_n with_o he_o all_o be_v one_o day_n a_o day_n of_o eternity_n that_o say_v so_o to_o he_o be_v not_o of_o a_o present_a generation_n or_o constitution_n but_o the_o revelation_n of_o a_o thing_n that_o be_v before_o wherefore_o in_o that_o same_o verse_n it_o be_v call_v a_o decree_n i_o will_v declare_v the_o decree_n it_o be_v the_o declaration_n of_o the_o decree_n not_o the_o time_n of_o it_o now_o all_o god_n decree_n be_v eternal_a without_o beginning_n consequent_o the_o time_n therein_o mention_v be_v mean_v of_o eternity_n which_o the_o psalmist_n manner_n of_o speak_v do_v confirm_v more_o when_o in_o that_o first_o place_n he_o say_v thou_o have_v the_o dew_n of_o thy_o youth_n the_o dew_n fall_v on_o the_o first_o part_n of_o the_o morning_n so_o in_o that_o begin_n of_o time_n he_o have_v not_o his_o birth_n or_o childhood_n but_o his_o youth_n not_o only_o exi_v but_o have_v his_o whole_a strength_n and_o vigour_n all_o this_o way_n of_o speak_v be_v with_o condescend_v to_o our_o weak_a human_a capacity_n to_o make_v we_o
that_o be_v against_o reason_n nor_o christian_n that_o be_v against_o scripture_n nor_o peaceable_a that_o be_v against_o the_o church_n for_o they_o speak_v against_o reason_n scripture_n and_o the_o general_a consent_n of_o the_o church_n if_o their_o exposition_n be_v true_a christ_n may_v and_o will_v have_v say_v glorify_v i_o with_o the_o glory_n which_o thou_o have_v decree_v for_o i_o before_o the_o world_n be_v then_o he_o have_v say_v nothing_o but_o what_o every_o believer_n may_v say_v how_o that_o before_o the_o world_n be_v god_n fore-ordained_n they_o to_o the_o glory_n which_o they_o shall_v enjoy_v at_o the_o last_o day_n so_o may_v every_o one_o else_o say_v before_o the_o world_n be_v i_o be_v fore-ordained_n to_o have_v wife_n child_n land_n office_n etc._n etc._n nay_o according_a to_o their_o opinion_n at_o the_o same_o time_n when_o christ_n ask_v that_o glory_n he_o have_v it_o if_o to_o be_v appoint_v thereunto_o be_v to_o have_v it_o and_o if_o he_o have_v it_o why_o shall_v he_o ask_v for_o it_o if_o christ_n have_v say_v nothing_o but_o this_o and_o now_o o_o father_n glorify_v thou_o i_o with_o thy_o own_o self_n it_o have_v sufficient_o declare_v the_o sense_n of_o our_o adversary_n without_o say_v any_o thing_n of_o the_o glory_n which_o he_o have_v with_o he_o so_o with_o thy_o own_o self_n they_o explain_v to_o be_v in_o heaven_n as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v in_o thy_o house_n but_o if_o that_o have_v be_v christ_n intention_n he_o will_v have_v say_v glorify_v i_o in_o heaven_n but_o since_o he_o express_v himself_o otherwise_o and_o make_v mention_n of_o the_o glory_n which_o he_o have_v with_o the_o father_n before_o the_o world_n be_v if_o we_o can_v believe_v he_o well_o know_v what_o he_o will_v have_v and_o be_v able_a to_o express_v his_o thought_n than_o we_o must_v say_v he_o have_v very_o good_a cause_n for_o all_o he_o say_v now_o we_o shall_v proceed_v to_o some_o other_o of_o his_o attribute_n omnisci_n christ_n omnisci_n he_o know_v all_o thing_n omniscience_n and_o perfect_a knowledge_n and_o wisdom_n 16.27_o wisdom_n rom._n 16.27_o which_o belong_v to_o god_n alone_o whereby_o god_n in_o a_o divine_a manner_n understand_v himself_o and_o every_o thing_n else_o do_v also_o belong_v to_o the_o son_n who_o say_v to_o the_o exclusion_n of_o all_o creature_n 11.27_o creature_n mat._n 11.27_o no_o man_n know_v the_o son_n but_o the_o father_n neither_o know_v any_o man_n the_o father_n save_o the_o son_n and_o he_o to_o whosoever_o the_o son_n will_v reveal_v he_o and_o 19.12_o and_o rev._n 19.12_o no_o man_n know_v his_o name_n but_o himself_o thus_o he_o have_v a_o perfect_a knowledge_n of_o his_o deity_n and_o of_o every_o thing_n else_o even_o of_o the_o most_o contingent_a whereby_o the_o true_a god_n be_v distinguish_v from_o all_o and_o every_o creature_n this_o also_o belong_v to_o the_o lord_n jesus_n as_o he_o sometime_o foretell_v his_o disciple_n and_o in_o the_o case_n 21.2_o case_n mat._n 21.2_o of_o the_o ass_n and_o colt_n and_o 13._o and_o luk._n 22.10_o 13._o of_o prepare_v the_o passover_n and_o to_o peter_n 19_o peter_n john_n 21_o 19_o the_o manner_n of_o his_o death_n and_o all_o the_o prophet_n be_v act_v by_o his_o spirit_n foretell_v thing_n to_o come_v that_o holy_a spirit_n 14._o spirit_n ch._n 16.13_o 14._o shall_v receive_v of_o i_o and_o shall_v show_v it_o unto_o you_o and_o 13.10_o and_o rev._n 13.10_o the_o testimony_n of_o jesus_n be_v the_o spirit_n of_o pprophecy_n and_o to_o make_v this_o the_o more_o excellent_a and_o conspicuous_a he_o attribute_n unto_o himself_o that_o which_o no_o body_n will_v deny_v to_o belong_v unto_o god_n alone_o 16.7_o alone_o psal_n 7_o 9_o and_o 26.2_o &_o 1_o sam._n 16.7_o the_o righteous_a god_n tri_v the_o heart_n and_o reins_o the_o heart_n be_v unsearchable_a to_o any_o but_o to_o god_n alone_o thou_o even_o thou_o only_o say_v solomon_n 39_o solomon_n 1_o king_n 8_o 39_o know_v the_o heart_n of_o all_o the_o child_n of_o man_n but_o christ_n do_v attribute_v it_o to_o himself_o 2.23_o himself_o rev._n 2.23_o i_o be_o he_o which_o search_v the_o reins_o and_o heart_n and_o 25._o and_o john_n 2.24_o 25._o he_o know_v all_o man_n and_o what_o be_v in_o man_n and_o need_v not_o that_o any_o 〈◊〉_d shall_v testify_v of_o man_n for_z 4_o for_z mat._n 9_o 4_o he_o know_v the_o thought_n of_o the_o scribe_n and_o 12.25_o and_o 〈◊〉_d 12.25_o the_o thought_n of_o the_o pharisee_n 〈◊〉_d 16.19_o 〈◊〉_d john_n 16.19_o be_v know_v the_o desire_n of_o his_o disciple_n withal_o 18.4_o withal_o chap._n 6.64_o and_o chap._n 18.4_o he_o 〈◊〉_d from_o the_o beginning_n who_o they_o be_v that_o believe_v not_o and_o who_o shall_v betray_v he_o he_o know_v all_o thing_n that_o shall_v come_v upon_o he_o and_o in_o few_o word_n he_o know_v all_o thing_n christ_n be_v present_a every_o where_o omnipresence_n christ_n omnipresence_n which_o argue_v his_o immensity_n and_o infiniteness_n which_o elsewhere_o i_o have_v speak_v of_o whereunto_o i_o may_v add_v how_o though_o absent_a in_o the_o body_n he_o see_v 49._o see_v joh._n 1.48_o 49._o nathanael_n under_o the_o figtree_n whereupon_o he_o call_v he_o the_o son_n of_o god_n the_o king_n of_o israel_n a_o title_n which_o scripture_n give_v the_o only_a true_a god_n and_o also_o he_o affirm_v this_o when_o he_o say_v 3.13_o say_v chap._n 3.13_o no_o man_n have_v ascend_v up_o to_o heaven_n but_o he_o that_o come_v down_o from_o heaven_n even_o the_o son_n of_o man_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n by_o the_o son_n of_o man_n he_o mean_v himself_o who_o if_o we_o must_v believe_v be_v in_o heaven_n when_o to_o nicodemus_n he_o speak_v these_o word_n upon_o earth_n which_o can_v be_v understand_v of_o his_o humanity_n which_o he_o assume_v in_o the_o virgin_n be_v womb_n but_o of_o his_o divinity_n which_o alone_o be_v infinite_a but_o here_o they_o take_v exception_n and_o say_v that_o by_o to_o be_v in_o heaven_n be_v mean_v only_o to_o know_v and_o understand_v heavenly_a thing_n according_a to_o paul_n saying_n 2.6_o saying_n phil._n 3.20_o and_o ephes_n 2.6_o our_o conversation_n be_v in_o heaven_n the_o conversation_n of_o pious_a man_n in_o heaven_n be_v say_v in_o opposition_n to_o worldly_a mindedness_n when_o they_o be_v say_v to_o be_v quicken_v in_o christ_n and_o as_o express_v to_o fit_v together_o in_o heavenly_a place_n in_o christ_n jesus_n they_o say_v not_o to_o be_v in_o heaven_n but_o in_o and_o with_o christ_n in_o heavenly_a thing_n 3.3_o thing_n colos_n 3.3_o our_o life_n be_v hide_v with_o christ_n in_o god_n we_o do_v not_o intend_v to_o prove_v the_o divinity_n of_o christ_n bare_o because_o one_o who_o be_v upon_o earth_n be_v say_v upon_o any_o account_n to_o be_v in_o heaven_n but_o out_o of_o this_o that_o christ_n be_v say_v not_o only_o to_o be_v descend_v from_o heaven_n and_o be_v again_o to_o go_v up_o and_o out_o of_o this_o that_o though_o he_o be_v come_v down_o from_o heaven_n he_o be_v still_o there_o whence_o we_o may_v well_o conclude_v for_o his_o omnipresence_n now_o to_o descend_v from_o heaven_n upon_o earth_n and_o to_o ascend_v from_o earth_n to_o heaven_n be_v speak_v of_o christ_n only_o as_o to_o his_o person_n and_o thereby_o be_v mean_v his_o come_n upon_o earth_n there_o be_v such_o another_o place_n 4.9_o place_n eph._n 4.9_o to_o the_o same_o purpose_n about_o ascend_v and_o descend_v this_o we_o must_v say_v that_o whilst_o christ_n in_o his_o human_a nature_n be_v on_o earth_n with_o his_o divine_a he_o fill_v the_o heaven_n elsewhere_o he_o explain_v it_o as_o to_o place_n almightyness_n mat._n 18.20_o and_o 28.20_o christ_n almightyness_n where_o two_o or_o three_o be_v gather_v in_o my_o name_n there_o i_o be_o as_o to_o time_n for_o i_o be_o with_o you_o always_o unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n the_o lord_n jesus_n be_v also_o almighty_a omnipotency_n which_o be_v a_o infinite_a power_n incommunicable_a to_o any_o creature_n for_o all_o be_v uncapable_a of_o it_o christ_n apply_v it_o to_o himself_o when_o he_o say_v 1.8_o say_v rev._n 1.8_o he_o be_v the_o almighty_a i_o have_v already_o show_v how_o every_o thing_n in_o that_o verse_n christ_n speak_v of_o himself_o only_o i_o shall_v add_v how_o the_o same_o name_n be_v give_v he_o in_o several_a other_o place_n of_o the_o book_n we_o give_v thou_o thanks_o 11.17_o ch._n 11.17_o o_o lord_n god_n almighty_a which_o art_n and_o be_v and_o be_v to_o come_v which_o be_v the_o same_o expression_n use_v in_o that_o v._o 8._o and_o what_o be_v the_o reason_n of_o the_o thanksgiving_n it_o be_v in_o the_o latter_a end_n of_o this_o same_o verse_n because_o thou_o have_v take_v to_o thou_o thy_o great_a power_n and_o have_v reign_v so_o who_o
a_o creature_n but_o the_o author_n of_o all_o creature_n so_o that_o he_o be_v their_o father_n rather_o than_o their_o brother_n and_o he_o by_o who_o all_o thing_n be_v create_v must_v needs_o be_v in_o time_n and_o dignity_n before_o all_o and_o he_o be_v call_v the_o image_n of_o the_o invisible_a god_n not_o for_o publish_v and_o preach_v the_o gospel_n for_o that_o the_o apostle_n have_v common_a with_o he_o but_o because_o the_o son_n be_v so_o like_o the_o father_n that_o he_o who_o see_v the_o son_n see_v the_o father_n and_o he_o be_v the_o image_n of_o the_o father_n not_o as_o he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o man_n but_o as_o he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n neither_o must_v this_o be_v restrain_v to_o angel_n and_o man_n because_o those_o two_o kind_n do_v not_o contain_v every_o creature_n and_o certain_o if_o it_o be_v grant_v that_o every_o rational_a creature_n be_v make_v by_o he_o we_o may_v easy_o conclude_v of_o all_o the_o rest_n the_o more_o because_o it_o be_v universal_o express_v of_o every_o creature_n the_o sixteenth_o verse_n do_v explain_v and_o much_o enlarge_v upon_o the_o forego_n and_o do_v first_o universal_o and_o absolute_o affirm_v the_o whole_a work_n of_o creation_n to_o be_v the_o work_n of_o christ_n then_o make_v a_o distribution_n as_o thing_n in_o heaven_n and_o in_o earth_n of_o what_o nature_n rank_n and_o degree_n soever_o and_o this_o mention_n of_o thing_n in_o heaven_n and_o of_o thing_n in_o earth_n here_o express_v show_v how_o the_o apostle_n intention_n be_v to_o speak_v of_o the_o first_o creation_n and_o not_o of_o the_o second_o this_o last_o or_o renovation_n do_v not_o comprehend_v all_o thing_n that_o be_v in_o earth_n but_o the_o first_o do_v wherefore_o this_o last_o be_v not_o speak_v of_o in_o this_o place_n and_o though_o elsewhere_o the_o word_n creation_n be_v understand_v of_o the_o new_a and_o spiritual_a creation_n 3.9_o ephes_n 3.9_o it_o do_v not_o follow_v it_o must_v be_v so_o here_o for_o there_o it_o be_v speak_v of_o the_o revelation_n and_o predication_n of_o the_o gospel_n which_o can_v be_v prove_v to_o be_v here_o the_o scope_n of_o the_o place_n where_o be_v to_o be_v see_v not_o only_o the_o word_n to_o create_v or_o creation_n but_o also_o the_o thing_n create_v be_v express_v as_o clear_o as_o may_v be_v furthermore_o it_o can_v be_v deny_v but_o by_o invisible_a thing_n as_o throne_n dominion_n etc._n etc._n be_v mean_v angel_n which_o be_v create_v with_o or_o before_o the_o world_n that_o be_v very_o long_o before_o christ_n his_o appear_v in_o the_o flesh_n but_o i_o find_v not_o where_o in_o scripture_n that_o since_o the_o first_o creation_n they_o be_v renew_v or_o create_v again_o the_o good_a angel_n need_v it_o not_o for_o they_o be_v never_o defile_v the_o bad_a one_o be_v not_o for_o they_o continue_v as_o bad_a and_o wicked_a as_o ever_o so_o it_o be_v very_o strange_a that_o among_o the_o creature_n renew_v by_o christ_n they_o reckon_v the_o devil_n themsenlve_n and_o who_o beside_o they_o can_v ever_o have_v think_v that_o in_o scripture_n the_o bare_a word_n creature_n signify_v a_o new_a creature_n to_o create_v to_o create_v a_o new_a this_o be_v not_o at_o all_o the_o stile_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n wherein_o we_o believe_v the_o apostle_n speak_v with_o a_o design_n to_o be_v understand_v and_o not_o to_o clog_v their_o write_n with_o ambiguity_n to_o cause_v doubt_n and_o difficulty_n for_o on_o the_o contrary_a here_o he_o make_v thing_n as_o intelligible_a as_o can_v be_v to_o remove_v scruple_n as_o when_o he_o say_v all_o thing_n that_o be_v in_o heaven_n be_v by_o he_o create_v for_o fear_v there_o shall_v be_v some_o doubt_n about_o it_o he_o explain_v it_o with_o the_o word_n visible_a and_o invisible_a for_o in_o the_o heaven_n be_v visible_a thing_n as_o sun_n moon_n star_n and_o also_o invisible_a as_o angel_n now_o there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o the_o apostle_n in_o that_o commendation_n he_o give_v of_o christ_n aim_v chief_o to_o show_v his_o dignity_n and_o excellency_n as_o be_v first_o bear_v of_o every_o creature_n but_o the_o socinian_o go_v about_o rob_v he_o of_o that_o prerogative_n for_o it_o be_v speak_v general_o of_o every_o creature_n without_o exception_n but_o say_v they_o not_o so_o only_o of_o every_o new_a creature_n yet_o the_o lord_n do_v excel_v above_o every_o creature_n good_a or_o bad_a high_a or_o low_o and_o be_v lord_n over_o all_o if_o they_o say_v christ_n be_v the_o first_o bear_v of_o every_o creature_n only_o as_o it_o be_v a_o new_a creature_n than_o it_o must_v be_v say_v the_o apostle_n be_v to_o blame_v for_o omit_v the_o word_n new_a though_o so_o necessary_a to_o understand_v his_o meaning_n which_o be_v no_o better_a than_o as_o much_o as_o in_o they_o lie_v to_o ridicule_n the_o apostle_n word_n how_o he_o be_v the_o first_o bear_v of_o every_o creature_n in_o as_o much_o as_o every_o creature_n be_v subject_a to_o his_o dominion_n for_o every_o thing_n be_v subject_v to_o he_o thus_o far_o as_o god_n have_v subject_v every_o thing_n unto_o he_o but_o see_v they_o own_o christ_n to_o be_v in_o time_n before_o every_o new_a creature_n what_o shall_v they_o say_v of_o some_o who_o before_o his_o birth_n of_o the_o virgin_n be_v new_a creature_n see_v be_v he_o that_o make_v they_o all_o if_o thus_o under_o the_o new_a testament_n we_o must_v conclude_v it_o to_o have_v be_v so_o under_o the_o old_a for_o they_o can_v not_o be_v such_o except_o they_o be_v so_o make_v by_o he_o now_o as_o the_o apostle_n begin_v this_o verse_n so_o he_o end_v it_o by_o he_o be_v all_o thing_n create_v and_o all_o thing_n be_v create_v by_o he_o that_o be_v to_o confirm_v this_o truth_n beyond_o all_o ground_n of_o doubt_v of_o it_o in_o the_o same_o verse_n he_o do_v twice_o set_v it_o down_o and_o in_o the_o same_o word_n with_o a_o most_o important_a addition_n last_o of_o all_o that_o as_o all_o thing_n be_v create_v by_o so_o for_o he_o not_o as_o mean_n and_o a_o medium_n but_o as_o a_o efficient_a and_o final_a cause_n to_o he_o 136.5_o psal_n 136.5_o say_v the_o psalmist_n that_o by_o wisdom_n make_v the_o heaven_n it_o be_v not_o say_v in_o but_o by_o wisdom_n as_o a_o person_n and_o efficient_a cause_n for_o as_o such_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n represent_v under_o the_o name_n of_o wisdom_n prov._n 8._o where_o the_o attribute_n therein_o mention_v belong_v to_o a_o person_n the_o work_n of_o create_v the_o heaven_n be_v a_o distinguish_a character_n of_o the_o true_a god_n by_o nature_n from_o false_a god_n idol_n 96.5_o psal_n 96.5_o all_o the_o god_n of_o the_o nation_n be_v idol_n but_o the_o lord_n make_v the_o heaven_n and_o christ_n be_v the_o power_n of_o god_n 1.24_o 1._o cor._n 1.24_o and_o the_o wisdom_n of_o god_n by_o who_o the_o world_n be_v create_v let_v this_o be_v add_v to_o prove_v this_o truth_n god_n by_o his_o son_n make_v also_o the_o world_n 1.2.10_o heb._n 1.2.10_o and_o this_o text_n be_v join_v with_o the_o two_o forego_v do_v afford_v this_o conclusion_n he_o by_o who_o god_n make_v the_o world_n by_o who_o he_o make_v all_o thing_n and_o by_o who_o he_o make_v the_o world_n certain_o be_v before_o the_o world_n before_o all_o thing_n and_o before_o the_o world_n now_o god_n by_o his_o son_n jesus_n christ_n make_v the_o world_n all_o thing_n and_o the_o world_n therefore_o his_o son_n jesus_n christ_n be_v before_o the_o world_n before_o all_o thing_n and_o before_o the_o world_n and_o so_o eternal_a the_o word_n of_o this_o place_n be_v as_o plain_a absolute_a and_o extensive_a as_o of_o the_o other_o and_o because_o some_o sophistical_a distinction_n of_o the_o word_n world_n may_v happen_v to_o be_v invent_v therefore_o to_o prevent_v it_o he_o say_v world_n in_o the_o plural_a thereby_o to_o cut_v off_o the_o ground_n of_o any_o distinction_n as_o of_o this_o world_n and_o that_o world_n and_o it_o seem_v to_o leave_v no_o place_n for_o the_o distinction_n by_o socinian_o of_o the_o old_a and_o of_o the_o new_a world_n the_o original_a word_n be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d age_n wherein_o be_v contain_v all_o time_n and_o temporal_a thing_n wherein_o the_o world_n and_o all_o thing_n in_o it_o be_v comprehend_v but_o here_o as_o in_o other_o place_n they_o must_v bring_v in_o their_o own_o imagination_n for_o they_o will_v have_v only_o the_o new_a not_o the_o old_a world_n to_o be_v understand_v though_o the_o apostle_n speak_v absolute_o leave_v no_o ground_n for_o such_o notion_n and_o to_o cavil_v they_o say_v that_o to_o make_v and_o to_o create_v be_v different_a thing_n contrary_a to_o the_o stile_n of_o scripture_n
grave_n victorious_a as_o come_v from_o bozrah_n in_o his_o glorious_a and_o red_a apparel_n 3._o isa_n 63.1_o 3._o i_o that_o speak_v in_o righteousness_n mighty_a to_o save_v i_o have_v tread_v the_o wine_n press_v alone_o and_o of_o the_o people_n there_o be_v none_o with_o i_o no_o angel_n or_o any_o other_o creature_n be_v join_v with_o he_o in_o that_o work_n so_o that_o with_o his_o own_o arm_n he_o have_v get_v himself_o the_o victory_n as_o to_o the_o applieation_n of_o that_o purchase_a redemption_n it_o come_v from_o he_o in_o every_o part_n thereof_o as_o vocation_n adoption_n justification_n sanctification_n which_o contain_v spiritual_a life_n and_o every_o other_o grace_n and_o at_o last_o glorification_n which_o in_o scripture_n be_v all_o attribute_v to_o the_o lord_n jesus_n all_o but_o the_o last_o be_v wrought_v in_o we_o by_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n which_o ministry_n himself_o institute_v 11._o ephes_n 4.8_o 11._o by_o send_v minister_n he_o do_v continue_v it_o and_o with_o his_o blessing_n do_v promote_v and_o according_a to_o his_o promise_n will_v do_v so_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n resurrection_n from_o death_n be_v follow_v with_o eternal_a life_n 5.20_o john_n 6.54_o 1_o john_n 5.20_o both_o attribute_v to_o christ_n who_o be_v call_v the_o true_a god_n and_o eternal_a life_n for_o not_o only_o he_o give_v life_n but_o also_o he_o be_v life_n nay_o eternal_a life_n for_o whosoever_o have_v he_o be_v sure_a of_o eternal_a life_n as_o to_o the_o great_a work_n of_o our_o effectual_a call_v and_o conversion_n that_o we_o may_v answer_v the_o call_n he_o first_o open_v our_o understanding_n 16.14_o luke_n 24.45_o acts._n 16.14_o as_o he_o open_v the_o understanding_n of_o his_o disciple_n that_o they_o may_v understand_v the_o scripture_n after_o he_o open_v our_o heart_n as_o he_o do_v the_o heart_n of_o lydia_n that_o she_o attend_v unto_o the_o thing_n which_o be_v speak_v by_o his_o servant_n he_o also_o bestow_v all_o other_o mean_n of_o grace_n upon_o we_o 12.2_o acts._n 5.31_o chap._n 11.18_o 2_o cor._n 7.10_o heb._n 12.2_o as_o repentance_n for_o he_o be_v a_o prince_n and_o saviour_n to_o give_v repentance_n to_o israel_n such_o as_o be_v call_v repentance_n unto_o life_n and_o unto_o salvation_n without_o which_o we_o can_v be_v save_v faith_n also_o be_v his_o gift_n so_o entire_o that_o he_o be_v call_v the_o author_n and_o finisher_n of_o our_o faith_n from_o he_o come_v the_o beginning_n progress_n and_o perfect_a of_o it_o this_o make_v his_o disciple_n ask_v he_o lord_n increase_v our_o faith_n 1.16_o luke_n 17.5_o john_n 1.16_o what_o love_n charity_n meekness_n humility_n temperance_n sobriety_n goodness_n joy_n peace_n etc._n etc._n be_v in_o we_o of_o his_o fullness_n have_v we_o receive_v it_o all_o 1.30_o 1_o cor._n 1.30_o moreover_o he_o be_v make_v unto_o we_o wisdom_n righteousness_n sanctification_n and_o redemption_n in_o few_o word_n he_o be_v our_o all_o in_o all_o 15.26_o psal_n 87.7_o john_n 15.26_o and_o in_o he_o be_v all_o our_o spring_n he_o give_v the_o holy_a ghost_n rule_v govern_v and_o preserve_v his_o church_n these_o few_o thing_n more_o i_o must_v add_v how_o it_o be_v clear_a out_o of_o scripture_n that_o he_o be_v true_a and_o eternal_a god_n who_o be_v the_o author_n of_o salvation_n and_o eternal_a life_n for_o this_o the_o lord_n the_o king_n of_o israel_n attribute_n to_o himself_o to_o be_v his_o redeemer_n ●●_o ●●a_fw-la 44.6_o chap._n 45.15.17.21_o and_o 43._o ●●_o the_o saviour_n of_o israel_n by_o who_o israel_n shall_v be_v save_v with_o a_o everlasting_a salvation_n no_o god_n else_o beside_o he_o a_o just_a god_n and_o a_o saviour_n all_o this_o undisputable_o speak_v of_o the_o true_a essential_a god_n now_o christ_n be_v the_o king_n of_o israel_n 3.15_o john_n 1.49_o matth._n 1.21_o 1_o john_n 1.7_o heb._n 12.24_o chap_n 9.15_o 16._o gal._n 3.15_o that_o save_v his_o people_n from_o their_o sin_n and_o his_o blood_n cleanse_v we_o from_o all_o sin_n he_o be_v the_o mediator_n of_o the_o new_a covenant_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v himself_o the_o testator_n which_o the_o apostle_n deny_v to_o be_v a_o man_n covenant_n these_o several_a place_n i_o quote_v to_o show_v how_o under_o the_o old_a testament_n the_o true_a eternal_a god_n delight_v to_o call_v himself_o the_o god_n the_o saviour_n and_o the_o redeemer_n of_o his_o people_n which_o be_v one_o of_o the_o work_v proper_a to_o god_n and_o not_o only_o be_v attribute_v but_o in_o a_o special_a and_o singular_a manner_n be_v apply_v to_o christ_n who_o be_v no_o better_o know_v by_o any_o name_n than_o that_o of_o saviviour_n of_o the_o world_n and_o in_o he_o 1.7_o luke_n 1_o 4●_n act_n 4.12_o res_fw-la 1.7_o as_o in_o her_o god_n and_o saviour_n the_o spirit_n of_o mary_n rejoice_v because_o there_o be_v no_o salvation_n in_o any_o other_o for_o he_o be_v the_o lord_n our_o god_n by_o who_o the_o lord_n do_v save_v we_o this_o i_o say_v to_o i_o do_v evidence_n how_o he_o who_o under_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v by_o his_o proper_a name_n call_v saviour_n or_o jesus_n must_v be_v if_o not_o the_o same_o person_n at_o least_o of_o the_o same_o nature_n with_o he_o who_o under_o the_o old_a be_v please_v at_o several_a time_n to_o call_v himself_o the_o saviour_n and_o redeemer_n of_o his_o people_n but_o now_o be_v upon_o the_o divine_a work_n of_o grace_n proper_a to_o the_o lord_n jesus_n i_o must_v not_o omit_v one_o high_o considerable_a and_o most_o singular_o proper_a to_o god_n which_o be_v to_o forgive_v sin_n which_o our_o bless_a lord_n appropriate_v unto_o himself_o 2.5_o luke_n 7.48_o mark_v 2.5_o when_o he_o say_v to_o the_o woman_n thy_o sin_n be_v forgive_v and_o to_o the_o man_n sick_a of_o the_o palse_a son_n thy_o sin_n be_v forgive_v thou_o whereat_o the_o jew_n be_v so_o startle_v and_o offend_v as_o present_o to_o say_v why_o do_v this_o man_n thus_o speak_v blasphemy_n who_o can_v forgive_v sin_n but_o god_n only_o in_o that_o thing_n they_o be_v in_o the_o right_n to_o say_v that_o none_o but_o god_n can_v forgive_v sin_n but_o in_o the_o other_o they_o be_v in_o the_o wrong_n not_o to_o believe_v christ_n to_o be_v god_n if_o they_o have_v all_o have_v be_v set_v at_o right_n and_o their_o prejudice_n remove_v wherefore_o to_o convince_v they_o how_o they_o be_v in_o a_o error_n and_o that_o he_o have_v not_o take_v upon_o he_o as_o a_o man_n to_o pardon_v sin_n but_o as_o god_n he_o present_o prove_v his_o divinity_n by_o a_o miracle_n and_o cure_v the_o man_n he_o who_o of_o himself_o can_v work_v a_o miracle_n have_v certain_o power_n on_o earth_n to_o forgive_v sin_n and_o as_o he_o be_v a_o prince_n and_o saviour_n so_o he_o have_v right_a to_o give_v forgiveness_n of_o sin_n 5.31_o act_n 5.31_o certain_o he_o declare_v himself_o true_a essential_a god_n when_o by_o his_o authority_n he_o forgive_v sin_n and_o give_v other_o power_n in_o his_o name_n to_o declare_v the_o same_o as_o he_o do_v now_o if_o to_o what_o have_v be_v say_v we_o add_v that_o he_o be_v the_o resurrection_n and_o the_o life_n 3.20.21_o john_n 20.23_o john_n 11.25_o chap._n 5.26_o v._o 21._o chap._n 6.39.40_o phil._n 3.20.21_o and_o that_o he_o that_o believe_v in_o he_o though_o he_o be_v dead_a yet_o shall_v he_o live_v see_v he_o have_v life_n in_o himself_o and_o quicken_v who_o he_o will_v also_o all_o the_o father_n have_v give_v he_o and_o every_o one_o that_o believe_v in_o he_o he_o will_v raise_v up_o at_o the_o last_o day_n wherefore_o our_o conversation_n be_v in_o heaven_n from_o whence_o also_o we_o look_v for_o the_o saviour_n the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n who_o shall_v change_v our_o vile_a body_n that_o it_o may_v be_v fashion_v like_o unto_o his_o glorious_a body_n according_a to_o the_o work_n whereby_o he_o be_v able_a to_o subdue_v all_o thing_n unto_o himself_o all_o these_o and_o many_o more_o which_o for_o brevity_n sake_n we_o omit_v be_v sufficient_a evidence_n to_o convince_v any_o in_o who_o the_o god_n of_o this_o world_n have_v hot_a blind_v their_o mind_n that_o christ_n be_v the_o eternal_a son_n of_o god_n of_o the_o same_o nature_n but_o to_o unbeliever_n he_o say_v if_o you_o will_v not_o believe_v i_o at_o least_o believe_v i_o for_o the_o work_v sake_n 5.36.1_o john_n 5.36.1_o for_o the_o work_v i_o do_v bear_v witness_n of_o i_o but_o alas_o all_o man_n have_v not_o faith_n for_o faith_n be_v a_o gift_n of_o god_n chap._n ix_o worship_n proper_a and_o due_a to_o the_o true_a god_n belong_v to_o christ_n now_o christ_n appropriate_v to_o himself_o all_o these_o and_o many_o more_o work_n that_o belong_v only_o to_o the_o true_a god_n to_o the_o end_n that_o
all_o man_n know_v he_o to_o be_v one_o with_o the_o father_n may_v honour_v the_o son_n even_o as_o they_o honour_v the_o father_n whereby_o he_o demonstrate_v himself_o to_o be_v god_n for_o divine_a honour_n belong_v to_o none_o else_o for_o thou_o shall_v worship_v the_o lord_n thy_o god_n and_o he_o only_o shall_v thou_o serve_v we_o must_v love_v honour_n and_o worship_v one_o person_n of_o the_o godhead_n as_o well_o as_o the_o other_o as_o we_o love_v god_n in_o the_o person_n of_o the_o father_n so_o we_o must_v love_v god_n in_o the_o person_n of_o the_o son_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n for_o if_o any_o man_n love_v not_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n let_v he_o be_v a_o athema_n 16.22_o 1_o cor._n 16.22_o maran-atha_a he_o who_o love_v not_o the_o son_n love_v not_o the_o father_n and_o he_o who_o love_v not_o the_o holy_a ghost_n love_v not_o the_o father_n nor_o the_o son_n here_o i_o bring_v in_o point_n of_o worship_n the_o instance_n of_o love_n because_o without_o it_o no_o true_a worship_n we_o ought_v not_o to_o worship_n god_n otherwise_o than_o he_o have_v declare_v in_o his_o word_n he_o that_o woshipe_v not_o god_n the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n do_v not_o worship_n god_n as_o he_o ought_v it_o be_v not_o enough_o to_o worship_n god_n as_o god_n essential_o but_o also_o he_o must_v be_v in_o the_o three_o person_n for_o all_o three_o be_v the_o object_n of_o worship_n or_o else_o our_o religion_n be_v vain_a and_o we_o be_v to_o look_v not_o only_o to_o the_o object_n but_o also_o to_o the_o order_n of_o worship_n the_o father_n through_o the_o son_n 16._o john_n 16._o and_o by_o the_o son_n to_o go_v to_o the_o father_n and_o so_o by_o the_o mean_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n we_o go_v to_o both_o for_o we_o know_v not_o what_o we_o shall_v pray_v for_o as_o we_o ought_v 12.3_o rom._n ●_o 26_o 1_o cor._n 12.3_o but_o the_o spirit_n help_v our_o infirmity_n and_o make_v intercession_n for_o we_o neither_o can_v one_o say_v that_o jesus_n be_v the_o lord_n but_o by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o in_o give_v glory_n to_o god_n it_o be_v not_o enough_o to_o glorify_v he_o except_o it_o be_v in_o the_o three_o person_n father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n and_o the_o consideration_n of_o this_o mystery_n of_o one_o god_n in_o three_o person_n which_o ought_v to_o be_v our_o guide_n in_o worship_v that_o eternal_a and_o infinite_a be_v aught_o to_o teach_v we_o modesty_n and_o humility_n which_o be_v so_o essential_a in_o our_o serve_a god_n to_o adore_v the_o incomprehensibility_n of_o these_o high_a thing_n the_o majesty_n of_o god_n and_o the_o mystery_n of_o his_o son_n be_v be_v make_v flesh_n and_o be_v make_v sensible_a of_o our_o weakness_n and_o then_o endeavour_v to_o bring_v into_o captivity_n every_o thought_n to_o the_o obedience_n of_o christ_n 10.5_o 2_o cor._n 10.5_o here_o i_o can_v forbear_v insert_v the_o word_n of_o two_o eminent_a doctor_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n 5._o ambros_n de_fw-fr fid_fw-we ad_fw-la gratian_n lib._n 1._o cap._n 5._o mihi_fw-la impossibile_fw-it est_fw-la say_v one_o generationis_fw-la scire_fw-la secretum_fw-la mens_fw-la deficit_fw-la voxsilet_fw-la non_fw-la mea_fw-la tantum_fw-la sed_fw-la &_o angelorum_fw-la licet_fw-la scire_fw-la quod_fw-la natus_fw-la fit_a non_fw-la licet_fw-la discutere_fw-la quomodo_fw-la natus_fw-la sit_fw-la illud_fw-la negare_fw-la mihi_fw-la non_fw-la licet_fw-la hoc_fw-la quaerere_fw-la metus_fw-la it_o be_v impossible_a for_o i_o to_o know_v the_o secret_a of_o that_o generation_n my_o understanding_n fail_v i_o my_o mouth_n be_v stop_v it_o be_v lawful_a not_o only_o for_o i_o but_o also_o for_o angel_n to_o know_v he_o be_v bear_v but_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a to_o inquire_v how_o he_o be_v bear_v that_o i_o can_v deny_v but_o i_o be_o afraid_a to_o search_v into_o this_o the_o other_o say_v filium_fw-la esse_fw-la a_o deo_fw-la patre_fw-la immortali_fw-la genitum_fw-la novi_fw-la sed_fw-la quemadmodum_fw-la ignoro_fw-la spiritum_fw-la ex_fw-la co_fw-la procedere_fw-la scio_fw-la natura_fw-la chrisost_n hom_n de_fw-fr incomprehens_fw-la dei_fw-la natura_fw-la sed_fw-la quemadmodum_fw-la nescio_fw-la i_o know_v the_o son_n to_o be_v beget_v of_o the_o immortal_a father_n but_o in_o what_o manner_n i_o can_v tell_v i_o know_v the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o proceed_v from_o he_o but_o how_o i_o know_v not_o these_o be_v just_o come_v into_o my_o thought_n though_o they_o exact_o be_v not_o belong_v to_o the_o present_a part_n of_o our_o discourse_n yet_o be_v much_o to_o the_o purpose_n of_o the_o whole_a i_o here_o have_v set_v they_o down_o indeed_o in_o thing_n of_o that_o nature_n man_n ought_v to_o yield_v a_o obedience_n of_o faith_n and_o believe_v unity_n of_o nature_n and_o trinity_n of_o person_n for_o numero_fw-la deus_fw-la impair_v gaudet_fw-la so_o we_o must_v worship_v one_o god_n in_o three_o person_n our_o present_a purpose_n be_v to_o prove_v christ_n to_o be_v true_a essential_a eternal_a god_n because_o the_o same_o worship_n due_a only_o to_o the_o true_a eternal_a god_n be_v render_v unto_o he_o as_o anon_o we_o shall_v by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n make_v it_o appear_v but_o now_o something_n must_v be_v premise_v which_o can_v contribute_v towards_o the_o better_a understanding_n of_o the_o point_n first_o christ_n enemy_n be_v not_o agree_v in_o this_o particular_a one_o valentinus_n gentilis_fw-la by_o we_o name_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o this_o discourse_n and_o some_o other_o do_v flat_o deny_v christ_n this_o divine_a worship_n because_o they_o disow_v he_o essential_o to_o be_v god_n and_o no_o divine_a worship_n be_v to_o be_v render_v to_o the_o creature_n which_o to_o do_v be_v idolatry_n but_o socinus_n say_v he_o be_v to_o be_v worship_v but_o with_o such_o restriction_n as_o such_o a_o worship_n be_v all_o most_o no_o better_o than_o none_o at_o all_o they_o will_v have_v he_o to_o be_v worship_v only_o after_o his_o resurrection_n and_o that_o the_o resurrection_n be_v the_o stand_a sign_n and_o true_a reason_n why_o one_o who_o god_n raise_v from_o the_o dead_a shall_v be_v worship_v but_o if_o this_o be_v true_a than_o the_o son_n of_o the_o widow_n of_o sarepta_n of_o the_o shunamite_n 13.21_o 1_o king_n 17.22_o 2_o king_n 4.34_o etc._n etc._n chap._n 13.21_o and_o of_o the_o dead_a man_n that_o have_v touch_v the_o bone_n of_o elisha_n be_v revive_v under_o the_o old_a testament_n and_o the_o son_n of_o the_o woman_n of_o naim_n and_o the_o daughter_n of_o jairus_n lazarus_n dorcas_n and_o eutichus_n under_o the_o new_a be_v to_o be_v worship_v according_a to_o this_o rule_n of_o they_o wherefore_o some_o other_o cause_n than_o this_o must_v be_v assign_v why_o christ_n must_v be_v worship_v they_o say_v he_o ought_v to_o be_v so_o as_o he_o be_v mediator_n we_o own_o that_o christ_n mediator_n be_v to_o be_v worship_v but_o that_o honour_n belong_v to_o he_o in_o relation_n to_o his_o deity_n for_o when_o god_n bring_v in_o the_o first_o bear_v into_o the_o world_n 1.6_o heb._n 1.6_o he_o say_v and_o let_v all_o the_o angel_n of_o god_n worship_v he_o he_o be_v call_v first_o beget_v not_o in_o relation_n to_o his_o humanity_n for_o many_o be_v child_n of_o god_n before_o his_o birth_n but_o in_o respect_n to_o his_o eternal_a generation_n he_o be_v to_o be_v adore_v by_o angel_n though_o he_o be_v not_o their_o mediator_n when_o we_o adore_v christ_n as_o mediator_n it_o be_v not_o in_o relation_n to_o his_o office_n abstract_v from_o his_o deity_n but_o as_o he_o be_v true_a god_n in_o this_o sense_n the_o lamb_n that_o be_v slay_v be_v worthy_a to_o receive_v as_o he_o do_v by_o the_o angel_n 5.12_o rev._n 5.12_o the_o beast_n and_o the_o elder_n honour_n and_o glory_n and_o blessing_n because_o in_o his_o humane_a nature_n dwell_v all_o the_o fullness_n of_o the_o godhead_n bodily_a 2.9_o colos_n 2.9_o the_o ark_n be_v not_o worship_v but_o god_n in_o the_o ark_n as_o not_o the_o bush_n but_o god_n in_o the_o bush_n not_o the_o ground_n which_o moses_n stand_v upon_o but_o god_n in_o that_o place_n sanctify_v by_o his_o special_a presence_n and_o so_o in_o several_a other_o place_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n indeed_o christ_n be_v to_o be_v worship_v 2.7_o phil._n 2.7_o though_o in_o the_o form_n of_o a_o servant_n and_o make_v a_o little_a low_o than_o the_o angel_n though_o not_o as_o a_o servant_n or_o as_o low_a than_o the_o angel_n by_o which_o all_o god_n will_v have_v he_o to_o be_v adore_v for_o no_o other_o cause_n but_o for_o his_o divine_a nature_n 6._o v._o 6._o the_o form_n of_o god_n whereby_o he_o shall_v remain_v equal_a with_o the_o father_n in_o his_o state_n of_o humiliation_n as_o angel_n be_v command_v to_o worship_n christ_n so_o be_v the_o church_n under_o the_o
he_o be_v such_o thing_n attribute_v as_o belong_v not_o to_o one_o of_o a_o different_a nature_n but_o to_o he_o that_o be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o with_o he_o what_o be_v add_v about_o grave_a image_n be_v to_o condemn_v idolatry_n and_o to_o take_v away_o all_o manner_n of_o excuse_n from_o idolater_n not_o only_o in_o those_o time_n when_o all_o nation_n be_v idolater_n and_o also_o that_o abominable_a sin_n be_v get_v in_o the_o land_n of_o judah_n but_o in_o relation_n to_o other_o country_n after_o the_o come_n in_o the_o flesh_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n the_o other_o text_n of_o scripture_n be_v this_o 6.13_o matth._n 4.10_o deuter._n 6.13_o thou_o shall_v worship_v the_o lord_n thy_o god_n and_o he_o only_o shall_v thou_o serve_v which_o our_o saviour_n quote_v out_o of_o another_o place_n hence_o the_o conclusion_n for_o the_o essential_a divinity_n of_o christ_n be_v clear_a he_o that_o be_v religious_o to_o be_v worship_v be_v the_o true_a god_n but_o christ_n be_v religious_o to_o be_v worship_v therefore_o he_o be_v the_o true_a god_n no_o command_n can_v be_v more_o positive_a absolute_a and_o plain_a than_o this_o to_o worship_v the_o lord_n thy_o god_n that_o be_v the_o god_n of_o israel_n for_o the_o word_n be_v direct_v to_o israel_n who_o jew_n and_o socinian_o do_v allow_v to_o be_v the_o only_a true_a god_n the_o latter_a part_n of_o the_o verse_n do_v contain_v a_o general_a negative_a he_o only_o shall_v thou_o serve_v the_o word_n only_o give_v the_o exclusion_n to_o any_o thing_n else_o or_o person_n whatsoever_o to_o say_v as_o they_o do_v to_o worship_n and_o serve_v he_o as_o god_n of_o himself_o will_v not_o serve_v their_o turn_n for_o they_o say_v god_n the_o father_n be_v only_o such_o but_o christ_n be_v a_o make_v god_n and_o by_o grace_n by_o this_o god_n of_o himself_o they_o mean_v the_o first_o author_n of_o all_o thing_n but_o do_v they_o ever_o hear_v of_o a_o second_o author_n of_o all_o thing_n be_v there_o a_o first_o creator_n and_o a_o second_o one_o wherefore_o this_o restriction_n be_v idle_a and_o superfluous_a whereby_o all_o manner_n of_o idolatry_n may_v be_v excuse_v for_o both_o the_o heathen_n and_o the_o jewish_a idolater_n worship_v many_o thing_n which_o they_o never_o take_v to_o be_v the_o first_o author_n and_o cause_n of_o all_o the_o devil_n himself_o desire_v not_o to_o be_v worship_v by_o christ_n as_o if_o he_o have_v be_v the_o author_n of_o all_o thing_n for_o he_o own_v the_o power_n and_o glory_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o world_n be_v deliver_v unto_o he_o 6._o luke_n 4.5_o 6._o but_o if_o the_o lord_n thy_o god_n be_v only_o to_o be_v worship_v and_o serve_v and_o christ_n be_v not_o that_o lord_n god_n why_o shall_v he_o be_v adore_v o_o say_v they_o when_o we_o adore_v christ_n we_o adore_v in_o he_o the_o father_n that_o have_v give_v he_o so_o much_o glory_n and_o power_n by_o the_o same_o reason_n the_o jew_n may_v have_v worship_v moses_n who_o be_v so_o full_a of_o glory_n when_o he_o come_v down_o from_o the_o mountain_n that_o they_o can_v not_o behold_v his_o face_n if_o they_o have_v a_o right_a notion_n of_o christ_n person_n it_o will_v be_v well_o to_o say_v that_o he_o that_o honour_v the_o son_n do_v also_o honour_v the_o father_n but_o according_a to_o their_o impious_a opinion_n they_o adore_v a_o man_n of_o a_o quite_o different_a nature_n from_o the_o father_n the_o father_n be_v god_n by_o nature_n the_o son_n by_o grace_n the_o father_n be_v from_o eternity_n the_o son_n only_o since_o the_o fullness_n of_o time_n one_o creator_n the_o other_o creature_n one_o the_o high_a the_o other_o subordinate_a one_o god_n the_o other_o man_n and_o both_o to_o be_v adore_v such_o a_o son_n as_o do_v differ_v from_o his_o father_n more_o than_o any_o other_o son_n in_o the_o world_n do_v from_o his_o whereby_o they_o quite_o overthrow_v god_n nature_n and_o confound_v the_o creator_n with_o the_o creature_n let_v christ_n be_v own_v either_o to_o be_v true_a god_n or_o no_o god_n at_o all_o for_o there_o be_v no_o middle_n between_o these_o two_o we_o know_v god_n make_v man_n but_o now_o we_o find_v man_n socinian_n as_o well_o as_o papist_n take_v upon_o they_o to_o make_v god_n and_o worship_v they_o as_o such_o whether_o wafer_n or_o metaphorical_a it_o be_v all_o one_o as_o long_o as_o they_o will_v not_o own_v they_o to_o be_v such_o by_o nature_n to_o talk_v of_o a_o secondary_a and_o subordinate_a god_n be_v a_o mere_a contradictio_fw-la in_o adjecto_fw-la a_o perfect_a nonsense_n the_o jew_n will_v not_o deny_v he_o to_o be_v what_o he_o be_v be_v convince_v by_o his_o work_n when_o christ_n come_v will_v he_o do_v more_o miracle_n than_o these_o which_o this_o man_n have_v do_v 〈◊〉_d 7.31_o whence_o they_o conclude_v this_o be_v of_o a_o 〈◊〉_d that_o prophet_n that_o shall_v come_v into_o the_o world_n john_n 6.14_o therefore_o they_o will_v come_v and_o take_v he_o by_o force_n to_o make_v he_o a_o king_n v._o 15._o and_o at_o another_o time_n they_o that_o be_v in_o the_o ship_n worship_v he_o say_v of_o a_o truth_n thou_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n matth._n 14.33_o yet_o for_o all_o this_o they_o still_o retain_v a_o prejudice_n shall_v christ_n come_v out_o of_o galilee_n john_n 7.41_o be_v not_o this_o jesus_n the_o son_n of_o joseph_n who_o father_n and_o mother_n we_o know_v chap._n 6.42_o be_v not_o this_o the_o carpenter_n son_n be_v not_o his_o mother_n call_v mary_n and_o his_o brethren_n james_n and_o joses_n simon_n and_o judas_n matth._n 13.55_o thus_o socinian_n can_v deny_v he_o to_o be_v god_n but_o must_v have_v he_o a_o make_v god_n do_v this_o hold_n any_o proportion_n or_o be_v there_o any_o reason_n in_o the_o case_n to_o come_v off_o with_o this_o the_o heresiarch_n say_v that_o the_o commandment_n of_o worship_v god_n alone_o do_v proper_o relate_v to_o the_o time_n under_o the_o old_a testament_n a_o wide_a door_n open_a to_o let_v in_o idolatry_n 5.21_o 1_o john_n 5.21_o but_o certain_o that_o precept_n do_v oblige_v christian_n as_o much_o as_o ever_o it_o do_v the_o jew_n and_o i_o think_v that_o of_o all_o moral_a commandment_n none_o belong_v to_o the_o time_n of_o the_o gospel_n more_o than_o that_o of_o worship_v god_n alone_o and_o we_o be_v as_o much_o bind_v to_o avoid_v all_o idolatry_n as_o ever_o they_o be_v they_o say_v when_o this_o precept_n be_v give_v they_o mean_v in_o the_o time_n of_o moses_n than_o christ_n be_v not_o but_o when_o it_o be_v make_v use_n of_o by_o christ_n christ_n be_v and_o also_o endue_v with_o divine_a power_n and_o authority_n though_o they_o say_v the_o contrary_a for_o before_o he_o be_v tempt_v in_o the_o wilderness_n he_o have_v be_v haptize_v and_o proclaim_v from_o heaven_n the_o son_n of_o god_n the_o spirit_n have_v descend_v upon_o he_o and_o when_o he_o return_v from_o jordan_n he_o be_v full_a of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n 4.1_o luke_n 4.1_o he_o be_v god_n worthy_a of_o divine_a worship_n when_o he_o make_v use_v of_o that_o text_n against_o the_o tempter_n two_o frivolous_a thing_n more_o they_o say_v first_o the_o word_n only_o be_v not_o join_v to_o worship_n but_o to_o serve_v as_o if_o a_o religious_a worship_n be_v not_o mean_v by_o this_o last_o as_o well_o as_o by_o the_o first_o though_o it_o have_v be_v join_v with_o the_o former_a they_o have_v never_o want_v a_o pretence_n to_o cavil_v but_o if_o in_o the_o thing_n there_o be_v any_o difference_n 26._o act_n 10.25_o 26._o i_o think_v it_o be_v more_a bind_n with_o to_o serve_v than_o to_o worship_n for_o to_o serve_v may_v seem_v of_o a_o large_a extent_n than_o to_o worship_n the_o other_o cavil_v be_v we_o be_v forbid_v to_o worship_v other_o that_o be_v say_v they_o after_o our_o own_o fancy_n and_o pleasure_n but_o christ_n you_o be_v command_v to_o worship_n but_o here_o be_v no_o ground_n for_o such_o a_o interpretation_n for_o it_o be_v simple_o say_v to_o worship_n and_o serve_v only_o the_o lord_n thy_o god_n we_o own_o that_o here_o not_o only_o the_o thing_n but_o also_o the_o manner_n of_o it_o be_v forbid_v but_o here_o be_v nothing_o to_o show_v by_o what_o authority_n and_o name_n we_o be_v to_o worship_v other_o only_o the_o thing_n to_o do_v it_o be_v forbid_v to_o the_o proof_n i_o have_v give_v to_o show_v how_o god_n alone_o be_v to_o be_v worship_v i_o now_o shall_v by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n join_v some_o example_n out_o of_o the_o new_a testament_n to_o confirm_v it_o with_o a_o demonstration_n of_o the_o practice_n the_o first_o be_v that_o of_o peter_n 26._o act._n 10.25_o 26._o who_o cornelius_n the_o centurion_n
meet_v and_o fall_v down_o at_o his_o foot_n and_o worship_v he_o but_o he_o though_o he_o have_v excellent_a gift_n and_o great_a authority_n by_o his_o office_n yet_o he_o refuse_v it_o and_o this_o he_o give_v for_o a_o reason_n i_o myself_o also_o be_o a_o man_n that_o be_v such_o a_o thing_n be_v not_o to_o be_v offer_v any_o man_n yet_o we_o must_v not_o believe_v cornelius_n to_o have_v be_v so_o besot_v as_o to_o have_v take_v he_o for_o god_n but_o he_o think_v he_o may_v do_v so_o to_o such_o a_o extraordinary_a man_n 1●_n chap._n 14.13_o 14_o 1●_n paul_n and_o barnabas_n see_v how_o the_o people_n of_o lystra_n will_v have_v do_v sacrifice_n they_o present_o rend_v their_o clothes_n run_v and_o cry_v sir_n why_o do_v you_o do_v these_o thing_n their_o reason_n be_v we_o be_v also_o man_n 19.10_o rev._n 19.10_o hence_o we_o conclude_v how_o no_o man_n ought_v to_o be_v worship_v now_o we_o shall_v speak_v of_o angel_n john_n a_o person_n of_o no_o mean_a gift_n fall_v at_o the_o angel_n foot_n who_o be_v a_o minister_n of_o god_n and_o of_o christ_n to_o worship_v he_o sure_o he_o take_v he_o not_o to_o be_v god_n for_o he_o can_v not_o but_o know_v the_o contrary_a but_o may_v be_v he_o think_v he_o may_v pay_v he_o that_o respect_n but_o whatsoever_o he_o think_v he_o do_v amiss_o therefore_o the_o angel_n high_o reject_v it_o when_o he_o say_v see_v thou_o do_v it_o not_o 9_o chap._n 2d_o 9_o and_o give_v his_o reason_n for_o it_o for_o i_o be_o thy_o fellow_n servant_n and_o of_o thy_o brethren_n that_o have_v the_o testimony_n of_o jesus_n and_o not_o satisfy_v with_o this_o direct_v he_o to_o the_o object_n of_o worship_n and_o adoration_n worship_n god_n and_o this_o not_o only_o once_o but_o twice_o for_o it_o happen_v a_o second_o time_n we_o have_v demonstrate_v how_o the_o true_a god_n be_v alone_o to_o be_v worship_v now_o we_o must_v show_v how_o christ_n be_v religious_o to_o be_v worship_v and_o consequent_o he_o be_v the_o true_a god_n which_o last_o expression_n now_o when_o i_o remember_v put_v i_o in_o mind_n of_o that_o excellent_a place_n wherein_o he_o be_v call_v the_o true_a god_n which_o but_o in_o few_o word_n i_o will_v take_v notice_n of_o 5.20_o 1_o john_n 5.20_o we_o be_v in_o he_o that_o be_v true_a even_o in_o his_o son_n jesus_n christ_n this_o be_v the_o true_a god_n and_o oternal_a life_n the_o relative_n this_o be_v refer_v to_o jesus_n christ_n not_o only_o as_o the_o near_a but_o also_o as_o the_o subject_n orationis_fw-la speak_v of_o beside_o that_o with_o st._n john_n it_o be_v usual_a by_o eternal_a life_n to_o signify_v the_o lord_n jesus_n and_o here_o the_o true_a god_n and_o eternal_a life_n be_v speak_v of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o subject_a now_o when_o the_o lord_n be_v here_o call_v true_a god_n it_o can_v be_v say_v metaphorical_o or_o improper_o but_o as_o to_o his_o nature_n the_o reason_n it_o this_o none_o be_v ever_o call_v the_o true_a god_n special_o with_o the_o article_n but_o in_o relation_n to_o his_o essence_n now_o to_o prove_v that_o the_o religious_a worship_n belong_v to_o the_o only_a true_a god_n be_v appropriate_v to_o christ_n we_o have_v several_a place_n out_o of_o scripture_n some_o do_v it_o in_o general_a and_o other_o in_o the_o particular_n whereof_o there_o be_v several_a brancly_n of_o the_o first_o order_n be_v this_o let_v all_o the_o angel_n of_o god_n worship_v he_o quote_v out_o of_o the_o psalm_n upon_o these_o two_o unshaken_a pillar_n 37.7_o heb._n 1.6_o psal_n 37.7_o i_o mean_v the_o testimony_n of_o a_o prophet_n and_o of_o a_o apostle_n stand_v these_o two_o great_a truth_n first_o how_o the_o person_n who_o the_o angel_n here_o call_v god_n for_o so_o the_o apostle_n do_v explain_v the_o word_n be_v command_v to_o worship_n be_v the_o true_a essential_a god_n or_o to_o make_v use_n of_o the_o name_n which_o the_o adversary_n do_v common_o bring_v in_o namely_o the_o god_n of_o israel_n second_o that_o the_o person_n to_o be_v worship_v by_o angel_n be_v the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n the_o first_o assertion_n be_v the_o prophet_n the_o second_o be_v the_o apostle_n out_o of_o which_o both_o we_o may_v sure_o conclude_v how_o the_o lord_n jesus_n be_v the_o true_a essential_a god_n of_o israel_n to_o examine_v well_o this_o we_o shall_v first_o begin_v with_o the_o word_n of_o the_o original_a that_o be_v the_o psalm_n whence_o they_o be_v draw_v and_o afterward_o the_o application_n make_v of_o they_o in_o the_o gospel_n to_o remove_v the_o weight_n of_o this_o argument_n which_o lie_v so_o heavy_a upon_o they_o and_o find_v they_o can_v deny_v the_o application_n to_o belong_v to_o christ_n the_o adversary_n will_v not_o have_v the_o word_n to_o be_v understand_v of_o the_o true_a god_n of_o israel_n but_o certain_o they_o ought_v to_o be_v relate_v to_o he_o that_o be_v name_v in_o the_o next_o verse_n but_o one_o before_o namely_o the_o lord_n of_o the_o whole_a earth_n for_o indeed_o in_o this_o psalm_n wherein_o be_v describe_v the_o majesty_n of_o god_n kingdom_n no_o other_o person_n be_v speak_v of_o but_o that_o god_n who_o kingdom_n it_o be_v now_o that_o the_o god_n of_o the_o whole_a earth_n be_v jehovah_n the_o god_n of_o israel_n it_o appear_v out_o of_o scripture_n wherein_o the_o attribute_n of_o lord_n of_o the_o whole_a earth_n be_v give_v to_o the_o true_a god_n by_o nature_n among_o other_o take_v these_o few_o 5._o josh_n 3.11_o zechar._n 14_o and_z 6_o 5._o behold_v the_o ark_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o the_o lord_n of_o all_o the_o earth_n pass_v over_o before_o you_o into_o jordan_n and_o these_o be_v the_o two_o anoint_a one_o that_o stand_v by_o the_o lord_n of_o the_o whole_a earth_n again_o these_o be_v the_o four_o spirit_n of_o the_o heaven_n which_o go_v forth_o from_o stand_v before_o the_o lord_n of_o all_o the_o earth_n 4.12_o micah_n 4.12_o the_o very_a same_o expression_n be_v find_v in_o another_o prophet_n i_o will_v consecrate_v their_o gain_n unto_o the_o lord_n and_o their_o substance_n unto_o the_o lord_n of_o the_o whole_a earth_n i_o shall_v add_v that_o considerable_a place_n where_o the_o prophet_n for_o the_o comfort_n of_o the_o gentile_n prophesy_v of_o what_o a_o large_a extent_n their_o church_n shall_v be_v and_o speak_v of_o their_o deliverance_n heap_v several_a glorious_a title_n upon_o he_o that_o be_v to_o be_v the_o author_n thereof_o which_o no_o doubt_n have_v a_o relation_n to_o the_o messiah_n who_o be_v to_o effect_v it_o among_o other_o name_n therein_o give_v that_o of_o god_n of_o the_o whole_a earth_n be_v one_o ●_o isa_n 3●_n ●_o for_o thy_o maker_n be_v thy_o husband_n the_o lord_n of_o host_n be_v his_o name_n and_o thy_o redeemer_n the_o holy_a one_o of_o israel_n the_o god_n of_o the_o whole_a ●arth_n shall_v he_o be_v cast_a all_o these_o glorious_a name_n belong_v to_o one_o and_o the_o same_o i_o need_v not_o to_o show_v that_o the_o prophecy_n about_o the_o deliverance_n and_o call_v of_o the_o gentile_n do_v relate_v to_o christ_n 2.8_o psal_n 2.8_o who_o be_v to_o have_v the_o heathen_a for_o his_o inheritance_n and_o the_o utmost_a part_n of_o the_o earth_n for_o his_o possession_n and_o this_o title_n of_o lord_n of_o the_o whole_a earth_n be_v by_o the_o psalmist_n in_o another_o place_n render_v by_o a_o great_a king_n over_o all_o the_o earth_n 47.2.7_o psal_n 47.2.7_o and_o the_o king_n of_o all_o the_o earth_n all_o to_o signify_v though_o same_o thing_n and_o person_n the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n the_o messiah_n i_o think_v this_o be_v enough_o to_o prove_v how_o the_o god_n of_o israel_n and_o the_o lord_n of_o the_o whole_a earth_n be_v the_o same_o as_o israel_n make_v a_o part_n of_o the_o earth_n so_o he_o that_o be_v god_n of_o the_o whole_a earth_n must_v need_v be_v the_o god_n of_o israel_n so_o it_o be_v the_o same_o in_o this_o text_n for_o no_o where_n in_o scripture_n that_o title_n be_v give_v to_o any_o but_o the_o true_a god_n yet_o they_o be_v so_o obstinate_a in_o their_o opinion_n that_o socinus_n himself_o who_o though_o he_o will_v not_o have_v christ_n to_o be_v the_o king_n of_o israel_n yet_o be_v force_v by_o the_o strength_n of_o this_o reason_n he_o seem_v content_a that_o the_o lord_n jesus_n shall_v be_v here_o call_v the_o lord_n of_o the_o whole_a earth_n but_o if_o the_o argument_n shall_v lie_v upon_o this_o he_o will_v want_v no_o cavil_n to_o elude_v the_o force_n of_o it_o for_o that_o wretch_n be_v so_o damnable_o bend_v against_o the_o glory_n and_o honour_n of_o our_o saviour_n that_o in_o whatsoever_o he_o write_v about_o he_o 8.23_o act_n 8.23_o there_o appear_v
by_o our_o saviour_n belong_v only_o to_o his_o humane_a nature_n which_o may_v be_v due_a and_o necessary_a from_o one_o in_o nature_n and_o quality_n inferior_a to_o another_o but_o it_o be_v also_o a_o undue_a and_o mere_o voluntary_a obedience_n which_o may_v be_v render_v by_o a_o equal_a and_o some_o time_n by_o a_o superior_a as_o we_o read_v when_o joshua_n say_v 13._o josn_a 10.12_o 13._o sun_n stand_v thou_o still_o upon_o gibeon_n and_o thou_o moon_n in_o the_o valley_n of_o ajalon_n so_o the_o sun_n stand_v he_o be_v obey_v but_o there_o be_v in_o it_o more_o than_o this_o the_o sun_n of_o himself_o can_v not_o stand_v nor_o alter_v or_o stop_v his_o course_n a_o superior_a power_n to_o do_v it_o be_v require_v and_o indeed_o we_o find_v that_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o verse_n it_o be_v say_v then_o spook_v joshua_n unto_o the_o lord_n in_o the_o day_n when_o etc._n etc._n sun_n stand_v thou_o still_o so_o let_v it_o be_v speak_v with_o that_o awful_a reverence_n and_o to_o a_o infinite_a majesty_n in_o some_o kind_n we_o may_v see_v how_o in_o this_o case_n the_o superior_a be_v please_v to_o obey_v the_o inferior_a so_o we_o may_v say_v a_o sort_n of_o obedience_n may_v belong_v to_o divine_a nature_n as_o when_o god_n command_v the_o world_n shall_v be_v create_v and_o it_o be_v perform_v by_o his_o son_n of_o this_o nature_n be_v christ_n obedience_n as_o speak_v of_o by_o the_o apostle_n concern_v christ_n 8._o phil._n 2.6_o 7_o 8._o who_o be_v in_o the_o form_n of_o god_n think_v it_o not_o robbery_n to_o be_v equal_a with_o god_n he_o humble_v himself_o this_o be_v a_o voluntary_a obedience_n for_o he_o be_v not_o humble_v but_o humble_v himself_o he_o be_v not_o make_v but_o make_v himself_o of_o no_o reputation_n thus_o the_o obedience_n be_v value_v according_a to_o the_o dignity_n of_o the_o person_n which_o obey_v to_o be_v in_o the_o form_n of_o god_n be_v to_o be_v god_n for_o forma_fw-la that_fw-mi esse_fw-la rei_fw-la the_o form_n be_v the_o nature_n of_o the_o thing_n and_o make_v it_o to_o be_v what_o it_o be_v but_o what_o this_o man_n grant_v before_o he_o be_v now_o willing_a to_o take_v away_o when_o he_o will_v have_v this_o worship_v not_o to_o be_v terminate_v in_o christ_n but_o from_o he_o to_o pass_v unto_o god_n so_o this_o be_v but_o a_o relative_a worship_n thus_o papist_n say_v they_o worship_v image_n but_o they_o be_v mistake_v for_o though_o god_n have_v exalt_v he_o it_o do_v not_o follow_v that_o adoration_n shall_v be_v only_o transitory_a and_o not_o fix_v so_o god_n have_v exalt_v the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n but_o the_o civil_a worship_n or_o respect_n render_v unto_o the_o king_n be_v render_v unto_o a_o man_n but_o not_o in_o the_o capacity_n of_o a_o man_n but_o be_v terminate_v in_o he_o as_o he_o be_v a_o king_n so_o when_o christ_n man_n be_v adore_v he_o be_v not_o so_o under_o the_o notion_n of_o man_n but_o as_o he_o be_v god_n of_o the_o same_o nature_n with_o the_o father_n and_o that_o he_o be_v in_o the_o father_n and_o the_o father_n in_o he_o the_o father_n may_v well_o be_v worship_v in_o he_o and_o he_o in_o the_o father_n but_o make_v they_o as_o they_o do_v to_o be_v of_o different_a nature_n i_o see_v no_o cause_n why_o they_o may_v not_o be_v worship_v asunder_o one_o from_o another_o which_o yet_o do_v but_o rend_v and_o divide_v the_o object_n of_o our_o worship_n with_o this_o new_a as_o they_o call_v it_o way_n of_o worship_n to_o adore_v god_n in_o a_o man._n but_o they_o must_v say_v what_o they_o understand_v by_o he_o for_o both_o the_o prophet_n and_o the_o apostle_n make_v use_v of_o the_o word_n be_v it_o one_o or_o a_o different_a person_n name_v by_o they_o if_o the_o same_o than_o christ_n be_v the_o one_o god_n if_o not_o the_o same_o than_o the_o apostle_n have_v not_o well_o explain_v the_o prophet_n if_o in_o the_o psalm_n christ_n be_v not_o speak_v of_o but_o only_o the_o god_n of_o israel_n of_o a_o nature_n altogether_o different_a then_o in_o the_o epistle_n the_o word_n be_v make_v use_n of_o to_o no_o purpose_n for_o therein_o the_o design_n be_v to_o prove_v how_o christ_n must_v be_v worship_v by_o all_o angel_n now_o he_o do_v not_o answer_v his_o purpose_n when_o to_o prove_v one_o who_o be_v not_o the_o god_n israel_n ought_v to_o be_v adore_v he_o bring_v a_o text_n which_o command_v the_o angel_n to_o adore_v he_o only_o who_o be_v the_o god_n of_o israel_n a_o great_a disparagement_n indeed_o not_o only_o to_o the_o author_n of_o the_o epistle_n but_o to_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n which_o direct_v he_o he_o say_v in_o that_o worship_n exhibit_v unto_o christ_n the_o lord_n jesus_n represent_v the_o person_n of_o god_n the_o father_n how_o as_o a_o actor_n upon_o the_o stage_n do_v represent_v a_o king_n after_o this_o rate_n christ_n with_o all_o the_o worship_n give_v he_o will_v be_v without_o blasphemy_n let_v it_o be_v speak_v but_o a_o stage_n god_n if_o to_o reign_n do_v signify_v the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n why_o shall_v not_o also_o the_o name_n jehovah_n who_o reign_v belong_v to_o his_o person_n if_o he_o have_v the_o thing_n why_o shall_v he_o not_o have_v the_o name_n also_o christ_n kingdom_n be_v therein_o describe_v jehovah_n be_v the_o king_n why_o shall_v not_o christ_n be_v jehovah_n which_o if_o he_o be_v it_o must_v be_v proper_o for_o christ_n nor_o no_o one_o else_o be_v ever_o figurative_o call_v jehovah_n and_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n under_o the_o name_n of_o god_n be_v describe_v then_o if_o christ_n be_v not_o god_n jehovah_n then_o it_o be_v jehovah_n that_o indeed_o do_v represent_v christ_n so_o he_o must_v be_v the_o type_n of_o christ_n thus_o they_o unavoidable_o run_v into_o absurdity_n but_o in_o very_a deed_n christ_n do_v not_o act_v the_o part_n of_o the_o father_n but_o his_o own_o he_o do_v act_v the_o part_n of_o three_o person_n upon_o the_o account_n of_o his_o three_o several_a office_n of_o a_o prophet_n of_o a_o priest_n and_o of_o a_o king_n he_o therein_o exercise_v his_o own_o office_n and_o not_o that_o of_o the_o father_n he_o do_v what_o belong_v to_o he_o and_o not_o to_o other_o 17.10_o joh._n 17.10_o and_o as_o all_o thing_n the_o father_n have_v be_v his_o so_o the_o kingdom_n throne_n sceptre_n power_n majesty_n ministry_n and_o subject_n be_v all_o he_o if_o he_o receive_v the_o kingdom_n from_o the_o father_n he_o receive_v it_o as_o only_o beget_v son_n and_o heir_n of_o all_o thing_n not_o as_o of_o another_o not_o as_o his_o own_o wherefore_o he_o do_v not_o reign_v as_o a_o servant_n or_o a_o minister_n of_o the_o far_o so_o then_o when_o he_o reign_v he_o do_v not_o represent_v the_o father_n person_n but_o his_o own_o not_o as_o his_o vicar_n or_o lieutenant_n but_o as_o god_n equal_a with_o he_o the_o first_o part_n of_o the_o verse_n 5._o matth._n 1.20_o luke_n 2.9_o 13._o matth._n 28.2_o 5._o and_o again_o when_o he_o bring_v in_o the_o first_o beget_v into_o the_o world_n show_v how_o at_o his_o first_o come_v into_o the_o world_n he_o be_v worship_v and_o serve_v by_o angel_n for_o his_o conception_n birth_n and_o resurrection_n be_v publish_v by_o angel_n and_o then_o it_o demonstrate_v there_o be_v two_o person_n one_o that_o bring_v the_o other_o that_o be_v bring_v in_o the_o one_o be_v the_o father_n the_o other_o the_o son_n the_o first_o command_v the_o last_o to_o be_v adore_v for_o he_o say_v not_o worship_v i_o but_o he_o there_o be_v a_o emphasis_n in_o the_o word_n first_o beget_v simple_o speak_v to_o be_v understand_v of_o every_o creature_n 1.15_o col._n 1.15_o for_o it_o be_v very_o just_a he_o shall_v be_v worship_v by_o angel_n as_o his_o creature_n and_o indeed_o in_o scripture_n i_o can_v find_v any_o truth_n more_o clear_o and_o full_o prove_v than_o this_o be_v he_o be_v worship_v not_o only_o by_o angel_n but_o also_o by_o devil_n 7._o mark_v 5.6_o 7._o the_o legion_n in_o the_o body_n of_o the_o man_n possess_v but_o as_o we_o prove_v the_o lord_n jesus_n ought_v to_o be_v worship_v by_o angel_n so_o we_o now_o must_v show_v he_o ought_v to_o be_v by_o man_n and_o the_o place_n be_v this_o that_o all_o man_n shall_v honour_v the_o son_n even_o as_o they_o honour_v the_o father_n he_o that_o honour_v not_o the_o son_n 5.23_o john_n 5.23_o honour_v not_o the_o father_n that_o send_v he_o to_o understand_v the_o place_n well_o we_o must_v go_v up_o high_o and_o take_v notice_n how_o from_o verse_n 17._o to_o 23._o our_o saviour_n speak_v of_o his_o equality_n with_o the_o father_n as_o well_o understand_v by_o the_o
be_v real_o in_o heaven_n before_o he_o come_v down_o upon_o earth_n and_o as_o he_o real_o and_o actual_o ascend_v up_o into_o it_o so_o he_o real_o and_o actual_o descend_v from_o thence_o upon_o earth_n here_o be_v two_o term_n a_o quo_fw-la and_o ad_fw-la quem_fw-la as_o he_o can_v not_o go_v up_o to_o heaven_n but_o from_o the_o earth_n so_o he_o can_v not_o come_v down_o upon_o the_o earth_n but_o from_o heaven_n and_o be_v there_o the_o least_o ground_n in_o the_o whole_a chapter_n to_o think_v christ_n intention_n be_v to_o entertain_v they_o with_o his_o have_v be_v in_o heaven_n in_o idea_n and_o meditation_n when_o his_o design_n be_v to_o show_v how_o what_o he_o have_v say_v of_o be_v the_o author_n of_o resurrection_n and_o life_n and_o the_o manner_n of_o it_o by_o mean_n of_o eat_v his_o flesh_n be_v a_o thing_n not_o to_o give_v they_o offence_n nor_o impossible_a consider_v what_o he_o be_v original_o from_o heaven_n therefore_o not_o to_o be_v consider_v as_o a_o mere_a man_n but_o such_o a_o one_o as_o be_v far_o more_o divine_a and_o powerful_a than_o any_o man_n they_o find_v this_o will_v not_o do_v yet_o to_o dispute_v the_o ground_n as_o long_o as_o they_o can_v they_o forge_v in_o a_o dream_n for_o otherwise_o it_o can_v be_v a_o very_a strange_a adventure_n that_o christ_n be_v in_o heaven_n before_o he_o be_v upon_o earth_n seem_v undeniable_a therefore_o because_o they_o dare_v not_o give_v he_o the_o lie_n they_o will_v mince_v the_o matter_n thus_o how_o christ_n between_o his_o birth_n and_o death_n and_o before_o he_o preach_v go_v up_o into_o heaven_n where_o for_o a_o while_o he_o remain_v to_o be_v better_o instruct_v by_o the_o father_n in_o the_o thing_n which_o he_o be_v to_o teach_v mankind_n after_o which_o he_o come_v down_o again_o but_o there_o be_v not_o the_o least_o ground_n but_o only_a fancy_n for_o it_o the_o evangelist_n do_v give_v we_o a_o account_n of_o most_o passage_n of_o christ_n life_n and_o how_o can_v they_o all_o four_o have_v forget_v this_o which_o be_v one_o of_o the_o most_o important_a that_o may_v have_v befall_v he_o in_o that_o kind_n the_o evangelist_n matthew_n and_o luke_n in_o their_o four_o first_o chapter_n relate_v many_o thing_n belong_v to_o that_o time_n as_o not_o only_o his_o birth_n but_o also_o his_o circumcision_n on_o the_o eight_o day_n and_o his_o be_v carry_v to_o the_o temple_n to_o be_v present_v to_o the_o lord_n receive_v by_o simeon_n speak_v of_o by_o anna_n a_o prophetess_n adore_v by_o the_o wise_a man_n carry_v into_o egypt_n his_o return_n to_o nazareth_n his_o be_v find_v in_o the_o temple_n sit_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o doctor_n ask_v they_o question_n his_o be_v subject_a to_o joseph_n and_o mary_n baptize_v of_o john_n tempt_v in_o the_o wilderness_n etc._n etc._n and_o not_o one_o word_n about_o this_o pretend_a ascension_n how_o come_v it_o that_o he_o be_v not_o miss_v by_o any_o this_o they_o will_v to_o have_v be_v in_o imitation_n of_o moses_n who_o god_n call_v up_o to_o the_o mount_n that_o it_o be_v so_o with_o moses_n we_o read_v in_o the_o word_n but_o nothing_o like_o it_o of_o our_o saviour_n and_o when_o god_n be_v silent_a our_o mouth_n shall_v be_v stop_v and_o nothing_o allow_v to_o fancy_n or_o imagination_n beside_o when_o moses_n be_v call_v up_o the_o people_n have_v public_a notice_n give_v they_o of_o it_o and_o by_o god_n command_n he_o take_v aaron_n son_n and_o seventy_o of_o the_o elder_n all_o the_o people_n see_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n upon_o the_o mount_n and_o when_o moses_n come_v back_o all_o israel_n see_v he_o with_o his_o face_n shine_v none_o of_o which_o thing_n can_v be_v say_v of_o this_o pretend_a ascension_n of_o christ_n whereof_o there_o be_v no_o witness_n not_o so_o much_o as_o any_o of_o his_o disciple_n as_o he_o have_v in_o his_o trassiguration_n which_o three_o evangelist_n give_v a_o exact_a account_n of_o which_o though_o important_a yet_o not_o so_o considerable_a as_o this_o which_o can_v not_o be_v perform_v without_o a_o great_a miracle_n whether_o he_o have_v be_v carry_v up_o only_o in_o soul_n for_o then_o his_o soul_n have_v be_v separate_v from_o the_o body_n so_o death_n must_v have_v follow_v or_o whether_o in_o body_n and_o soul_n the_o body_n can_v not_o have_v be_v sustain_v in_o the_o air_n without_o a_o miracle_n and_o during_o that_o time_n where_o be_v his_o disciple_n this_o certain_o shall_v have_v make_v a_o great_a gap_n in_o the_o history_n of_o his_o life_n which_o we_o can_v perceive_v in_o any_o of_o the_o evangelist_n no_o nor_o in_o those_o that_o have_v write_v his_o life_n from_o his_o birth_n to_o his_o death_n resurrection_n and_o ascension_n st._n luke_n say_v of_o the_o gospel_n he_o have_v write_v how_o he_o have_v make_v a_o treatise_n of_o all_o that_o jesus_n begin_v both_o to_o do_v and_o to_o teach_v yet_o not_o a_o word_n of_o this_o 1.1_o act_n 1.1_o as_o indeed_o there_o be_v no_o necessity_n for_o christ_n to_o go_v up_o to_o know_v as_o they_o say_v his_o father_n will_n which_o may_v have_v be_v communicate_v unto_o he_o as_o to_o moses_n john_n baptist_n without_o go_v up_o to_o heaven_n in_o case_n he_o have_v not_o know_v it_o but_o he_o know_v it_o before_o at_o his_o baptism_n the_o heaven_n be_v open_v unto_o he_o the_o father_n have_v high_o own_v he_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v descend_v upon_o he_o so_o that_o he_o return_v from_o jordan_n full_a of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n 4.1_o luke_n 4.1_o wherefore_o there_o be_v no_o need_n of_o his_o go_n and_o so_o the_o cause_n cease_v so_o must_v the_o effect_n so_o that_o also_o it_o have_v be_v preposterous_a after_o what_o happen_v in_o his_o baptism_n for_o he_o to_o have_v go_v up_o into_o heaven_n upon_o such_o a_o errand_n beside_o that_o we_o be_v assure_v he_o enter_v but_o once_o into_o the_o holy_a place_n 9.12_o heb._n 9.12_o hereby_o we_o see_v how_o if_o we_o be_v willing_a to_o take_v it_o that_o sort_n of_o man_n will_v be_v ready_a to_o put_v upon_o we_o every_o suggestion_n of_o they_o for_o a_o argument_n every_o argument_n for_o a_o law_n yea_o and_o every_o dream_n for_o a_o revelation_n though_o our_o saviour_n here_o call_v himself_o son_n of_o man_n and_o not_o son_n of_o god_n it_o do_v not_o in_o the_o least_o prejudice_n what_o we_o say_v for_o if_o he_o have_v call_v himself_o son_n of_o god_n it_o have_v be_v a_o beg_n of_o the_o question_n for_o they_o will_v not_o own_v he_o to_o be_v such_o and_o this_o show_v the_o better_a the_o oneness_n of_o the_o person_n when_o there_o be_v a_o communication_n of_o the_o idiom_n when_o in_o the_o person_n that_o which_o be_v proper_a to_o one_o nature_n be_v speak_v of_o the_o other_o christ_n according_a to_o the_o flesh_n be_v never_o in_o heaven_n before_o his_o ascension_n but_o according_a to_o the_o spirit_n that_o be_v his_o divine_a nature_n he_o be_v here_o our_o bless_a saviour_n call_v himself_o son_n of_o man_n may_v allude_v to_o with_o intent_n to_o make_v man_n take_v notice_n of_o what_o be_v speak_v of_o himself_o by_o the_o prophet_n 14._o dan._n 7.13_o 14._o i_o see_v in_o the_o night_n vision_n and_o behold_v one_o like_o the_o son_n of_o man_n come_v with_o the_o cloud_n of_o heaven_n and_o come_v to_o the_o ancient_a of_o day_n and_o they_o bring_v he_o near_o before_o he_o and_o there_o be_v give_v he_o dominion_n and_o glory_n and_o a_o kingdom_n that_o all_o people_n nation_n and_o language_n shall_v serve_v he_o his_o dominion_n be_v a_o everlasting_a dominion_n etc._n etc._n this_o be_v a_o exact_a prophecy_n of_o his_o ascension_n one_o thing_n more_o they_o have_v to_o say_v and_o it_o be_v the_o example_n of_o paul_n have_v be_v catch_v up_o to_o the_o three_o heaven_n but_o must_v it_o from_o what_o have_v happen_v to_o paul_n 12.2_o 2_o cor._n 12.2_o follow_v that_o the_o same_o must_v needs_o have_v befall_v the_o lord_n jesus_n that_o indeed_o we_o read_v of_o paul_n therefore_o we_o ought_v to_o believe_v but_o of_o christ_n we_o read_v no_o such_o thing_n yet_o for_o all_o that_o we_o never_o read_v that_o either_o paul_n be_v from_o heaven_n or_o come_v down_o as_o we_o read_v it_o of_o christ_n very_o often_o paul_n speak_v of_o that_o with_o the_o great_a modesty_n in_o the_o world_n for_o fear_v he_o shall_v seem_v to_o exalt_v himself_o but_o our_o lord_n without_o any_o ambiguity_n or_o fear_n that_o man_n will_v think_v he_o take_v too_o much_o upon_o himself_o do_v speak_v loud_o high_o declare_v and_o often_o proclaim_v himself_o to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n equal_a with_o he_o send_v by_o the_o
with_o the_o people_n but_o be_v appease_v by_o moses_n promise_v to_o send_v a_o angel_n before_o they_o which_o moses_n and_o the_o people_n be_v full_o satisfy_v with_o who_o and_o what_o this_o angel_n be_v 22._o chap._n 23.20_o 21_o 22._o we_o have_v it_o in_o the_o book_n of_o exodus_fw-la with_o the_o end_n for_o which_o he_o be_v to_o go_v before_o namely_o to_o guide_v they_o and_o it_o be_v thus_o express_v behold_v i_o send_v a_o angel_n before_o thou_o to_o keep_v thou_o in_o the_o way_n and_o to_o bring_v thou_o into_o the_o place_n which_o i_o have_v prepare_v but_o hear_v the_o charge_n he_o give_v they_o concern_v this_o angel_n beware_v of_o he_o and_o obey_v his_o voice_n provoke_v he_o not_o for_o he_o will_v not_o pardon_v your_o transgression_n for_o my_o name_n be_v in_o he_o such_o term_n do_v the_o god_n of_o israel_n use_v when_o he_o speak_v of_o himself_o two_o thing_n here_o we_o must_v observe_v first_o what_o be_v here_o speak_v belong_v only_o to_o the_o true_a essential_a god_n of_o israel_n the_o second_o be_v the_o angel_n or_o person_n here_o speak_v of_o be_v the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n out_o of_o which_o premise_n we_o may_v well_o conclude_v he_o be_v the_o true_a god_n of_o israel_n the_o caution_n here_o give_v to_o take_v heed_n have_v a_o care_n and_o beware_v of_o he_o as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v take_v heed_n to_o thyself_o in_o thy_o carriage_n before_o he_o this_o i_o say_v join_v with_o the_o command_n to_o obey_v his_o voice_n be_v very_o remarkable_a the_o absolute_a obedience_n which_o god_n require_v they_o to_o yield_v unto_o the_o angel_n be_v due_a to_o god_n alone_o and_o be_v never_o relate_v to_o the_o creature_n only_o to_o himself_o for_o his_o voice_n be_v god_n voice_n and_o when_o he_o speak_v god_n speak_v as_o the_o word_n of_o v._o 22._o do_v intimate_v if_o thou_o shall_v indeed_o obey_v his_o voice_n and_o do_v all_o that_o i_o speak_v than_o i_o will_v be_v a_o enemy_n unto_o thy_o enemy_n the_o angel_n voice_n and_o all_o that_o god_n speak_v be_v the_o fa●●e_n and_o upon_o their_o obedience_n to_o his_o voice_n depend_v the_o performance_n of_o the_o promise_n the_o lord_n never_o so_o express_o charge_v any_o people_n or_o person_n not_o to_o provoke_v any_o create_a angel_n or_o man_n as_o here_o he_o do_v provoke_v he_o not_o offend_v and_o displease_v he_o not_o why_o for_o he_o will_v not_o pardon_v your_o transgression_n rebellion_n or_o sin_n in_o scripture_n phrase_n for_o sin_n be_v the_o transgression_n of_o the_o law_n so_o then_o to_o disobey_v and_o to_o provoke_v this_o angel_n be_v to_o sin_n and_o this_o very_a same_o angel_n have_v right_a and_o power_n if_o he_o will_v to_o pardon_v sin_n which_o none_o but_o the_o true_a god_n have_v power_n to_o take_v upon_o he_o to_o do_v and_o it_o be_v blasphemy_n for_o any_o creature_n whatsoever_o to_o pretend_v to_o it_o another_o great_a and_o unanswerable_a reason_n be_v for_o my_o name_n be_v in_o he_o a_o more_o excellent_a name_n than_o any_o of_o the_o angel_n do_v enjoy_v 1.4_o heb._n 1.4_o the_o name_n be_v that_o appellation_n by_o which_o one_o thing_n be_v distinct_o know_v from_o another_o so_o god_n name_n signify_v god_n himself_o as_o to_o call_v upon_o god_n name_n 7.20_o gen._n 4.26_o exod._n 33.19_o 2_o chron._n 7.20_o it_o be_v his_o title_n god_n jehovah_n elohim_n lord._n i_o will_v proclaim_v the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n before_o thou_o say_v god_n to_o moses_n compare_v with_o chap._n 34.3_o 6._o in_o the_o former_a verse_n it_o be_v call_v to_o proclaim_v the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o in_o the_o late_a to_o proclaim_v the_o lord_n the_o lord_n and_o in_o scripture_n phrase_n the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v take_v for_o god_n himself_o that_o be_v all_o in_o he_o majesty_n almightiness_n psal_n 29.2_o &_o 33.21_o &_o 34.3_o &_o 61.5_o this_o house_n say_v god_n which_o i_o have_v sanctify_v for_o my_o name_n for_o myself_o my_o honour_n and_o worship_n so_o here_o when_o god_n say_v of_o that_o angel_n my_o name_n be_v in_o he_o he_o mean_v his_o nature_n title_n attribute_n authority_n power_n and_o glory_n in_o a_o word_n i_o myself_o be_o in_o he_o which_o afterward_o be_v well_o interpret_v by_o the_o lord_n jesus_n the_o father_n be_v in_o i_o and_o i_o in_o the_o father_n now_o this_o by_o the_o god_n of_o israel_n be_v attribute_v unto_o another_o it_o must_v be_v to_o another_o himself_n for_o his_o name_n be_v his_o glory_n and_o he_o have_v solemn_o declare_v my_o glory_n will_v i_o not_o give_v to_o another_o 3.2_o isa_n 42.8_o exod._n 3.2_o the_o angel_n speak_v of_o in_o this_o place_n be_v as_o already_o observe_v the_o same_o as_o before_o have_v appear_v unto_o moses_n in_o a_o flame_n of_o fire_n out_o of_o the_o midst_n of_o a_o bush_n who_o v._o 4_o be_v call_v lord_n and_o god_n who_o out_o of_o the_o same_o place_n call_v unto_o and_o require_v of_o he_o divine_a honour_n draw_v not_o nigh_o hither_o but_o put_v off_o thy_o shoe_n from_o off_o thy_o foot_n for_o the_o place_n whereon_o thou_o stand_v be_v holy_a ground_n and_o if_o any_o doubt_n shall_v remain_v it_o be_v clear_v v._n 6_o moreover_o be_v the_o same_o angel_n say_v i_o be_o the_o god_n of_o thy_o father_n the_o god_n of_o abraham_n the_o god_n of_o isaac_n and_o the_o god_n of_o jacob._n this_o very_a same_o angel_n or_o person_n upon_o the_o people_n enter_v into_o the_o land_n of_o promise_n under_o the_o shape_n of_o a_o man_n appear_v unto_o joshua_n under_o the_o name_n of_o captain_n of_o the_o host_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o in_o the_o posture_n for_o it_o be_v with_o a_o draw_a sword_n 15._o josh_n 5.13_o 14_o 15._o to_o execute_v his_o office_n of_o general_n as_o god_n have_v promise_v to_o bring_v they_o into_o the_o place_n he_o have_v prepare_v for_o then_o the_o people_n be_v just_a enter_v upon_o the_o siege_n of_o jericho_n and_o this_o same_o angel_n or_o son_n of_o god_n under_o the_o shape_n of_o a_o man_n exact_v of_o joshua_n the_o same_o worship_n as_o he_o before_o have_v require_v of_o moses_n and_o of_o he_o afterward_o joshua_n say_v to_o the_o people_n he_o be_v a_o holy_a god_n he_o be_v a_o jealous_a god_n 24.19_o josh_n 24.19_o he_o will_v not_o forgive_v your_o transgression_n nor_o your_o sin_n these_o last_o word_n be_v the_o same_o which_o god_n say_v to_o moses_n in_o the_o forequote_v place_n and_o so_o belong_v to_o one_o and_o the_o same_o now_o i_o say_v this_o angel_n who_o appear_v unto_o moses_n out_o of_o the_o bush_n who_o through_o the_o wilderness_n go_v before_o the_o people_n into_o the_o land_n of_o promise_n and_o appear_v unto_o joshua_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n the_o second_o person_n of_o the_o most_o holy_a trinity_n the_o same_o who_o afterward_o take_v on_o he_o our_o human_a nature_n and_o be_v bear_v of_o the_o virgin_n mary_n and_o among_o other_o reason_n this_o i_o take_v to_o be_v a_o very_a good_a one_o 35._o act_n 7.30_o 35._o because_o stephen_n the_o first_o martyr_n for_o this_o glorious_a cause_n and_o a_o good_a interpreter_n of_o the_o place_n make_v mention_n of_o the_o angel_n of_o the_o lord_n which_o appear_v unto_o moses_n and_o this_o moses_n god_n send_v to_o be_v a_o ruler_n and_o a_o deliverer_n by_o the_o hand_n or_o power_n of_o the_o angel_n which_o appear_v to_o he_o in_o the_o bush_n moses_n be_v the_o minister_n or_o servant_n 3.6_o heb._n 3.6_o but_o christ_n as_o a_o son_n over_o his_o own_o house_n say_v the_o apostle_n so_o thing_n be_v do_v by_o the_o power_n of_o the_o angel_n moses_n be_v in_o the_o church_n in_o the_o wilderness_n but_o the_o angel_n be_v with_o he_o stephen_n mention_v the_o church_n and_o the_o angel_n do_v relate_v to_o christ_n our_o lord_n the_o son_n of_o god_n who_o be_v the_o only_a head_n thereof_o and_o by_o who_o direction_n moses_n take_v care_n of_o it_o as_o also_o moses_n speak_v of_o he_o under_o the_o name_n of_o a_o prophet_n who_o god_n will_v raise_v up_o unto_o they_o 23._o act_n 3.22_o 23._o and_o it_o shall_v come_v to_o pass_v that_o every_o soul_n which_o will_v not_o hear_v that_o prophet_n shall_v be_v destroy_v from_o among_o the_o people_n say_v peter_n and_o though_o from_o the_o beginning_n the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v not_o make_v flesh_n yet_o as_o head_n of_o the_o church_n he_o take_v care_n of_o his_o people_n exercise_v his_o mediatorship_n and_o administer_v his_o spiritual_a kingdom_n of_o grace_n which_o the_o bring_v out_o of_o egypt_n and_o introduce_v into_o canaan_n be_v a_o figure_n of_o and_o we_o may_v easy_o perceive_v the_o
sweet_a harmony_n between_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n about_o christ_n govern_n his_o church_n under_o both_o as_o to_z name_n as_o well_o as_o to_o thing_n for_o he_o be_v call_v captain_n of_o the_o lord_n host_n as_o in_o the_o forequote_v place_n and_o god_n be_v a_o man_n of_o war_n and_o lord_n of_o host_n be_v one_o of_o god_n title_n not_o only_o 1_o sam._n 1.1_o but_o in_o a_o hundred_o place_n more_o so_o christ_n be_v in_o the_o new_a testament_n call_v the_o captain_n of_o our_o salvation_n 2.10_o exod_n 15.3_o heb._n 2.10_o to_o be_v complete_v in_o heaven_n whereof_o the_o promise_a land_n be_v a_o type_n this_o angel_n the_o people_n be_v command_v to_o take_v care_v not_o to_o provoke_v he_o yet_o they_o do_v in_o this_o case_n the_o question_n may_v be_v put_v to_o our_o socinian_n rabshakeh_n which_o in_o another_o god_n do_v concern_v sennacherib_n 19.22_o 2_o kin._n 19.22_o who_o have_v thou_o reproach_v and_o blaspheme_v and_o the_o same_o answer_v return_v even_o against_o the_o holy_a one_o of_o israel_n so_o here_o if_o it_o be_v ask_v who_o do_v the_o child_n of_o israel_n provoke_v tempt_v and_o limit_v in_o the_o wilderness_n the_o psalmist_n will_v say_v 56._o psal_n ●8_o 40_o 41_o 56._o god_n the_o holy_a one_o of_o israel_n and_o the_o most_o high_a god_n compare_v with_o psal_n 95._o c._n and_o if_o of_o st._n paul_v we_o ask_v who_o do_v the_o people_n tempt_v in_o the_o wilderness_n he_o will_v answer_v they_o tempt_v christ_n 1_o cor._n 10_o 9_o compare_v with_o heb._n 3.9_o for_o there_o he_o speak_v of_o christ_n as_o son_n of_o god_n it_o may_v not_o be_v understand_v that_o christ_n be_v tempt_v after_o he_o be_v bear_v of_o the_o virgin_n mary_n though_o after_o his_o baptism_n he_o be_v by_o the_o devil_n in_o the_o wilderness_n which_o indeed_o may_v point_v at_o the_o temptation_n by_o the_o people_n in_o the_o wilderdess_n which_o we_o read_v of_o in_o the_o old_a testament_n however_o i_o say_v that_o temptation_n after_o the_o come_n out_o of_o egypt_n which_o be_v so_o long_o before_o he_o be_v bear_v can_v be_v mean_v of_o any_o thing_n after_o his_o birth_n yet_o if_o scripture_n say_v truth_n christ_n be_v by_o the_o people_n tempt_v in_o the_o wilderness_n the_o same_o person_n though_o not_o in_o the_o same_o nature_n which_o he_o take_v afterward_o now_o the_o person_n of_o the_o word_n in_o his_o divine_a nature_n exist_v before_o he_o be_v make_v flesh_n or_o else_o how_o be_v it_o possible_a it_o shall_v be_v tempt_v at_o that_o time_n so_o i_o can_v see_v nothing_o to_o the_o contrary_a but_o that_o we_o may_v well_o conclude_v the_o lord_n jesus_n son_n of_o god_n to_o be_v the_o angel_n that_o go_v before_o they_o who_o they_o be_v forbid_v to_o provoke_v and_o the_o most_o high_a god_n the_o holy_a one_o of_o israel_n who_o they_o tempt_v and_o provoke_v he_o be_v call_v the_o angel_n of_o god_n presence_n or_o of_o god_n face_n for_o the_o lord_n say_v to_o moses_n mypresence_n shall_v go_v 33.14_o exod_n 33.14_o it_o donote_v a_o distinct_a person_n in_o the_o godhead_n from_o he_o who_o angel_n and_o who_o face_n he_o be_v we_o must_v understand_v where_o the_o angel_n be_v god_n be_v present_a because_o that_o same_o angel_n and_o person_n be_v god_n and_o what_o in_o v._o ●●_o be_v name_v presence_n in_o v._o 18_o it_o be_v call_v glory_n to_o be_v compare_v with_o what_o john_n say_v and_o we_o behold_v his_o glory_n 1.14_o chap._n 1.14_o as_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o only_o beget_v of_o the_o father_n he_o also_o be_v call_v the_o angel_n of_o the_o covenant_n for_o it_o be_v plain_a how_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n between_o god_n and_o man_n be_v ground_v only_o in_o christ_n and_o none_o else_o 63.9_o isa_n 63.9_o for_o scripture_n say_v in_o he_o we_o be_v choose_v and_o adopt_v and_o only_o by_o he_o we_o shall_v be_v save_v this_o truth_n that_o the_o angel_n who_o go_v before_o the_o people_n be_v the_o true_a god_n the_o spirit_n of_o god_n have_v judge_v so_o important_a and_o necessary_a to_o be_v know_v that_o at_o several_a time_n and_o in_o many_o place_n he_o declare_v it_o among_o other_o the_o following_z be_v very_o considerable_a if_o we_o mind_v time_n place_n and_o the_o very_a word_n compare_v together_o i_o send_v a_o angel_n before_o thou_o say_v the_o lord_n 8._o psal_n 68.7_o 8._o and_o david_n o_o god_n when_o thou_o wente_v before_o thy_o people_n when_o thou_o do_v march_v through_o the_o wilderness_n compare_v with_o that_o before_o quote_v of_o the_o church_n in_o the_o wilderness_n and_o the_o same_o who_o go_v before_o the_o people_n be_v by_o the_o psalmist_n in_o the_o same_o place_n call_v god_n the_o god_n of_o israel_n of_o who_o v._o 18_o it_o be_v say_v thou_o have_v ascend_v on_o high_a thou_o have_v lead_v captivity_n captive_a etc._n etc._n for_o here_o be_v certain_o a_o prophecy_n of_o christ_n ascension_n as_o to_o that_o purpose_n this_o place_n be_v quote_v by_o st._n paul_n 10._o ephes_n 4.8_o 9_o 10._o for_o indeed_o here_o mention_n be_v make_v of_o the_o figure_n and_o type_n namely_o the_o ark_n as_o we_o see_v in_o the_o word_n of_o v._o 1_o &_o 2_o take_v out_o of_o numb_a 10.35_o when_o the_o ark_n be_v set_v forward_o and_o of_o the_o antitype_n the_o truth_n and_o body_n of_o the_o type_n jesus_n christ_n and_o upon_o good_a ground_n namely_o that_o of_o ephes_n 4_o many_o be_v of_o opinion_n that_o this_o be_v a_o triumphant_a psalm_n of_o our_o saviour_n resurrection_n and_o ascension_n into_o heaven_n for_o david_n who_o be_v a_o prophet_n as_o a_o king_n and_o know_v himself_o in_o some_o thing_n to_o be_v a_o type_n of_o the_o messiah_n among_o thing_n relate_v to_o his_o kingdom_n use_v to_o mix_v and_o comprehend_v some_o belong_v to_o christ_n which_o be_v the_o chief_a scope_n of_o the_o psalm_n so_o jah_n jehovah_n god_n and_o lord_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v of_o the_o angel_n or_o christ_n for_o as_o a_o little_a before_o we_o observe_v the_o deliverance_n out_o of_o egypt_n lead_v through_o the_o wilderness_n and_o bring_v into_o the_o land_n of_o promise_n be_v a_o figure_n of_o the_o great_a salvation_n of_o god_n people_n and_o of_o the_o deliverance_n of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v the_o proper_a work_n commit_v unto_o the_o son_n of_o god_n the_o lord_n jesus_n as_o king_n head_z and_o preserver_n of_o it_o when_o david_n speak_v of_o ascend_v he_o act_v not_o the_o part_n of_o a_o historian_n but_o of_o a_o prophet_n and_o this_o be_v of_o a_o ascension_n join_v with_o a_o triumph_n and_o lead_v of_o captive_n which_o do_v not_o belong_v to_o that_o of_o sinai_n neither_o do_v we_o read_v any_o where_o that_o god_n ascend_v into_o heaven_n from_o sinai_n but_o christ_n have_v obtain_v victory_n over_o death_n the_o grave_a and_o all_o his_o and_o our_o enemy_n go_v up_o to_o heaven_n which_o can_v be_v say_v of_o the_o ark_n but_o the_o ascension_n here_o speak_v of_o as_o paul_n to_o the_o ephesian_n do_v interpret_v it_o relate_v to_o he_o who_o descend_v first_o into_o the_o low_a part_n of_o the_o earth_n that_o be_v to_o christ_n who_o ascend_v far_o above_o all_o heaven_n that_o he_o may_v fit_v all_o thing_n if_o we_o may_v take_v a_o apostle_n interpretation_n of_o a_o prophet_n and_o it_o be_v christ_n or_o the_o son_n of_o god_n voice_n that_o shake_v the_o earth_n or_o mount_n sinai_n as_o we_o may_v read_v it_o heb._n 12.26_o before_o i_o leave_v this_o matter_n to_o what_o i_o say_v upon_o another_o text_n which_o be_v much_o to_o our_o purpose_n about_o this_o angel_n concern_v jacob_n i_o shall_v far_o add_v how_o the_o same_o person_n that_o appear_v unto_o he_o be_v in_o the_o shape_n of_o a_o man_n there_o wrestle_v a_o man_n with_o he_o gen._n 32.24_o 2_o that_o same_o when_o jacob_n be_v about_o blessing_n joseph_n child_n 48.16_o gen._n 48.16_o he_o call_v a_o angel_n the_o 3d_o thing_n be_v that_o he_o be_v express_o say_v to_o be_v god_n lord_n of_o host_n by_o hosea_n for_o the_o prophet_n speak_v of_o jacob_n say_v he_o have_v power_n with_o god_n upon_o the_o occasion_n of_o his_o wrestle_n and_o add_v yea_o he_o have_v power_n over_o the_o angel_n and_o prevail_v he_o weep_v and_o make_v supplication_n unto_o he_o he_o find_v he_o in_o bethel_n and_o there_o he_o speak_v with_o we_o even_o the_o lord_n god_n of_o host_n the_o lord_n be_v his_o memorial_n hos_fw-la 12.3_o 4_o 5._o so_o hence_o it_o appear_v how_o the_o person_n who_o at_o bethel_n appear_v to_o he_o when_o he_o flee_v from_o the_o face_n of_o his_o brother_n esau_n gen._n 28.13_o compare_v with_o chap._n 35.1_o
must_v never_o attempt_v to_o pry_v into_o this_o be_v a_o mystery_n which_o most_o humble_o and_o with_o a_o awful_a reverence_n we_o ought_v to_o adore_v and_o believe_v without_o any_o far_a enquiry_n into_o it_o because_o god_n have_v reveal_v it_o it_o be_v so_o namely_o that_o the_o son_n not_o the_o father_n nor_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v make_v flesh_n in_o religion_n there_o be_v several_a other_o thing_n which_o we_o do_v simple_o believe_v though_o it_o be_v impossible_a for_o our_o reason_n to_o comprehend_v they_o as_o the_o infiniteness_n immensity_n and_o eternity_n of_o god_n whereof_o the_o former_a be_v every_o where_o within_o and_o without_o the_o great_a and_o least_o thing_n so_o be_v that_o union_n of_o both_o nature_n in_o one_o person_n incomprehensible_a thus_o that_o which_o be_v speak_v of_o the_o divine_a essence_n may_v be_v attribute_v to_o the_o three_o person_n but_o to_o be_v understand_v of_o thing_n which_o of_o themselves_o be_v competent_a to_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o creator_n almightiness_n eternity_n and_o suchlike_a attribute_n but_o not_o so_o in_o the_o thing_n which_o belong_v to_o the_o essence_n only_o upon_o the_o account_n of_o one_o person_n for_o such_o thing_n belong_v only_o to_o that_o person_n for_o who_o sake_n they_o be_v speak_v of_o the_o essence_n as_o the_o incarnation_n of_o the_o son_n the_o voice_n of_o the_o father_n from_o heaven_n and_o the_o appear_v of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n under_o the_o shape_n of_o a_o dove_n we_o know_v how_o the_o work_n ad_fw-la extra_fw-la or_o outward_a be_v undivided_a and_o common_a to_o the_o three_o person_n always_o except_v that_o wherein_o they_o destroy_v the_o proper_a attribute_n of_o the_o person_n thus_o the_o son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n not_o the_o father_n be_v send_v the_o son_n not_o the_o father_n nor_o holy_a ghost_n be_v make_v flesh_n though_o the_o father_n and_o holy_a ghost_n have_v a_o hand_n in_o the_o incarnation_n for_o the_o angel_n say_v 1.35_o luk._n 1.35_o the_o power_n of_o the_o high_a shall_v overshadow_v thou_o and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n shall_v come_v upon_o thou_o 21.3_o prov._n 9.1_o rev._n 21.3_o and_o wisdom_n whereby_o the_o son_n be_v represent_v have_v build_v her_o house_n otherwise_o call_v the_o tabernacle_n of_o god_n so_o then_o the_o work_n of_o the_o incarnation_n be_v common_a to_o the_o three_o person_n but_o in_o the_o effect_n be_v terminative_o only_a in_o the_o son_n when_o the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o the_o mystery_n of_o our_o salvation_n in_o the_o adorable_a and_o incomprehensible_a incarnation_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n or_o his_o take_a ●ur_n human_a nature_n he_o say_v 25.20.22_o 1_o pet._n 1.12_o exod._n 25.20.22_o which_o thing_n the_o angel_n desire_v to_o look_v into_o allude_v to_o the_o two_o cherubim_n on_o the_o mercy_n seat_n towards_o which_o their_o face_n be_v as_o desirous_a to_o see_v into_o it_o in_o the_o tabernacle_n be_v the_o ark_n and_o above_o upon_o the_o art_n be_v the_o mercy_n seat_n as_o the_o most_o holy_a part_n of_o he_o whole_a for_o there_o god_n meet_v with_o moses_n and_o from_o thence_o he_o commune_v with_o he_o all_o which_o be_v dispose_v according_a to_o god_n own_o appointment_n for_o the_o mercy_n seat_n be_v a_o type_n of_o jesus_n christ_n in_o who_o and_o by_o who_o alone_a god_n do_v neat_a and_o common_a with_o man_n in_o the_o way_n of_o mercy_n and_o as_o the_o ceremonial_a law_n be_v as_o a_o schoolmaster_n to_o bring_v we_o to_o christ_n as_o to_o he_o that_o be_v the_o end_n of_o the_o law_n so_o all_o figure_n and_o prophecy_n aim_v at_o he_o after_o god_n have_v send_v all_o his_o servant_n and_o he_o will_v have_v no_o more_o burnt-offering_n and_o sacrifice_n than_o he_o send_v his_o only_a son_n to_o offer_v up_o himself_o a_o sacrifice_n unto_o he_o for_o sin_n this_o most_o holy_a and_o bless_a son_n by_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o prophet_n david_n long_o before_o his_o come_n say_v lo_o i_o come_v to_o do_v thy_o will_n 9_o psal_n 40.6_o 7._o heb._n 10.7_o 9_o o_o god_n he_o know_v the_o will_n of_o god_n and_o declare_v he_o will_v come_v to_o do_v it_o the_o word_n contain_v a_o particular_a emphasis_n different_a from_o any_o thing_n of_o that_o nature_n express_v in_o scripture_n when_o the_o prophet_n foretell_v josiah_n birth_n 45._o 1_o kin._n 13_o 2._o isa_n 44._o &_o 45._o and_o cyrus_n empire_n they_o be_v not_o introduce_v as_o say_v any_o thing_n themselves_o only_o one_o be_v to_o be_v bear_v the_o other_o to_o be_v hold_v and_o support_v because_o at_o that_o time_n they_o be_v not_o but_o here_o the_o son_n of_o god_n speak_v as_o one_o who_o then_o be_v in_o be_v and_o as_o a_o person_n who_o delight_v to_o execute_v his_o father_n will_n as_o he_o effectual_o do_v both_o active_o and_o passive_o and_o this_o he_o declare_v when_o come_v 6.38_o joh._n 6.38_o i_o come_v down_o from_o heaven_n not_o to_o do_v my_o own_o will_n but_o the_o will_n of_o he_o that_o send_v i_o and_o when_o upon_o the_o approach_n of_o the_o hour_n wherein_o that_o will_n be_v to_o be_v 12.27_o joh._n 12.27_o his_o soul_n be_v trouble_v he_o say_v for_o this_o cause_n come_v i_o unto_o this_o hour_n and_o when_o the_o bitter_a cup_n which_o cause_v in_o he_o some_o horror_n be_v put_v into_o his_o hand_n 22.42_o luk._n 22.42_o he_o say_v not_o my_o will_n but_o thou_o be_v do_v let_v these_o word_n in_o the_o evangelist_n with_o those_o in_o the_o psalm_n be_v compare_v an●_n there_o will_v appear_v such_o a_o divine_a harmony_n as_o wi●_n convince_v they_o both_o come_v out_o of_o the_o same_o pers●●_n only_o with_o this_o difference_n that_o in_o the_o psalmis_fw-la see_v a_o steady_a resolution_n such_o as_o become_v a_o divine_a person_n and_o in_o the_o gospel_n something_o of_o human_a frailty_n the_o reason_n be_v because_o the_o first_o be_v express_v by_o a_o prophet_n inspire_v by_o his_o spirit_n and_o the_o last_o by_o himself_o in_o the_o day_n of_o his_o flesh_n however_o come_v be_v mean_v of_o a_o person_n who_o pre-existed_n before_o that_o come_n and_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o prophecy_n and_o the_o circumstance_n o●_n god_n have_v no_o more_o pleasure_n in_o sacrifice_n and_o burnt-offering_n and_o his_o say_n lo_o i_o come_v which_o precede_v his_o come_n do_v demonstrate_v in_o he_o a_o choice_n and_o resolution_n which_o be_v the_o act_n of_o a_o person_n as_o the_o quote_v place_n out_o of_o st._n peter_n do_v denote_v christ_n come_v into_o the_o world_n to_o be_v such_o a_o mystery_n as_o the_o angel_n so_o excellent_a and_o know_a creature_n desire_v to_o know_v and_o look_v into_o but_o i_o return_v to_o my_o answer_n to_o their_o objection_n these_o thing_n be_v serious_o consider_v will_v afford_v matter_n enough_o to_o answer_v and_o refute_v the_o cavil_n of_o the_o enemy_n to_o this_o truth_n before_o i_o proceed_v far_o in_o answer_v some_o more_o objection_n of_o they_o i_o think_v it_o will_v not_o be_v amiss_o for_o i_o because_o they_o make_v a_o scandalous_a exception_n against_o that_o common_a place_n of_o the_o apostle_n which_o prove_v the_o most_o holy_a trinity_n there_o be_v three_o that_o bear_v record_n in_o heaven_n the_o father_n the_o word_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o add_v something_o more_o to_o what_o in_o the_o beginning_n i_o say_v about_o it_o they_o say_v it_o be_v want_v in_o some_o greek_a copy_n and_o in_o the_o syriack_n but_o through_o the_o fraud_n of_o the_o arrian_n as_o say_v jerome_n and_o erasmus_n can._n praefat._n in_o epist_n can._n who_o socinian_n will_v seem_v to_o appeal_v unto_o confess_v it_o to_o be_v in_o the_o most_o ancient_a manuscript_n of_o britain_n spain_n and_o rhodes_n and_o it_o be_v clear_a out_o of_o the_o connexion_n of_o the_o text_n 6._o v._o 4_o 5_o 6._o that_o it_o can_v be_v take_v away_o without_o make_v a_o palpable_a breach_n and_o interruption_n of_o the_o sense_n for_o he_o have_v just_a before_o speak_v of_o god_n the_o father_n of_o christ_n and_o of_o the_o spirit_n and_o to_o agree_v with_o what_o he_o say_v v._o 8_o there_o be_v three_o that_o bear_v witness_n in_o earth_n there_o must_v also_o be_v three_o that_o bear_v record_n in_o heaven_n there_o must_v be_v witness_n in_o heaven_n as_o there_o be_v in_o earth_n the_o three_o in_o earth_n agree_v in_o one_o the_o three_o in_o heaven_n be_v one_o we_o read_v it_o quote_v by_o nic._n by_o ad_fw-la theoph._n lib._n 1._o &_o in_o disp_n contra_fw-la atrium_n in_o conc._n nic._n athanasius_n so_o do_v varimadum_fw-la do_v contra_fw-la varimadum_fw-la idacius_n so_o arrian_n so_o contra_fw-la arrian_n fulgentius_n also_o it_o be_v quote_v before_o the_o time_n of_o athanasius_n in_o the_o controversy_n against_o the_o arrian_n
by_o eccles_n by_o de_fw-fr unit_fw-la eccles_n cyprian_a and_o also_o by_o tertullian_n ignatius_n etc._n etc._n this_o text_n do_v so_o well_o agree_v with_o that_o of_o the_o evangelist_n to_o baptize_v all_o nation_n in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n which_o it_o do_v allude_v unto_o that_o none_o may_v doubt_v but_o it_o be_v suggest_v by_o the_o same_o spirit_n and_o the_o name_n word_n particular_a to_o st._n john_n do_v sufficient_o witness_v how_o those_o line_n together_o with_o the_o rest_n come_v out_o of_o his_o pen_n non_fw-la unus_fw-la sed_fw-la unum_fw-la say_v one_o of_o the_o forequote_v father_n not_o one_o person_n sed_fw-la unum_fw-la etc._n etc._n one_o nature_n not_o only_o the_o unity_n of_o testimony_n as_o they_o be_v three_o distinct_a witness_n not_o only_o the_o unity_n of_o consent_n and_o will_n but_o also_o of_o nature_n as_o i_o and_o the_o father_n be_v one_o 10.30_o joh_n 10.30_o which_o the_o jew_n understand_v very_o well_o for_o thereupon_o they_o accuse_v he_o of_o blasphemy_n and_o take_v up_o stone_n to_o have_v cast_v at_o he_o the_o reason_n they_o give_v for_o it_o be_v this_o because_o thou_o be_v a_o man_n 33._o v._o 33._o make_v thyself_o god_n in_o few_o word_n we_o can_v be_v baptize_v in_o the_o name_n of_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n except_o the_o name_n of_o these_o three_o equal_a in_o authority_n dignity_n and_o essence_n be_v call_v upon_o on_o our_o behalf_n and_o as_o i_o observe_v before_o it_o be_v unlawful_a to_o be_v baptize_v in_o the_o name_n of_o any_o man_n the_o israelite_n be_v baptize_v by_o the_o wor●●_n or_o ministry_n or_o as_o the_o syriack_n have_v it_o in_o the_o hand_n of_o moses_n but_o not_o in_o his_o name_n before_o we_o leave_v off_o these_o objection_n against_o the_o most_o adorable_a trinity_n for_o the_o better_a understanding_n of_o the_o matter_n i_o shall_v speak_v some_o few_o word_n more_o for_o indeed_o the_o point_n be_v of_o so_o high_a a_o concernment_n and_o afford_v such_o a_o plenty_n and_o variety_n of_o discourse_n that_o we_o can_v never_o say_v enough_o of_o what_o be_v to_o be_v know_v in_o the_o case_n though_o as_o we_o say_v they_o be_v the_o same_o in_o essence_n yet_o they_o differ_v first_o in_o personal_a name_n as_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n second_o in_o their_o order_n father_n first_o as_o the_o spring_n than_o son_n three_o holy_a ghost_n three_o in_o their_o manner_n of_o operation_n the_o father_n do_v act_n of_o himself_o the_o son_n from_o the_o father_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n from_o both_o 15.26_o gal._n 4.4_o john_n 14.26_o &_o 15.26_o so_o the_o son_n be_v send_v by_o the_o father_n the_o holy_a ghost_n from_o both_o father_n and_o son_n but_o we_o never_o read_v the_o father_n be_v send_v so_o there_o be_v a_o difference_n in_o the_o outward_a work_n for_o though_o they_o be_v common_a to_o the_o three_o person_n yet_o creation_n be_v proper_o attribute_v to_o the_o father_n redemption_n to_o the_o son_n and_o sanctification_n to_o the_o holy_a ghost_n thus_o these_o three_o person_n have_v every_o one_o their_o personal_a unity_n in_o number_n they_o be_v distinguish_v yet_o be_v but_o one_o god_n in_o number_n of_o essential_a and_o natural_a unity_n wherefore_o in_o god_n be_v not_o three_o being_n three_o infinite_n or_o three_o thing_n yet_o they_o object_n the_o name_n of_o trinity_n personality_n and_o essence_n be_v not_o hear_v of_o before_o the_o apostle_n time_n nor_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o trinity_n i_o answer_v to_o the_o first_o that_o though_o the_o name_n be_v not_o yet_o the_o thing_n be_v and_o word_n be_v to_o signify_v thing_n that_o there_o be_v one_o god_n the_o father_n the_o son_n and_o the_o holy_a spirit_n as_o it_o appear_v out_o of_o the_o place_n quote_v to_o prove_v the_o divinity_n of_o the_o son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n which_o here_o i_o need_v not_o to_o repeat_v and_o if_o the_o thing_n be_v true_a why_o shall_v man_n dispute_v about_o word_n which_o do_v not_o in_o the_o least_o prejudice_n the_o analogy_n of_o faith_n on_o the_o contrary_n do_v explain_v and_o confirm_v it_o as_o to_o the_o second_o i_o say_v that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o trinity_n be_v mention_v of_o old_a as_o i_o prove_v it_o already_o out_o of_o several_a place_n of_o scripture_n the_o question_n be_v not_o about_o the_o father_n but_o the_o son_n concern_v who_o be_v the_o clear_a testimony_n of_o psal_n 2_o who_o come_v as_o jehovah_n and_o god_n of_o israel_n for_o the_o prophet_n speak_v to_o israel_n when_o he_o call_v he_o your_o god_n be_v foretell_v behold_v 11._o isa_n 35_o 4_o 5._o mat._n 11.4_o 5._o psal_n 51.10_o 11._o your_o god_n will_v come_v with_o vengeance_n even_o god_n with_o a_o recompense_n he_o will_v come_v and_o save_v you_o which_o be_v apply_v unto_o christ_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n mention_n be_v make_v by_o david_n and_o in_o other_o place_n but_o that_o which_o under_o the_o old_a testament_n be_v under_o a_o veil_n be_v clear_o reveal_v under_o the_o new_a for_o the_o person_n be_v plain_o name_v and_o their_o number_n express_v as_o in_o the_o place_n already_o make_v use_n of_o not_o only_o in_o the_o baptism_n of_o our_o saviour_n but_o in_o his_o commission_n give_v his_o apostle_n to_o baptize_v etc._n etc._n which_o as_o i_o show_v be_v unlawful_a to_o be_v do_v in_o any_o man_n name_n as_o there_o be_v truth_n in_o jesus_n so_o this_o be_v the_o truth_n of_o his_o gospel_n which_o also_o have_v in_o conformity_n thereunto_o be_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o general_a orthodox_n council_n and_o of_o the_o doctor_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n however_o this_o must_v be_v say_v that_o though_o this_o mystery_n of_o the_o holy_a trinity_n be_v express_v in_o scripture_n yet_o it_o be_v such_o a_o one_o as_o exceed_v our_o understanding_n and_o capacity_n again_o they_o say_v in_o most_o place_n of_o scripture_n it_o be_v say_v there_o be_v but_o one_o god_n and_o that_o this_o god_n be_v the_o father_n of_o jesus_n christ_n i_o answer_v the_o name_n god_n when_o proper_o speak_v and_o of_o the_o true_a god_n be_v take_v either_o essential_o for_o divine_a nature_n or_o personalty_n for_o some_o of_o the_o person_n when_o take_v in_o the_o first_o sense_n it_o do_v not_o exclude_v but_o include_v the_o person_n only_o it_o be_v set_v down_o in_o opposition_n to_o idol_n and_o false_a god_n which_o by_o nature_n be_v not_o god_n the_o thing_n absolute_o speak_v of_o the_o oneness_n of_o god_n do_v not_o at_o all_o prejudice_n the_o person_n which_o be_v that_o only_a god_n hence_o it_o be_v that_o not_o only_o the_o father_n but_o also_o son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n be_v call_v god_n in_o this_o essential_a sense_n be_v take_v the_o place_n they_o quote_v out_o of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n as_o for_o instance_n 5.21_o mark_v 2.7_o luk._n 5.21_o that_o of_o mark_n and_o of_o luke_n which_o among_o other_o they_o make_v use_v of_o who_o can_v forgive_v sin_n but_o god_n only_o the_o word_n god_n belong_v to_o the_o essence_n yet_o that_o power_n do_v belong_v to_o the_o son_n as_o to_o the_o father_n for_o there_o christ_n assume_v it_o to_o himself_o which_o same_o power_n be_v also_o attribute_v unto_o the_o holy_a ghost_n receive_v you_o the_o holy_a ghost_n 22._o john_n 20.21_o 22._o whosoever_o sin_n you_o remit_v they_o be_v remit_v unto_o they_o when_o the_o word_n god_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v personal_o then_o there_o be_v a_o note_n of_o distinction_n join_v to_o know_v what_o person_n be_v speak_v of_o whether_o father_n son_n or_o holy_a ghost_n what_o we_o say_v of_o the_o word_n god_n the_o same_o we_o affirm_v of_o the_o name_n father_n which_o do_v not_o always_o signify_v the_o first_o person_n but_o also_o the_o nature_n and_o three_o person_n thus_o when_o god_n be_v say_v to_o be_v father_n of_o all_o and_o in_o the_o lord_n prayer_n we_o call_v he_o our_o father_n when_o we_o cry_v abba_n father_n etc._n etc._n in_o all_o text_n of_o that_o nature_n father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n be_v understand_v as_o to_o the_o particle_n beside_o i_o sometime_o use_v it_o except_v nothing_o within_o though_o every_o thing_n without_o the_o deity_n or_o that_o have_v not_o the_o divine_a nature_n but_o one_o of_o the_o argument_n which_o most_o of_o all_o they_o ground_n themselves_o upon_o be_v this_o 17.3_o joh._n 17.3_o and_o this_o be_v eternal_a life_n to_o know_v thou_o the_o only_a true_a god_n and_o who_o thou_o have_v send_v jesus_n christ_n they_o will_v have_v christ_n to_o be_v exclude_v from_o be_v the_o only_a true_a god_n which_o they_o restrain_v only_o to_o the_o father_n but_o herein_o they_o be_v much_o
mistake_v for_o the_o word_n alone_o or_o only_o which_o they_o lie_v the_o stress_n upon_o do_v not_o belong_v to_o the_o subject_a thou_o but_o to_o the_o predicate_a not_o to_o thou_o but_o to_o true_a god_n not_o to_o that_o which_o go_v before_o but_o to_o that_o which_o follow_v after_o it_o be_v not_o say_v to_o know_v only_o thou_o to_o be_v but_o know_v thou_o to_o be_v the_o only_a true_a god_n this_o we_o may_v look_v upon_o as_o one_o of_o their_o usual_a piece_n of_o sophistry_n our_o saviour_n make_v it_o appear_v that_o this_o be_v the_o true_a god_n who_o scripture_n mention_v namely_o the_o father_n who_o send_v and_o the_o son_n that_o be_v send_v for_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o the_o place_n we_o can_v have_v a_o better_a interpreter_n of_o than_o the_o evangelist_n himself_o 5.20_o 1_o john_n 5.20_o here_o the_o true_a god_n and_o eternal_a life_n be_v join_v in_o the_o same_o the_o same_o that_o be_v eternal_a life_n be_v also_o the_o true_a god_n only_o eternal_a life_n and_o only_o true_a god_n now_o christ_n be_v call_v true_a god_n and_o eternal_a life_n his_o son_n jesus_n christ_n 10.28_o john_n 10.28_o this_o be_v the_o true_a god_n and_o eternal_a life_n and_o if_o here_o we_o consider_v eternal_a life_n as_o the_o gift_n of_o the_o only_a true_a god_n do_v not_o scripture_n say_v in_o several_a place_n how_o eternal_a life_n be_v the_o gift_n of_o christ_n let_v of_o many_o this_o one_o serve_v for_o all_o i_o give_v unto_o they_o his_o sheep_n eternal_a life_n if_o the_o son_n be_v not_o that_o only_a true_a god_n why_o shall_v he_o join_v himself_o with_o the_o father_n and_o who_o thou_o have_v send_v jesus_n christ_n to_o know_v thou_o and_o who_o thou_o have_v send_v jesus_n christ_n to_o be_v the_o only_a true_a god_n this_o be_v the_o true_a order_n of_o the_o word_n whereof_o the_o true_a sense_n be_v resolve_v into_o this_o the_o father_n be_v the_o only_a true_a god_n and_o not_o the_o only_a or_o father_n alone_o be_v the_o true_a god_n the_o word_n in_o the_o original_n be_v not_o thus_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o know_v thou_o only_o the_o true_a god_n but_o thus_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o know_v thou_o the_o only_a true_a god_n where_o any_o one_o may_v see_v how_o the_o particle_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d do_v not_o belong_v to_o the_o pronoun_n thou_o but_o to_o the_o true_a god_n and_o though_o the_o particle_n be_v remove_v yet_o thereby_o christ_n will_v not_o be_v exclude_v for_o the_o true_a god_n be_v say_v as_o i_o already_o observe_v not_o in_o opposition_n to_o christ_n but_o to_o false_a god_n according_a to_o the_o stile_n of_o scripture_n the_o word_n alone_o or_o only_o do_v not_o always_o give_v a_o general_a exclusion_n as_o we_o see_v it_o under_o the_o old_a testament_n when_o jacob_n say_v unto_o reuben_n my_o son_n shall_v not_o go_v down_o with_o you_o 42.38_o gen._n 42.38_o for_o his_o brother_n be_v dead_a and_o he_o be_v leave_v alone_o he_o mean_v by_o the_o mother_n side_n and_o not_o by_o the_o father_n for_o all_o the_o rest_n be_v his_o brethren_n and_o in_o the_o new_a in_o the_o transfiguration_n 9.36_o luk._n 9.36_o it_o be_v say_v and_o when_o the_o voice_n be_v past_o jesus_n be_v leave_v alone_o certain_o peter_n james_n and_o john_n be_v not_o exclude_v for_o they_o be_v with_o he_o but_o moses_n and_o elias_n in_o the_o same_o sense_n be_v take_v martha_n word_n to_o our_o saviour_n lord_n do_v thou_o not_o care_n that_o my_o sister_n have_v leave_v i_o to_o serve_v alone_o 10.40_o luk._n 10.40_o only_o mean_v of_o mary_n and_o not_o of_o the_o servant_n of_o the_o house_n and_o to_o the_o matter_n now_o in_o hand_n let_v it_o be_v know_v that_o scripture_n never_o say_v the_o father_n only_o be_v the_o true_a god_n though_o it_o say_v the_o father_n be_v the_o only_a true_a god_n so_o be_v the_o son_n and_o so_o be_v the_o holy_a ghost_n here_o christ_n will_v not_o deny_v himself_o the_o honour_n of_o be_v the_o true_a god_n which_o in_o other_o place_n he_o attribute_n unto_o himself_o for_o the_o two_o word_n alone_a and_o true_a go_v with_o god_n not_o with_o thou_o and_o his_o meaning_n be_v how_o true_a eternal_a life_n consist_v in_o this_o 8.6_o gal._n 4.8_o 1_o thes_n 1.9_o 1_o cor._n 8.6_o that_o man_n may_v detest_v idol_n and_o false_a god_n and_o be_v convert_v to_o thou_o o_o father_n who_o be_v the_o only_a true_a god_n by_o nature_n which_o idol_n be_v not_o thus_o when_o the_o name_n one_o lord_n be_v give_v the_o son_n it_o be_v not_o to_o exclude_v the_o father_n who_o also_o be_v lord_n and_o the_o name_n spirit_n give_v the_o three_o person_n do_v not_o exclude_v father_n or_o son_n who_o also_o be_v spirit_n so_o this_o text_n do_v admit_v of_o the_o same_o construction_n as_o this_o when_o paul_n say_v 9.6_o 1_o cor._n 9.6_o i_o only_o and_o barnabas_n have_v we_o not_o power_n to_o forbear_v work_v where_o it_o be_v plain_a that_o barnabas_n far_o from_o be_v exclude_v be_v join_v and_o include_v in_o the_o same_o power_n with_o paul_n and_o here_o the_o thing_n require_v it_o see_v eternal_a life_n be_v make_v to_o consist_v in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o christ_n as_o of_o the_o father_n wherefore_o both_o be_v equal_o say_v to_o be_v the_o true_a god_n those_o man_n who_o pretend_v to_o know_v better_a than_o god_n himself_o what_o become_v his_o glory_n be_v very_o apt_a to_o lay_v hold_n upon_o any_o thing_n like_a to_o favour_v their_o notion_n wherefore_o because_o it_o be_v say_v god_n have_v appoint_v his_o son_n heir_n of_o all_o thing_n 5.22_o heb._n 1.2_o john_n 5.22_o and_o have_v commit_v all_o judgement_n unto_o he_o with_o other_o thing_n to_o the_o same_o purpose_n they_o with_o the_o jew_n do_v therewith_o entangle_v themselves_o and_o form_v this_o argument_n it_o can_v consist_v with_o the_o majesty_n of_o the_o god_n of_o israel_n of_o the_o most_o high_a god_n to_o be_v appoint_v heir_n by_o any_o one_o but_o god_n have_v appoint_v his_o son_n heir_n of_o all_o thing_n therefore_o his_o son_n be_v not_o the_o god_n of_o israel_n nor_o the_o most_o high_a god_n in_o answer_n to_o this_o objection_n i_o say_v first_o that_o the_o person_n of_o the_o god_n of_o israel_n etc._n etc._n be_v not_o the_o person_n of_o his_o father_n but_o the_o same_o dignity_n nature_n and_o authority_n he_o have_v as_o already_o demonstrate_v common_a with_o the_o father_n he_o be_v not_o make_v heir_n of_o all_o thing_n in_o reference_n to_o his_o nature_n for_o he_o be_v such_o of_o himself_o by_o his_o own_o right_a and_o inheritance_n not_o by_o favour_n but_o in_o relation_n to_o his_o office_n of_o mediator_n in_o which_o sense_n he_o be_v not_o only_a god_n but_o god_n and_o man_n and_o upon_o this_o account_n be_v all_o judgement_n commit_v unto_o he_o by_o the_o father_n but_o otherwise_o he_o be_v the_o god_n of_o israel_n and_o the_o most_o high_a but_o second_o this_o argument_n contain_v two_o branch_n which_o before_o i_o have_v speak_v about_o yet_o to_o what_o have_v already_o be_v say_v this_o i_o shall_v add_v to_o the_o first_o part_n that_o the_o son_n of_o god_n the_o lord_n jesus_n above_o 3400_o year_n before_o his_o be_v manifest_v in_o the_o flesh_n 5.31_o numb_a 24.17_o micah_n 5.2_o luk._n 2.32_o john_n 1.49_o act_n 5.31_o be_v call_v the_o star_n of_o jacob_n and_o the_o sceptre_n of_o israel_n and_o long_o after_o the_o ruler_n in_o israel_n after_o his_o birth_n the_o glory_n of_o israel_n and_o after_o his_o baptism_n the_o king_n of_o israel_n which_o in_o that_o sense_n and_o place_n be_v as_o good_a as_o god_n of_o israel_n as_o indeed_o in_o the_o same_o verse_n he_o be_v call_v the_o son_n of_o god_n that_o be_v of_o the_o god_n of_o israel_n a_o prince_n and_o a_o saviour_n for_o to_o give_v repentance_n to_o israel_n and_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n as_o to_o the_o other_o part_n that_o he_o be_v not_o the_o most_o high_a god_n we_o must_v in_o the_o first_o place_n take_v notice_n how_o they_o set_v up_o a_o high_a god_n that_o be_v christ_n and_o a_o most_o high_a god_n the_o father_n which_o be_v by_o such_o a_o comparative_a difference_n to_o make_v two_o god_n and_o they_o will_v have_v the_o son_n of_o the_o high_a not_o to_o be_v high_a himself_o as_o to_o essence_n and_o power_n the_o word_n most_o high_a or_o high_a be_v a_o hebraism_n for_o in_o that_o language_n god_n be_v call_v helion_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v supreme_a whence_o the_o greek_n borrow_v the_o name_n they_o call_v the_o sun_n by_o because_o the_o chief_a of_o all_o star_n and_o planet_n
brightness_n of_o the_o father_n glory_n to_o show_v that_o as_o from_o a_o lightful_a body_n proceed_v light_a so_o the_o son_n as_o natural_o come_v from_o the_o father_n and_o it_o be_v one_o thing_n to_o be_v call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o image_n of_o god_n 1.3_o col._n 1.15_o heb._n 1.3_o and_o another_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o express_a image_n of_o the_o father_n but_o christ_n be_v call_v both_o he_o who_o be_v call_v the_o image_n of_o god_n be_v thereby_o distinguish_v from_o god_n but_o he_o which_o be_v call_v the_o character_n of_o the_o father_n be_v distinguish_v from_o the_o father_n not_o from_o god_n wherefore_o we_o say_v christ_n as_o mediator_n may_v be_v and_o be_v call_v the_o image_n of_o god_n but_o this_o come_v short_a of_o what_o be_v intend_v to_o express_v the_o eternal_a generation_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n though_o our_o adversary_n will_v have_v that_o filiation_n to_o be_v ground_v upon_o his_o mediatorship_n these_o few_o thing_n which_o may_v have_v a_o place_n in_o our_o discourse_n be_v premise_v i_o now_o direct_o answer_v the_o objection_n to_o be_v beget_v be_v to_o be_v understand_v as_o become_v god_n to_o be_v beget_v in_o god_n do_v not_o imply_v to_o have_v a_o beginning_n or_o to_o be_v make_v in_o time_n second_o they_o say_v divine_a nature_n admit_v of_o no_o rent_v or_o division_n wherefore_o nothing_o do_v proceed_v that_o be_v different_a in_o number_n from_o it_o i_o answer_v there_o be_v no_o comparison_n between_o the_o finite_a and_o infinite_a essence_n for_o this_o last_o be_v communicate_v to_o the_o person_n without_o multiplication_n separation_n or_o division_n three_o they_o go_v on_o that_o which_o be_v beget_v have_v a_o beginning_n i_o answer_v it_o be_v true_a in_o the_o creature_n but_o not_o in_o god_n four_o nothing_o say_v they_o be_v want_v in_o the_o father_n so_o it_o be_v superfluous_a to_o give_v he_o a_o son_n i_o answer_v the_o father_n be_v perfect_a therefore_o he_o have_v a_o son_n god_n fecundity_n make_v the_o person_n but_o borrow_v nothing_o from_o without_o 5th_o whatsoever_o come_v from_o unity_n to_o plurality_n can_v be_v perfect_a except_o the_o substance_n be_v multiply_v i_o answer_v god_n do_v not_o come_v nor_o go_v with_o god_n there_o be_v no_o terminus_fw-la a_o quo_fw-la not_o ad_fw-la quem_fw-la no_o place_n from_o which_o and_o to_o which_o but_o god_n be_v always_o god_n be_v not_o divide_v but_o beget_v indivisible_o six_o if_o the_o son_n be_v from_o the_o father_n it_o follow_v that_o all_o the_o father_n have_v be_v divide_v because_o it_o pass_v into_o the_o son_n so_o the_o father_n have_v give_v the_o son_n part_n of_o himself_o and_o so_o the_o son_n have_v deprive_v the_o father_n of_o something_o the_o answer_n be_v the_o son_n be_v not_o asunder_o from_o the_o father_n for_o the_o essence_n be_v the_o same_o there_o be_v no_o rent_v the_o father_n with_o give_v lose_v nothing_o but_o retain_v all_o the_o nature_n be_v whole_a in_o the_o father_n and_o whole_a in_o the_o son_n as_o one_o candle_n light_v another_o without_o any_o dimunition_n of_o its_o own_o light_n seven_o they_o say_v a_o man_n have_v no_o son_n before_o he_o have_v beget_v i_o answer_v nor_o god_n neither_o but_o this_o i_o must_v say_v it_o be_v a_o gross_a mistake_n to_o draw_v consequence_n from_o human_a thing_n to_o divine_a which_o be_v to_o measure_n god_n by_o man_n god_n always_o beget_v as_o the_o sun_n do_v produce_v its_o brightness_n eight_o if_o god_n beget_v it_o be_v either_o according_a to_o his_o nature_n or_o to_o his_o will_n not_o the_o first_o for_o than_o he_o will_v beget_v without_o consideration_n if_o according_a to_o his_o will_n than_o the_o father_n will_n be_v before_o the_o generation_n of_o the_o son_n i_o answer_v he_o beget_v according_a to_o his_o nature_n and_o that_o free_o 9th_o if_o the_o son_n be_v bear_v he_o have_v a_o beginning_n so_o be_v not_o from_o eternity_n i_o answer_v the_o father_n be_v eternal_a the_o son_n eternal_a and_o the_o generation_n eternal_a in_o thing_n create_v to_o beget_v be_v indeed_o to_o produce_v that_o which_o be_v not_o but_o in_o divine_a and_o uncreated_a it_o be_v otherwise_o 10th_o a_o spiritual_a nature_n do_v not_o beget_v we_o say_v a_o spirit_n create_v do_v not_o but_o the_o creator_n exceed_v the_o reason_n of_o the_o spiritual_a creature_n 11th_o if_o the_o father_n have_v beget_v the_o word_n either_o he_o have_v beget_v himself_o or_o another_o but_o neither_o of_o these_o therefore_o he_o have_v not_o beget_v himself_o he_o have_v not_o beget_v as_o grant_v nor_o another_o neither_o because_o there_o be_v no_o other_o god_n and_o so_o not_o beget_v at_o all_o i_o answer_v the_o word_n he_o have_v beget_v alium_fw-la non_fw-la aliud_fw-la another_o person_n but_o not_o another_o thing_n he_o have_v beget_v another_o who_o be_v god_n but_o not_o another_o god_n 12_o if_o god_n have_v beget_v the_o word_n either_o the_o whole_a divine_a essence_n have_v beget_v or_o only_o the_o father_n person_n if_o the_o essence_n than_o it_o have_v beget_v himself_o or_o another_o both_o which_o be_v absurd_a if_o the_o father_n person_n have_v beget_v either_o he_o be_v the_o only_a true_a god_n or_o else_o the_o word_n be_v not_o that_o son_n of_o the_o only_a true_a god_n wherefore_o the_o father_n have_v not_o beget_v the_o son_n from_o eternity_n we_o answer_v the_o father_n have_v of_o himself_o beget_v from_o eternity_n there_o be_v no_o necessity_n for_o the_o father_n only_o to_o be_v the_o true_a god_n it_o be_v enough_o he_o be_v the_o only_a true_a god_n therefore_o the_o son_n be_v the_o son_n of_o the_o only_a true_a god_n not_o of_o two_o person_n but_o of_o the_o father_n these_o objection_n which_o i_o have_v set_v down_o in_o short_a and_o answer_v as_o brief_o i_o look_v not_o upon_o as_o material_a because_o not_o take_v out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n the_o only_a judge_n of_o those_o controversy_n but_o herein_o they_o show_v how_o they_o affect_v sophistry_n to_o impose_v upon_o some_o sort_n of_o people_n but_o however_o some_o advantage_n we_o get_v by_o it_o for_o out_o of_o all_o these_o it_o appear_v how_o this_o true_a heavenly_a doctrine_n be_v not_o contrary_a to_o the_o principle_n of_o reason_n they_o have_v three_o or_o four_o cavil_n or_o question_n more_o which_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n we_o shall_v answer_v in_o few_o word_n first_o whether_o the_o father_n beget_v the_o son_n when_o he_o be_v already_o a_o son_n or_o before_o he_o be_v the_o son_n i_o answer_v the_o father_n be_v eternal_a the_o son_n eternal_a and_o beget_v from_o all_o eternity_n which_o have_v no_o part_n the_o father_n can_v no_o more_o be_v without_o the_o son_n than_o the_o sun_n without_o light_n or_o light_n without_o brightness_n their_o second_o questie_n on_o be_v whether_o the_o father_n after_o the_o generation_n of_o the_o son_n have_v beget_v any_o other_o because_o he_o be_v call_v the_o only_o beget_v if_o he_o have_v beget_v none_o other_o than_o he_o have_v lose_v the_o power_n of_o beget_v but_o i_o answer_v that_o generation_n be_v without_o time_n always_o perfect_a not_o successive_a without_o beginning_n or_o end_n the_o 3d_o be_v the_o father_n have_v beget_v either_o unwilling_a or_o willing_a if_o unwilling_a than_o he_o have_v suffer_v something_o which_o he_o will_v not_o if_o willing_a than_o his_o will_n be_v before_o the_o generation_n of_o the_o son_n i_o say_v part_n of_o this_o argument_n be_v answer_v a_o little_a before_o whereunto_o i_o shall_v add_v the_o will_n of_o god_n be_v indeed_o before_o all_o creature_n for_o he_o have_v do_v whatsoever_o he_o please_v 115.3_o psal_n 115.3_o but_o it_o be_v not_o so_o of_o the_o son_n for_o of_o he_o we_o read_v in_o scripture_n he_o be_v and_o be_v with_o the_o father_n so_o the_o son_n be_v no_o creature_n neither_o be_v he_o make_v by_o the_o will_n as_o creature_n be_v he_o be_v bear_v of_o the_o father_n and_o be_v coeternal_a with_o the_o person_n of_o the_o father_n the_o father_n will_n be_v in_o he_o for_o in_o he_o he_o will_v and_o by_o he_o he_o do_v all_o thing_n in_o those_o thing_n which_o proceed_v from_o nature_n there_o be_v no_o fore-counsel_n or_o predeliberation_n yet_o the_o father_n have_v not_o beget_v be_v unwilling_a for_o he_o beget_v with_o a_o will_n not_o antecedent_n but_o concomitant_a thus_o the_o father_n person_n be_v not_o because_o he_o be_v willing_a to_o be_v but_o because_o he_o be_v and_o will_v not_o himself_o not_o to_o be_v so_o the_o son_n be_v not_o bear_v against_o the_o father_n will_n neither_o do_v the_o father_n will_v go_v before_o his_o generation_n a_o
four_o presumptuous_a and_o unbecoming_a this_o adorable_a mystery_n vain_a and_o sophistical_a cavil_v of_o they_o be_v this_o do_v the_o father_n cease_v to_o beget_v if_o so_o that_o discontinuation_n have_v the_o beginning_n of_o the_o son_n the_o answer_n be_v this_o the_o substance_n and_o generation_n of_o god_n be_v without_o and_o above_o time_n and_o divine_a nature_n be_v not_o deprive_v of_o a_o beget_n faculty_n because_o it_o be_v without_o time_n it_o be_v a_o impiety_n to_o say_v the_o father_n discontinue_v for_o then_o thereby_o will_v be_v introduce_v three_o part_n and_o space_n before_o now_o and_o after_o it_o be_v a_o change_n which_o god_n be_v uncapable_a of_o he_o be_v above_o those_o thing_n which_o import_v a_o duration_n fire_n produce_v heat_n yet_o be_v not_o heat_v by_o that_o heat_n it_o shall_v never_o cease_v to_o heat_n and_o the_o heat_n be_v ever_o perfect_a but_o these_o comparison_n out_o of_o natural_a thing_n be_v very_o defective_a to_o represent_v those_o high_a and_o incomprehensible_a mystery_n out_o of_o these_o i_o leave_v the_o reader_n to_o consider_v the_o manner_n of_o spirit_n which_o that_o people_n be_v act_v by_o how_o familiar_a how_o bold_a how_o saucy_a they_o will_v be_v with_o god_n these_o holy_a thing_n lay_v before_o they_o as_o pearl_n before_o swine_n they_o speak_v of_o and_o handle_v they_o as_o they_o will_v in_o school_n the_o mean_a subject_n of_o all_o only_o to_o try_v their_o wit_n which_o therein_o be_v very_o profane_a and_o to_o make_v a_o show_n of_o their_o part_n when_o man_n that_o have_v a_o true_a sense_n of_o piety_n instead_o of_o go_v about_o to_o play_v with_o and_o ridicule_n they_o will_v ever_o think_v and_o speak_v of_o they_o with_o a_o religious_a fear_n and_o awful_a reverence_n there_o be_v a_o danger_n for_o those_o who_o dare_v to_o approach_v to_o god_n with_o a_o strange_a fire_n only_o to_o think_v on_o it_o shall_v make_v man_n fear_v and_o tremble_v however_o let_v they_o wander_v and_o blaspheme_v never_o so_o much_o concern_v that_o eternal_a generation_n the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o the_o thing_n be_v scripture_n have_v reveal_v it_o but_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o manner_n how_o it_o have_v not_o neither_o can_v we_o comprehend_v or_o express_v it_o however_o it_o have_v declare_v as_o much_o as_o be_v convenient_a and_o necessary_a for_o we_o to_o know_v solomon_n who_o glorious_a kingdom_n be_v a_o figure_n of_o that_o of_o christ_n and_o his_o renown_a wisdom_n be_v a_o type_n and_o a_o shadow_n of_o that_o of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n who_o allude_v to_o it_o when_o he_o say_v that_o the_o queen_n of_o the_o south_n come_v to_o hear_v the_o wisdom_n of_o solomon_n 3_o matth._n 12.22_o prov._n 3_o and_o behold_v a_o great_a than_o solomon_n be_v here_o that_o king_n i_o lay_v in_o that_o chapter_n already_o mention_v more_o than_o once_o have_v under_o the_o name_n of_o wisdom_n make_v a_o notable_a mention_n of_o christ_n the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o father_n the_o wisdom_n he_o therein_o speak_v of_o be_v not_o a_o attribute_n of_o god_n or_o a_o quality_n of_o wisdom_n infuse_v into_o and_o inherent_a in_o man_n but_o be_v a_o person_n self-subsisting_a for_o he_o be_v say_v to_o cry_v to_o call_v and_o invite_v man_n to_o come_v which_o action_n be_v proper_a for_o person_n and_o not_o for_o thing_n and_o to_o this_o place_n of_o solomon_n do_v john_n regard_n and_o ●llude_v when_o he_o say_v in_o the_o beginning_n be_v the_o word_n the_o mean_v of_o which_o word_n beginning_n be_v by_o that_o king_n at_o large_a explain_v in_o that_o place_n and_o when_o the_o question_n be_v put_v who_o christ_n be_v peter_n in_o his_o confession_n say_v not_o moses_n nor_o elias_n nor_o none_o of_o the_o prophet_n nor_o john_n baptist_n the_o great_a among_o they_o that_o be_v bear_v of_o woman_n but_o the_o son_n of_o the_o live_a god_n by_o a_o eternal_a generation_n whereunto_o belong_v what_o our_o saviour_n say_v of_o himself_o as_o the_o father_n have_v life_n in_o himself_o so_o have_v he_o give_v to_o the_o son_n to_o have_v life_n in_o himself_o 5.26_o john_n 5.26_o here_o as_o the_o father_n have_v life_n in_o himself_o so_o the_o son_n have_v it_o in_o the_o same_o manner_n that_o be_v in_o himself_o that_o he_o may_v proper_o be_v as_o the_o father_n 6.57_o ch._n 6.57_o the_o live_a father_n have_v send_v i_o and_o i_o live_v by_o the_o father_n socinian_n will_v have_v he_o to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n in_o their_o sense_n after_o his_o resurrection_n but_o after_o it_o he_o can_v be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n no_o more_o than_o david_n be_v more_o the_o son_n of_o jesse_n after_o he_o come_v to_o be_v king_n but_o christ_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n he_o by_o his_o resurrection_n declare_v his_o deity_n which_o he_o have_v before_o for_o as_o st._n paul_n say_v be_v declare_v to_o be_v not_o make_v the_o son_n of_o god_n by_o the_o resurrection_n from_o the_o dead_a they_o continue_v sophistical_o to_o argue_v thus_o divine_a essence_n be_v the_o father_n divine_a essence_n be_v the_o son_n therefore_o the_o son_n be_v the_o father_n after_o the_o fame_n manner_n they_o say_v the_o father_n be_v the_o true_a god_n but_o the_o son_n be_v not_o the_o father_n wherefore_o the_o son_n be_v not_o the_o true_a god_n and_o again_o the_o true_a god_n be_v the_o father_n of_o christ_n but_o the_o three_o person_n be_v not_o the_o father_n of_o christ_n therefore_o the_o three_o person_n be_v not_o the_o true_a god_n but_o these_o and_o the_o like_a must_v not_o be_v reckon_v among_o the_o expositorious_a and_o categorical_a syllogism_n because_o these_o term_n divine_a essence_n and_o true_a god_n be_v not_o incommunicable_a but_o common_a to_o the_o three_o person_n consequent_o they_o conclude_v no_o more_o than_o do_v particular_a affirmative_n for_o in_o a_o true_a syllogism_n according_a to_o the_o rule_n the_o major_a proposition_n be_v not_o to_o be_v particular_a nor_o equivalent_a to_o it_o for_o from_o such_o a_o proposition_n when_o any_o thing_n communicable_a to_o more_o be_v the_o subject_n of_o it_o and_o be_v restrain_v unto_o one_o particular_a out_o of_o it_o nothing_o can_v be_v conclude_v and_o this_o proposition_n be_v make_v particular_a the_o term_n of_o the_o subject_a or_o predicate_v be_v suppose_v to_o be_v reciprocal_a as_o if_o god_n and_o the_o father_n be_v the_o same_o which_o be_v false_a we_o grant_v the_o father_n to_o be_v the_o only_a true_a god_n so_o we_o say_v of_o the_o son_n but_o thence_o it_o do_v not_o follow_v that_o the_o son_n be_v the_o father_n for_o in_o say_v the_o father_n be_v the_o true_a god_n we_o do_v not_o relate_v to_o his_o paternity_n in_o respect_n to_o his_o son_n but_o to_o his_o be_v and_o nature_n as_o the_o scripture_n never_o say_v that_o the_o father_n only_o be_v the_o true_a god_n so_o we_o do_v not_o say_v that_o he_o that_o be_v the_o true_a god_n be_v the_o father_n only_o but_o to_o affirm_v that_o because_o each_o person_n be_v god_n therefore_o one_o person_n must_v be_v another_o be_v just_a without_o give_v any_o reason_n at_o all_o to_o disbelieve_v what_o god_n have_v declare_v the_o father_n say_v they_o be_v the_o only_a true_a god_n but_o the_o particle_n alone_o or_o only_o be_v restrictive_a of_o the_o predicate_v not_o of_o the_o subject_a for_o son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n be_v the_o same_o god_n the_o person_n be_v not_o formal_o person_n by_o the_o essence_n but_o by_o the_o manner_n of_o have_v that_o essence_n and_o thus_o there_o be_v three_o person_n of_o the_o same_o essence_n as_o to_o the_o generation_n we_o do_v not_o say_v that_o the_o father_n have_v sometime_o beget_v and_o sometime_o not_o nor_o that_o the_o generative_a faculty_n be_v a_o attribute_n of_o that_o nature_n but_o a_o personal_a propriety_n of_o the_o first_o person_n who_o in_o a_o peculiar_a manner_n have_v the_o essence_n wherefore_o it_o be_v no_o wonder_n if_o the_o other_o person_n have_v it_o not_o but_o we_o must_v proceed_v upon_o other_o objection_n of_o they_o they_o say_v every_o where_o scripture_n distinguish_v father_n and_o son_n one_o from_o another_o and_o never_o confound_v they_o together_o for_o it_o teach_v that_o there_o be_v but_o one_o god_n the_o father_n of_o who_o be_v all_o thing_n and_o we_o in_o he_o and_o one_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n by_o who_o be_v all_o thing_n and_o we_o by_o he_o and_o one_o holy_a ghost_n by_o who_o we_o cry_v abba_n father_n they_o be_v distinguish_v by_o the_o manifestation_n of_o the_o trinity_n in_o the_o lord_n baptism_n and_o in_o the_o form_n of_o baptism_n etc._n etc._n we_o answer_v they_o be_v name_n relative_n which_o
to_o the_o father_n i_o answer_v the_o name_n of_o god_n be_v take_v either_o personal_o namely_o as_o he_o beget_v and_o as_o he_o be_v beget_v and_o thus_o the_o son_n be_v distinguish_v from_o the_o father_n and_o upon_o this_o account_n the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o they_o separately_z christ_n be_v distinguish_v from_o god_n both_o in_o person_n and_o office_n not_o in_o the_o godhead_n or_o essence_n or_o else_o the_o name_n be_v absolute_o simple_o 14.1_o rom._n 8.31_o 32._o 1_o tim._n 1.1_o 1_o john_n 5.20_o joh._n 14.1_o and_o essential_o take_v when_o the_o question_n be_v about_o the_o godhead_n then_o as_o to_o the_o deity_n the_o son_n be_v not_o distinguish_v from_o the_o father_n as_o when_o christ_n say_v there_o be_v none_o good_a but_o god_n he_o do_v not_o exclude_v himself_o from_o be_v good_a it_o be_v as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v unto_o the_o man_n if_o thou_o believe_v i_o to_o be_v good_a for_o so_o thou_o call_v i_o thou_o must_v also_o believe_v i_o to_o be_v god_n for_o none_o be_v good_a but_o god_n and_o this_o be_v to_o have_v the_o man_n to_o look_v upon_o he_o to_o be_v god_n again_o when_o our_o saviour_n say_v unto_o god_n all_o thing_n be_v possible_a and_o that_o god_n be_v able_a out_o of_o stone_n to_o rise_v child_n unto_o abraham_n when_o the_o apostle_n in_o their_o salutation_n name_n first_o god_n and_o our_o father_n and_o then_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n it_o be_v no_o good_a consequence_n to_o say_v that_o the_o son_n be_v not_o of_o the_o same_o nature_n with_o the_o father_n for_o the_o name_n of_o god_n be_v therein_o attribute_v unto_o the_o father_n as_o the_o spring_n and_o first_o in_o order_n of_o the_o deity_n than_o the_o son_n be_v propose_v as_o mediator_n to_o lead_v we_o unto_o god_n for_o we_o be_v lead_v by_o christ_n unto_o the_o father_n to_o worship_n and_o adore_v he_o together_o with_o the_o father_n for_o he_o say_v you_o believe_v in_o god_n believe_v also_o in_o i_o thereby_o show_v we_o ought_v to_o render_v unto_o he_o the_o same_o thing_n we_o render_v to_o the_o father_n wherefore_o in_o several_a place_n we_o read_v how_o when_o the_o name_n father_n be_v add_v yet_o that_o of_o god_n be_v immediate_o put_v before_o when_o general_o something_o be_v teach_v which_o belong_v to_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n then_o have_v name_v the_o father_n the_o mediator_n be_v mention_v to_o breed_v in_o we_o hope_n and_o comfort_n thus_o the_o same_o apostle_n oppose_v one_o god_n to_o idol_n where_o christ_n be_v not_o exclude_v for_o immediate_o in_o the_o same_o verse_n he_o declare_v who_o that_o one_o god_n be_v namely_o the_o father_n of_o who_o be_v all_o thing_n and_o we_o in_o he_o and_o one_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n by_o who_o be_v all_o thing_n 6._o 1_o cor._n 8.6_o ephes_n 4.5_o 6._o and_o we_o by_o he_o thus_o in_o another_o place_n he_o say_v there_o be_v one_o god_n as_o there_o be_v one_o baptism_n christ_n in_o who_o name_n we_o be_v baptize_v be_v not_o exclude_v from_o that_o oneness_n of_o godhead_n 14.6_o joh._n 14.6_o and_o because_o he_o will_v come_v to_o the_o mediator_n he_o very_o fit_o name_v the_o father_n to_o who_o as_o the_o head_n of_o the_o deity_n there_o be_v no_o approach_n without_o the_o mediator_n so_o by_o the_o name_n father_n be_v represent_v god_n essential_o offend_v by_o mankind_n and_o by_o the_o son_n and_o christ_n that_o person_n of_o the_o adorable_a trinity_n who_o have_v undertake_v to_o make_v our_o peace_n and_o reconcile_v we_o unto_o god_n he_o be_v the_o way_n the_o truth_n and_o the_o life_n and_o none_o can_v come_v to_o the_o father_n but_o by_o he_o so_o when_o we_o read_v the_o word_n god_n we_o must_v not_o separate_v the_o father_n nor_o the_o son_n because_o the_o divinity_n of_o the_o father_n and_o of_o the_o son_n be_v but_o one_o and_o the_o same_o moreover_o they_o object_v the_o father_n be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d god_n of_o himself_o have_v all_o of_o himself_o and_o act_n of_o himself_o but_o the_o son_n be_v not_o god_n of_o himself_o he_o be_v from_o the_o father_n himself_z he_o say_v he_o come_v from_o the_o father_n and_o the_o father_n send_v he_o to_o this_o i_o answer_v they_o go_z upou_fw-mi a_o wrong_a principle_n for_o they_o will_v have_v this_o to_o be_v of_o one self_o or_o of_o another_o to_o import_v a_o different_a essence_n or_o nature_n for_o even_o in_o create_a thing_n that_o which_o be_v beget_v be_v ever_o of_o the_o same_o nature_n with_o that_o which_o have_v beget_v but_o by_o reason_n of_o imperfection_n these_o be_v one_o only_o in_o species_n but_o god_n the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n may_v not_o be_v say_v to_o be_v one_o in_o species_n or_o kind_a because_o thus_o they_o will_v make_v two_o god_n what_o they_o add_v how_o in_o divine_a thing_n he_o that_o beget_v and_o he_o that_o be_v beget_v be_v not_o one_o either_o in_o essence_n or_o species_n because_o man_n and_o angel_n be_v call_v son_n of_o god_n which_o be_v not_o one_o with_o god_n either_o in_o nature_n or_o kind_a be_v very_o frivolous_a for_o it_o be_v certain_a they_o be_v call_v son_n of_o god_n upon_o a_o very_a different_a account_n from_o that_o on_o which_o christ_n be_v so_o call_v none_o be_v ever_o call_v god_n own_o and_o proper_a son_n only_o beget_v come_v from_o the_o bosom_n of_o the_o father_n for_o unto_o which_o of_o the_o angel_n or_o man_n say_v he_o at_o any_o time_n thou_o be_v my_o son_n 1.5_o heb._n 1.5_o this_o day_n have_v i_o beget_v thou_o and_o again_o i_o will_v be_v to_o he_o a_o father_n and_o he_o shall_v be_v to_o i_o a_o son_n moreover_o they_o be_v mistake_v to_o think_v that_o to_o be_v of_o another_o be_v to_o be_v of_o a_o different_a and_o inferior_a nature_n indeed_o he_o who_o receive_v not_o all_o but_o out_o of_o favour_n only_a part_n of_o what_o another_o have_v may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v inferior_a to_o he_o of_o who_o he_o receive_v but_o he_o not_o so_o who_o have_v all_o that_o another_o have_v not_o by_o favour_n but_o by_o nature_n and_o generation_n they_o be_v far_a much_o mistake_v when_o they_o deny_v christ_n simple_o and_o absolute_o to_o be_v god_n of_o himself_o for_o he_o must_v need_v be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d who_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v a_o be_v or_o essence_n of_o himself_o life_n of_o himself_o holy_a of_o himself_o power_n of_o himself_o be_v good_a of_o himself_o light_n of_o himself_o truth_n of_o himself_o wisdom_n of_o himself_o righteousness_n of_o himself_o perfect_a of_o himself_o and_o glory_n of_o himself_o which_o all_o be_v attribute_n of_o the_o deity_n and_o to_o who_o they_o belong_v so_o do_v also_o divine_a nature_n all_o which_o attribute_n be_v by_o the_o ancient_a orthodox_n doctor_n of_o the_o church_n and_o after_o they_o by_o the_o eminent_a instrument_n of_o reformation_n own_v to_o be_v the_o right_n and_o property_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n ground_v themselves_o upon_o the_o authority_n of_o scripture_n in_o several_a place_n especial_o that_o of_o 1_o john_n 5.20_o by_o i_o already_o quote_v we_o be_v in_o he_o that_o be_v true_a even_o in_o his_o son_n jesus_n christ_n this_o be_v the_o true_a god_n and_o eternal_a life_n if_o we_o look_v upon_o the_o son_n of_o god_n as_o he_o be_v from_o eternity_n beget_v of_o the_o father_n and_o as_o he_o be_v the_o second_o person_n on_o such_o a_o account_n we_o own_o the_o son_n to_o be_v from_o the_o father_n see_v he_o be_v true_a son_n but_o if_o we_o consider_v he_o as_o god_n he_o be_v altogether_o self_n god_n and_o god_n of_o himself_o for_o the_o divinity_n be_v whole_o unbegotten_a and_o of_o herself_o know_v of_o no_o beginning_n and_o need_v not_o to_o borrow_v of_o other_o what_o it_o have_v of_o itself_o and_o if_o to_o the_o son_n one_o will_v attribute_v a_o beget_v and_o form_v essence_n this_o be_v from_o the_o father_n to_o make_v a_o second_o god_n last_o many_o of_o the_o place_n which_o the_o adversary_n do_v heap_v up_o do_v speak_v of_o christ_n office_n of_o mediator_n which_o they_o improper_o misapply_v to_o his_o divine_a nature_n for_o though_o christ_n humane_a nature_n have_v no_o personality_n but_o be_v uphold_v by_o the_o divine_a person_n yet_o that_o uphold_v do_v not_o confound_v the_o nature_n otherwise_o passion_n and_o death_n may_v be_v attribute_v to_o divine_a nature_n on_o this_o matter_n they_o form_v other_o argument_n ground_v upon_o false_a supposition_n as_o sometime_o they_o will_v have_v father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n to_o be_v three_o spirit_n and_o the_o word_n unbegotten_a beget_v and_o proceed_v
to_o be_v essential_a difference_n when_o to_o speak_v of_o three_o spirit_n in_o the_o godhead_n be_v as_o good_a as_o to_o say_v there_o be_v three_o god_n 8.4_o 1_o cor._n 8.4_o whilst_o scripture_n say_v there_o be_v none_o other_o god_n but_o one_o who_o have_v his_o be_v from_o himself_o and_o from_o none_o else_o for_o we_o must_v say_v of_o every_o god_n so_o call_v which_o be_v not_o such_o by_o nature_n 8.6_o hosea_n 8.6_o what_o the_o prophet_n say_v of_o the_o calf_n of_o samaria_n the_o workman_n make_v it_o therefore_o it_o be_v not_o god_n and_o it_o be_v a_o right_a consequence_n for_o nothing_o can_v be_v god_n that_o be_v make_v by_o another_o so_o then_o to_o talk_v of_o three_o spirit_n in_o the_o godhead_n be_v to_o set_v up_o three_o god_n for_o god_n as_o our_o saviour_n say_v absolute_o be_v a_o spirit_n and_o when_o we_o say_v spirit_n we_o understand_v his_o nature_n for_o a_o spirit_n be_v a_o spiritual_a substance_n and_o be_v thus_o they_o go_v on_o still_o upon_o their_o supposition_n they_o will_v have_v the_o word_n unbegotten_a beget_v and_o proceed_v to_o be_v essential_a difference_n and_o not_o personal_a as_o they_o be_v so_o other_o time_n they_o will_v have_v the_o son_n because_o he_o be_v of_o the_o father_n not_o to_o be_v one_o god_n with_o the_o father_n who_o exi_v of_o himself_o and_o so_o not_o to_o be_v the_o one_o true_a god_n because_o he_o have_v a_o be_v from_o another_o but_o we_o must_v distinguish_v between_o the_o be_v of_o essence_n and_o that_o of_o the_o person_n the_o first_o the_o son_n have_v of_o itself_o and_o the_o second_o of_o the_o father_n they_o farther_z object_n he_o that_o be_v mediator_n with_o the_o god_n of_o israel_n be_v not_o the_o god_n of_o israel_n himself_o for_o if_o it_o be_v so_o three_o absurdity_n say_v they_o will_v follow_v the_o first_o god_n will_v be_v inferior_a to_o himself_o two_o god_n will_v pray_v to_o himself_o three_o the_o party_n offend_v shall_v be_v mediator_n with_o himself_o but_o to_o the_o first_o we_o answer_v though_o god_n be_v mediator_n it_o follow_v not_o he_o be_v inferior_a to_o himself_o for_o though_o upon_o the_o account_n of_o the_o office_n he_o that_o be_v a_o mediator_n be_v inferior_a to_o he_o who_o he_o intercede_v with_o yet_o he_o be_v not_o thereby_o inferior_a in_o nature_n for_o even_o among_o man_n one_o equal_a do_v intercede_v with_o his_o equal_n as_o to_o the_o second_o the_o son_n pray_v to_o god_n for_o we_o according_a to_o his_o humane_a nature_n though_o we_o exclude_v not_o the_o divine_a from_o intercede_v for_o it_o belong_v to_o it_o in_o as_o much_o as_o it_o be_v the_o eternal_a will_n of_o the_o son_n that_o the_o father_n will_v by_o reason_n of_o his_o sacrifice_n receive_v we_o into_o favour_n the_o prayer_n and_o submission_n belong_v to_o humane_a nature_n but_o the_o divine_a make_v they_o effectual_a both_o nature_n be_v unite_v in_o one_o person_n the_o divine_a be_v unite_v with_o the_o humane_a mediate_o in_o the_o person_n of_o the_o son_n but_o the_o same_o person_n be_v immediate_o unite_v to_o humane_a nature_n as_o to_o the_o three_o it_o be_v absurd_a indeed_o if_o the_o party_n offend_v be_v mediator_n when_o there_o be_v but_o one_o person_n offend_v but_o where_o several_a person_n be_v offend_v there_o be_v no_o absurdity_n if_o by_o their_o common_a consent_n one_o of_o those_o offend_a person_n offer_v satisfaction_n for_o the_o offender_n and_o to_o reconcile_v and_o in_o this_o case_n it_o can_v not_o be_v otherwise_o for_o it_o be_v require_v that_o the_o reconciler_n shall_v be_v god_n and_o it_o be_v but_o a_o cavil_v to_o say_v that_o he_o with_o who_o the_o son_n be_v not_o mediator_n can_v not_o be_v reconcile_v and_o that_o the_o son_n be_v not_o mediator_n with_o himself_o or_o with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n but_o only_o with_o the_o father_n for_o first_o not_o only_o he_o be_v reconcile_v and_o appease_v by_o the_o mediator_n with_o who_o the_o son_n perform_v the_o office_n of_o mediator_n but_o also_o they_o that_o be_v join_v and_o about_o it_o agree_v with_o he_o wherefore_o see_v in_o every_o thing_n the_o will_n of_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n be_v agree_v it_o follow_v that_o through_o the_o merit_n and_o satisfaction_n of_o the_o mediator_n the_o father_n be_v full_o satisfy_v the_o son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n be_v so_o too_o i_o add_v as_o to_o the_o second_o it_o be_v not_o absurd_a as_o they_o think_v that_o the_o son_n shall_v be_v mediator_n with_o himself_o for_o the_o son_n of_o god_n do_v the_o office_n of_o mediator_n in_o both_o capacity_n for_o as_o god_n be_v one_o with_o the_o father_n he_o receive_v we_o into_o favour_n and_o as_o he_o be_v mediator_n according_a to_o both_o nature_n so_o as_o he_o be_v god_n manifest_v in_o the_o flesh_n by_o reason_n of_o his_o merit_n and_o satisfaction_n we_o be_v receive_v into_o favour_n and_o although_o this_o be_v receive_v into_o favour_n be_v common_a to_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n yet_o the_o mediator_n be_v say_v to_o intercede_v for_o we_o with_o the_o father_n who_o be_v consider_v as_o the_o spring_n of_o all_o divine_a counsel_n and_o operation_n who_o be_v willing_a that_o the_o son_n shall_v satisfy_v for_o our_o sin_n and_o that_o by_o virtue_n of_o that_o satisfaction_n our_o sin_n shall_v be_v forgive_v it_o be_v not_o possible_a for_o the_o son_n to_o will_n and_o do_v otherwise_o to_o this_o purpose_n make_v what_o the_o apostle_n say_v about_o our_o be_v reconcile_v to_o god_n by_o jesus_n christ_n and_o what_o the_o evangelist_n write_v he_o that_o have_v my_o commandment_n 21_o 2_o cor._n 5.18_o 19_o 20_o 21_o and_o keep_v they_o he_o it_o be_v that_o love_v i_o and_o he_o that_o love_v i_o shall_v be_v love_v of_o my_o father_n and_o i_o will_v love_v he_o and_o manifest_v myself_o unto_o he_o 23._o john_n 14.21_o 23._o to_o the_o same_o effect_n do_v tend_v what_o be_v say_v in_o another_o place_n of_o christ_n who_o when_o he_o have_v by_o himself_o purge_v our_o sin_n sit_v down_o on_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o the_o majesty_n on_o high_a so_o than_o the_o son_n be_v appease_v 3.3_o heb._n 3.3_o and_o forgive_v our_o sin_n receive_v we_o into_o favour_n and_o give_v we_o eternal_a life_n upon_o the_o account_n of_o his_o own_o satisfaction_n the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n do_v the_o same_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o satisfaction_n give_v by_o the_o son_n in_o the_o mean_a while_n in_o relation_n to_o the_o son_n who_o for_o his_o own_o sake_n receive_v we_o it_o be_v call_v his_o will_n in_o relation_n to_o the_o father_n it_o be_v call_v mediation_n or_o intercession_n therein_o the_o will_n of_o the_o son_n in_o order_n of_o the_o person_n and_o divine_a work_v do_v follow_v the_o will_n of_o the_o father_n hence_o it_o appear_v how_o they_o do_v ill_a to_o confound_v the_o divine_a nature_n of_o christ_n under_o his_o office_n of_o mediator_n as_o such_o according_a to_o his_o humane_a nature_n he_o pray_v to_o the_o father_n and_o teach_v we_o a_o form_n of_o prayer_n that_o we_o shall_v call_v upon_o the_o father_n through_o the_o mediator_n yet_o he_o thereby_o never_o intend_v to_o exclude_v or_o deprive_v himself_o of_o his_o own_o due_a or_o right_o there_o be_v no_o contradiction_n to_o worship_v the_o father_n in_o the_o face_n and_o through_o the_o intercession_n of_o the_o mediator_n for_o we_o worship_v the_o father_n not_o in_o his_o person_n only_o but_o of_o the_o whole_a nature_n and_o christ_n in_o john_n 5.22_o as_o in_o the_o form_n of_o baptism_n propose_v himself_o to_o be_v worship_v for_o adoration_n be_v not_o confine_v in_o the_o person_n of_o the_o father_n only_o they_o say_v if_o the_o father_n be_v great_a than_o christ_n than_o he_o be_v not_o god_n equal_a with_o the_o father_n but_o christ_n say_v 14.28_o john_n 14.28_o the_o father_n be_v great_a than_o i_o therefore_o be_v not_o god_n equal_a with_o the_o father_n in_o this_o place_n christ_n speak_v not_o of_o his_o divine_a nature_n but_o of_o his_o office_n the_o father_n do_v send_v and_o the_o son_n be_v send_v and_o though_o he_o be_v less_o as_o to_o his_o humanity_n he_o be_v equal_a in_o relation_n to_o his_o divinity_n wherefore_o i_o answer_v christ_n be_v less_o than_o his_o father_n in_o respect_n to_o his_o humane_a nature_n which_o he_o assume_v with_o the_o infirmity_n thereof_o sin_n except_v for_o he_o be_v hungry_a weary_a sorrowful_a and_o the_o like_a and_o we_o read_v he_o weep_v though_o never_o that_o he_o laugh_v but_o before_o that_o assumption_n of_o the_o flesh_n he_o have_v a_o be_v of_o another_o nature_n which_o can_v be_v no_o
express_a image_n of_o the_o father_n person_n because_o in_o he_o through_o that_o eternal_a generation_n be_v express_v the_o whole_a person_n and_o glory_n of_o the_o father_n for_o which_o image_n of_o god_n he_o be_v call_v the_o first-born_a of_o every_o creature_n that_o be_v beget_v before_o there_o be_v any_o creature_n and_o so_o from_o eternity_n as_o in_o the_o form_n and_o nature_n of_o god_n to_o be_v equal_a with_o god_n who_o otherwise_o have_v not_o and_o ow_v none_o equal_a to_o himself_o 1●_n 2_o sam._n 7_o 1●_n in_o these_o high_a and_o divine_a matter_n man_n must_v not_o presume_v beyond_o what_o be_v write_v and_o reveal_v in_o god_n word_n nor_o wrest_v the_o delign_a of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n or_o force_v a_o unusual_a and_o contrary_a sense_n to_o the_o word_n of_o the_o text_n but_o we_o ought_v to_o keep_v ourselves_o within_o the_o bound_n of_o that_o holy_a reverence_n which_o become_v we_o in_o the_o contemplation_n of_o the_o majesty_n of_o god_n in_o these_o very_a thing_n hierom_n as_o say_v before_o be_v very_a caution_n about_o acknowledge_v three_o hypostasis_n in_o the_o deity_n because_o he_o think_v the_o word_n to_o denote_v substance_n when_o god_n be_v upon_o withdraw_v the_o spirit_n of_o prophecy_n from_o among_o his_o people_n 4.4_o chap._n 4.4_o he_o by_o mal●c●y_n the_o last_o of_o the_o prophet_n command_v they_o to_o remember_v the_o law_n of_o moses_n his_o servant_n so_o now_o when_o the_o apostle_n immediate_o inspire_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n cease_v so_o long_o since_o man_n shall_v whole_o acquiesce_v to_o the_o sound_a doctrine_n which_o those_o servant_n of_o his_o son_n jesus_n leave_v for_o our_o use_n and_o instruction_n wherein_o we_o learn_v how_o god_n have_v reveal_v himself_o and_o communicate_v his_o own_o infinite_a fullness_n unto_o his_o creature_n in_o all_o of_o they_o immediate_o by_o his_o own_o son_n first_o in_o the_o creation_n of_o all_o thing_n second_o in_o their_o providential_a disposal_n and_o rule_n three_o in_o the_o revelation_n of_o his_o will_n and_o ordinance_n fourthly_a in_o the_o communication_n of_o his_o spirit_n and_o grace_n in_o none_o of_o which_o be_v the_o person_n of_o the_o father_n otherwise_o represent_v unto_o we_o than_o in_o and_o by_o the_o person_n of_o the_o son_n for_o the_o whole_a end_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v 4.12_o 2_o cor._n 4.6_o 1_o tim_n 6.10_o 1_o ●o●n_n 4.12_o to_o give_v knowledge_n of_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n in_o the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o jesus_n christ_n that_o be_v the_o glory_n of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d visible_a god_n who_o no_o man_n have_v see_v now_o in_o that_o forename_a prophecy_n of_o malachy_n the_o same_o chapter_n and_o two_o last_o verse_n the_o come_n of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d which_o have_v often_o be_v prophesy_v of_o before_o be_v again_o promise_v yea_o of_o the_o lord_n himself_o who_o then_o be_v and_o have_v be_v from_o all_o eternity_n but_o be_v to_o come_v only_o at_o such_o a_o time_n which_o be_v call_v the_o great_a and_o dreadful_a day_n of_o the_o lord_n for_o against_o the_o appear_a and_o long_o before_o of_o that_o sun_n of_o righteousness_n all_o those_o star_n the_o prophet_n be_v to_o disappear_v one_o only_o except_v like_o the_o morningstar_n before_o the_o rise_n of_o the_o sun_n behold_v i_o will_v send_v you_o elijah_n the_o prophet_n before_o the_o come_n of_o the_o great_a and_o dreadful_a day_n of_o the_o lord_n by_o who_o the_o lord_n jesus_n be_v mean_v as_o john_n baptist_n be_v by_o elijah_n so_o call_v because_o he_o come_v in_o the_o spirit_n and_o power_n of_o elias_n for_o both_o be_v endow_v with_o a_o fervency_n of_o spirit_n which_o make_v they_o spare_v neither_o king_n nor_o people_n and_o the_o evangelist_n make_v use_v of_o the_o word_n of_o the_o prophet_n he_o shall_v turn_v the_o heart_n of_o the_o father_n to_o the_o child_n luke_n 1.17_o compare_v with_o matt._n 11.14_o mark_v 9.11_o 12_o 13._o that_o same_o lord_n who_o come_v with_o such_o concomitant_n as_o great_a and_o dreadful_a be_v jehovah_n himself_o the_o god_n of_o israel_n who_o word_n though_o in_o his_o state_n of_o humiliation_n be_v so_o conspicuous_a glorious_a and_o great_a as_o he_o in_o one_o particular_a say_v himself_o to_o the_o man_n out_o of_o who_o he_o have_v cast_v a_o legion_n of_o devil_n return_v to_o thy_o own_o house_n 8.39_o luk._n 8.39_o and_o show_v what_o great_a thing_n god_n have_v do_v unto_o thou_o and_o the_o evangelist_n who_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o verse_n relate_v christ_n word_n to_o the_o man_n do_v in_o the_o latter_a end_n of_o the_o same_o declare_v what_o the_o man_n do_v and_o he_o go_v his_o way_n and_o publish_v throughout_o the_o whole_a city_n how_o great_a thing_n jesus_n have_v do_v unto_o he_o he_o do_v it_o in_o the_o same_o word_n how_o great_a thing_n only_o instead_o of_o god_n he_o say_v jesus_n so_o that_o jesus_n be_v the_o god_n that_o have_v do_v great_a thing_n unto_o he_o this_o be_v in_o the_o land_n of_o judah_n where_o no_o other_o god_n but_o the_o true_a god_n of_o israel_n be_v own_a and_o worship_v so_o the_o lord_n jesus_n be_v that_o same_o god_n who_o the_o father_n from_o heaven_n call_v his_o son_n which_o be_v the_o name_n mention_v 2.9_o phil._n 2.9_o that_o be_v above_o every_o name_n and_o this_o name_n more_o excellent_a than_o any_o give_v the_o angel_n 1.4_o heb._n 1.4_o he_o have_v obtain_v by_o inheritance_n not_o by_o favour_n according_a to_o what_o say_v the_o apostle_n for_o the_o name_n by_o he_o design_v be_v that_o of_o son_n of_o god_n thou_o be_v my_o son_n with_o the_o exegetical_a adjunct_n of_o his_o generation_n this_o day_n have_v i_o beget_v thou_o 13.33_o act_n 13.33_o which_o word_n paul_n do_v apply_v to_o the_o lord_n jesus_n this_o day_n of_o eternity_n after_o the_o manner_n of_o time_n speak_v in_o relation_n to_o god_n with_o who_o be_v no_o part_n of_o time_n as_o with_o man_n past_a present_a and_o to_o come_v with_o god_n be_v not_o day_n but_o only_o one_o day_n which_o have_v no_o beginning_n and_o shall_v have_v no_o end_n it_o be_v never_o say_v to_o any_o angel_n personal_o upon_o his_o own_o account_n thou_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n much_o less_o with_o the_o reason_n of_o the_o appellation_n this_o day_n have_v i_o beget_v thou_o so_o in_o that_o place_n the_o apostle_n do_v not_o speak_v of_o the_o general_a name_n of_o a_o son_n but_o of_o the_o particular_a appropriation_n thereof_o unto_o the_o lord_n jesus_n upon_o his_o own_o account_n when_o the_o apostle_n say_v he_o be_v the_o first-born_a the_o thing_n itself_o be_v not_o mean_v of_o be_v the_o first_o beget_v but_o the_o dignity_n and_o privilege_n that_o attend_v it_o 89.27_o psal_n 89.27_o thus_o god_n say_v of_o david_n i_o will_v make_v he_o my_o first-born_a explain_v in_o the_o late_a part_n of_o the_o verse_n high_a than_o the_o king_n of_o the_o carth_n thus_o among_o man_n one_o may_v say_v i_o will_v make_v such_o a_o one_o my_o first-born_a or_o my_o heir_n which_o be_v the_o privilege_n attend_v the_o birthright_n this_o be_v christ_n title_n by_o nature_n and_o not_o by_o office_n anoint_v be_v a_o ceremony_n use_v to_o make_v and_o declare_v a_o king_n but_o that_o anoint_v make_v he_o not_o a_o man_n for_o he_o be_v so_o before_o so_o the_o lord_n jesus_n be_v god_n before_o he_o be_v christ_n chap._n xi_o some_o animadversion_n upon_o a_o book_n call_v christianity_n not_o mysterious_a what_o i_o say_v somewhat_o before_o concern_v reason_n put_v i_o in_o mind_n of_o a_o thing_n i_o promise_v about_o the_o middle_n of_o my_o discourse_n namely_o to_o take_v notice_n of_o a_o book_n with_o the_o title_n of_o christianity_n not_o mysterious_a wherein_o the_o author_n undertake_v to_o show_v there_o be_v nothing_o in_o the_o gospel_n or_o in_o our_o religion_n against_o or_o above_o reason_n and_o though_o i_o have_v hardly_o any_o room_n leave_v yet_o to_o be_v as_o good_a as_o my_o word_n i_o must_v brief_o say_v something_o to_o it_o we_o agree_v with_o he_o against_o all_o human_a authority_n contrary_a to_o the_o word_n and_o own_o scripture_n to_o be_v the_o only_a competent_a judge_n and_o allow_v of_o our_o reason_n as_o long_o as_o it_o draw_v out_o of_o that_o spring_n and_o not_o otherwise_o let_v we_o be_v sincere_a and_o avoid_v ambiguity_n there_o be_v true_a and_o sound_a reason_n whereof_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v the_o right_a and_o stand_v infallible_a rule_n for_o the_o will_n of_o god_n be_v the_o measure_n of_o all_o truth_n and_o equity_n and_o our_o reason_n to_o be_v reason_n indeed_o must_v be_v guide_v by_o that_o or_o else_o it_o do_v deviate_v from_o the_o rule_n there_o be_v also_o that_o
manner_n of_o conversion_n without_o a_o revelation_n in_o the_o word_n be_v incomprehensible_a as_o our_o saviour_n say_v to_o nicodemus_n in_o point_n of_o regeneration_n the_o wind_n blow_v where_o it_o list_v and_o thou_o hear_v the_o sound_n thereof_o 3.8_o john_n 3.8_o but_o can_v not_o tell_v whence_o it_o come_v and_o whither_o it_o go_v so_o be_v every_o one_o that_o be_v bear_v of_o the_o spirit_n observe_v the_o blockishness_n of_o a_o doctor_n and_o master_n of_o israel_n in_o spiritual_a thing_n can_v a_o man_n enter_v the_o second_o time_n into_o his_o mother_n womb_n and_o be_v bear_v v._o 4._o where_o be_v his_o reason_n all_o this_o while_n several_a such_o thing_n we_o read_v of_o the_o disciple_n whereof_o i_o shall_v give_v but_o one_o instance_n about_o the_o resurrection_n 9.10_o mark_v 9.10_o they_o question_v one_o with_o another_o what_o the_o rise_n from_o the_o dead_a shall_v mean_v nay_o they_o be_v in_o that_o gross_a ignorance_n till_o after_o our_o saviour_n resurrection_n 20.9_o joh._n 20.9_o yet_o they_o know_v not_o the_o scripture_n that_o he_o must_v rise_v again_o from_o the_o dead_a wherefore_o he_o upbraid_v they_o with_o their_o unbelief_n 16.14_o mark_v 16.14_o and_o hardness_n of_o heart_n and_o indeed_o they_o be_v no_o better_o till_o he_o open_v their_o understanding_n 24.45_o luke_n 24.45_o that_o they_o may_v understand_v the_o scripture_n in_o his_o page_n 81._o his_o conclusion_n be_v false_a that_o neither_o god_n nor_o his_o attribute_n nor_o eternity_n be_v mystery_n to_o we_o but_o certain_o the_o smite_v can_v know_v the_o infinite_a but_o as_o much_o and_o in_o such_o a_o degree_n as_o the_o infinite_a be_v please_v to_o communicate_v himself_o as_o no_o day_n light_v but_o what_o the_o sun_n do_v communicate_v and_o that_o more_o or_o less_o according_a as_o it_o be_v do_v in_o a_o dark_a room_n one_o see_v only_o proportionable_o to_o the_o light_n that_o be_v bring_v in_o so_o in_o a_o spiritual_a light_n and_o life_n it_o be_v only_a as_o god_n be_v please_v to_o reveal_v and_o as_o man_n be_v capable_a to_o receive_v the_o word_n alone_o be_v a_o dead_a letter_n but_o the_o spirit_n do_v quicken_v it_o as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o apostle_n the_o word_n they_o have_v hear_v from_o christ_n be_v quicken_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n when_o he_o come_v upon_o they_o which_o in_o they_o cause_v a_o wonderful_a alteration_n and_o make_v they_o choir_n another_o sort_n of_o man_n divine_a thing_n can_v be_v comprehend_v for_o want_v of_o a_o adequate_a notion_n there_o be_v to_o be_v a_o proportion_n between_o the_o knower_n and_o the_o thing_n know_v so_o our_o reason_n without_o revelation_n apply_v by_o the_o inward_a teach_v of_o the_o spirit_n can_v no_o more_o know_v the_o nature_n of_o god_n and_o his_o attribute_n than_o a_o little_a bottle_n hold_v in_o all_o the_o water_n of_o the_o sea_n to_o know_v thing_n we_o must_v know_v their_o essence_n and_o nature_n as_o to_o god_n we_o by_o the_o light_n of_o nature_n may_v know_v there_o be_v one_o but_o what_o he_o be_v must_v be_v reveal_v and_o it_o be_v usual_a when_o we_o speak_v of_o any_o thing_n to_o have_v a_o definition_n or_o description_n of_o it_o what_o be_v a_o man_n a_o rational_a animal_n what_o be_v god_n a_o infinite_a be_v describe_v by_o his_o attribute_n almighty_a eternal_a independent_a etc._n etc._n concern_v the_o infiniteness_n and_o some_o other_o attribute_n of_o god_n david_n ow_v his_o ignorance_n when_o he_o say_v such_o knowledge_n be_v too_o wonderful_a for_o i_o 139.6_o psa_fw-la 139.6_o it_o be_v high_a i_o can_v attain_v to_o it_o and_o no_o wonder_n see_v in_o the_o same_o psalm_n he_o so_o much_o admire_v the_o formation_n of_o his_o body_n in_o the_o womb_n when_o he_o say_v he_o be_v fearful_o and_o wonderful_o make_v 16._o v._o 14_o 15_o 16._o if_o any_o one_o pretend_v he_o can_v know_v more_o than_o the_o prophet_n david_n let_v he_o speak_v and_o stretch_v his_o reason_n further_o than_o he_o can_v his_o son_n solomon_n be_v of_o the_o same_o mind_n both_o as_o to_o bodily_a and_o spiritual_a thing_n when_o he_o say_v as_o thou_o know_v not_o what_o be_v the_o way_n of_o the_o spirit_n nor_o how_o the_o bone_n do_v grow_v in_o the_o womb_n of_o she_o that_o be_v with_o child_n 11.5_o prov._n 11.5_o even_o so_o thou_o know_v not_o the_o work_n of_o god_n who_o make_v all_o these_o time_n of_o ignorance_n be_v over_o now_o say_v socinian_o we_o have_v man_n more_o know_v and_o wise_a than_o david_n and_o solomon_n but_o if_o it_o be_v so_o of_o the_o formation_n of_o our_o natural_a body_n how_o much_o more_o of_o the_o work_n of_o regeneration_n within_o we_o which_o our_o saviour_n as_o say_v before_o compare_v to_o the_o blow_n of_o the_o wind_n that_o such_o thing_n be_v we_o know_v and_o feel_v but_o understand_v not_o the_o manner_n thus_o we_o know_v that_o gold_n silver_n and_o other_o metal_n be_v form_v under_o ground_n for_o we_o draw_v they_o out_o of_o the_o earth_n bowel_n but_o the_o manner_n and_o how_o they_o be_v form_v we_o can_v tell_v so_o these_o be_v hide_v secret_a and_o mysterious_a thing_n unto_o we_o much_o more_o be_v supernatural_a he_o go_v upon_o a_o mistake_n as_o if_o we_o think_v matter_n of_o religion_n to_o be_v mystery_n after_o the_o revelation_n which_o make_v they_o cease_v to_o be_v mystery_n which_o they_o be_v before_o so_o it_o be_v in_o he_o labour_v in_o vain_a pag._n 91._o when_o a_o prophecy_n be_v fulfil_v it_o cease_v to_o be_v a_o prophecy_n and_o become_v a_o history_n the_o strength_n of_o his_o argument_n lay_v herein_o that_o those_o thing_n once_o reveal_v be_v no_o long_o mystery_n but_o we_o must_v know_v how_o some_o thing_n be_v whole_o reveal_v and_o other_o but_o in_o part_n it_o be_v true_a we_o must_v yield_v a_o obedience_n of_o faith_n that_o the_o thing_n be_v so_o as_o that_o the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v make_v man_n that_o there_o be_v three_o person_n in_o the_o godhead_n god_n have_v reveal_v it_o we_o be_v full_o persuade_v it_o be_v so_o but_o the_o manner_n and_o how_o we_o be_v in_o the_o dark_a about_o it_o be_v incomprehensible_a by_o and_o unconceivable_a to_o we_o and_o beyond_o the_o power_n of_o our_o nature_n to_o know_v it_o yet_o as_o much_o as_o be_v necessary_a it_o be_v reveal_v here_o i_o can_v avoid_v take_v notice_n how_o the_o man_n unworthy_o compare_v the_o mystery_n of_o our_o holy_a religion_n with_o the_o trick_n and_o cheat_n of_o the_o heathen_n page_n 99_o and_o what_o if_o what_o in_o their_o false_a worship_n they_o call_v mystery_n there_o be_v cheat_n as_o we_o own_o do_v it_o follow_v it_o must_v be_v so_o in_o our_o religion_n they_o be_v idolatry_n and_o superstition_n but_o we_o be_v holy_a and_o divine_a then_o after_o this_o rule_n because_o they_o have_v false_a god_n we_o must_v have_v none_o at_o all_o and_o so_o must_v be_v as_o bad_a as_o they_o the_o devil_n who_o be_v god_n ape_n and_o in_o imitation_n of_o god_n church_n have_v set_v up_o a_o synagogue_n for_o himself_o have_v his_o drudge_n and_o bondslave_n to_o serve_v he_o must_v not_o god_n people_n adore_v he_o and_o because_o there_o be_v a_o false_a worship_n must_v there_o be_v no_o true_a one_o thus_o for_o man_n who_o so_o much_o pretend_v to_o reason_n it_o be_v a_o very_a unreasonable_a inference_n to_o say_v that_o because_o the_o heathen_n in_o their_o matter_n of_o idolatry_n have_v trick_n which_o they_o call_v mystery_n therefore_o the_o mystery_n of_o our_o holy_a religion_n must_v be_v cheat_n and_o trick_n such_o comparison_n be_v odious_a and_o unworthy_a to_o be_v use_v by_o any_o who_o call_v themselves_o christian_n then_o if_o mystery_n do_v relate_v sometime_o to_o the_o matter_n and_o sometime_o to_o the_o manner_n certain_a point_n of_o our_o religion_n as_o the_o trinity_n eternal_a generation_n of_o the_o son_n procession_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v a_o mystery_n before_o they_o be_v reveal_v it_o follow_v that_o the_o revelation_n be_v necessary_a to_o make_v they_o know_v unto_o we_o and_o that_o it_o be_v not_o in_o the_o power_n of_o our_o reason_n to_o know_v they_o without_o revelation_n so_o they_o be_v above_o it_o and_o thus_o though_o the_o thing_n be_v re-revealed_a so_o that_o we_o must_v believe_v it_o yet_o still_o there_o be_v some_o thing_n that_o be_v unrevealed_a and_o above_o our_o capacity_n he_o will_v have_v every_o thing_n after_o the_o revelation_n to_o cease_v to_o be_v a_o mystery_n in_o religion_n but_o as_o i_o say_v some_o thing_n be_v not_o whole_o reveal_v because_o 〈◊〉_d full_a revelation_n be_v not_o necessary_a to_o our_o salvation_n and_o within_o this_o limitation_n be_v to_o be_v
man_n 3.4_o 1_o pet._n 3.4_o which_o in_o the_o follow_a verse_n be_v explain_v of_o christ_n dwelling_n in_o we_o by_o faith_n and_o elsewhere_o the_o same_o apostle_n call_v union_n and_o relation_n between_o christ_n and_o the_o church_n a_o great_a mystery_n 5.32_o eph._n 5.32_o which_o our_o reason_n can_v comprehend_v without_o a_o revelation_n this_o make_v david_n say_v 119.169_o psal_n 119.169_o o_o lord_n give_v i_o understanding_n according_a to_o thy_o word_n and_o not_o according_a to_o my_o reason_n or_o natural_a capacity_n and_o bless_a be_v he_o who_o thou_o teach_v out_o of_o thy_o law_n 94.12_o psa_fw-la 94.12_o not_o out_o of_o his_o shallow_a brain_n our_o bless_a saviour_n saying_n he_o that_o eat_v my_o flesh_n 6.16_o joh._n 6.16_o and_o drink_v my_o blood_n contain_v doctrine_n not_o obvious_a to_o reason_n that_o eat_v and_o drink_v with_o christ_n dwelling_n in_o we_o be_v so_o true_a that_o we_o may_v not_o doubt_v of_o it_o for_o the_o word_n say_v it_o but_o how_o and_o the_o manner_n of_o it_o as_o well_o as_o our_o dwell_n in_o christ_n and_o he_o in_o we_o be_v above_o reason_n to_o understand_v wherefore_o scripture_n have_v reveal_v it_o to_o be_v by_o faith_n but_o that_o people_n will_v believe_v nothing_o but_o what_o they_o can_v give_v reason_n for_o when_o paul_n write_v his_o epistle_n to_o the_o colossian_n the_o gospel_n and_o doctrine_n of_o salvation_n be_v certain_o reveal_v yet_o still_o he_o call_v it_o a_o mystery_n the_o mystery_n of_o god_n 3._o col._n 2.2_o 3._o and_o of_o the_o father_n and_o of_o christ_n and_o in_o the_o follow_a verse_n he_o give_v a_o instance_n of_o it_o in_o who_o be_v hide_v all_o the_o treasure_n of_o wisdom_n and_o knowledge_n that_o thing_n be_v so_o he_o give_v it_o as_o matter_n of_o faith_n by_o we_o to_o be_v believe_v but_o how_o it_o be_v and_o how_o all_o these_o treasure_n be_v hide_v in_o he_o it_o be_v for_o we_o a_o mysterious_a thing_n every_o nation_n whether_o jew_n or_o gentile_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n have_v mystery_n so_o christian_n have_v they_o and_o in_o particular_a that_o of_o the_o incarnation_n which_o the_o apostle_n call_v a_o great_a one_o beyond_o all_o dispute_n and_o comparison_n and_o beside_o all_o this_o sure_o there_o be_v great_a mystery_n in_o religion_n god_n who_o infinite_a nature_n and_o attribute_n be_v the_o ground_n of_o all_o religion_n be_v the_o great_a mystery_n of_o all_o and_o most_o incomprehensible_a for_o this_o reason_n the_o trinity_n and_o incarnation_n be_v great_a mystery_n and_o above_o reason_n though_o not_o contrary_a to_o it_o these_o doctrine_n indeed_o contain_v great_a difficulty_n but_o no_o contradiction_n which_o they_o do_v as_o to_o set_v up_o a_o metaphorical_a and_o figurative_a god_n secondary_a subordinate_a a_o creature_n to_o be_v god_n by_o office_n not_o by_o nature_n a_o god_n but_o of_o 1700_o stand_v and_o this_o creature_n god_n to_o be_v worship_v be_v not_o this_o downright_a idolatry_n herein_o we_o must_v go_v no_o far_o than_o scripture_n lead_v we_o for_o fear_v of_o go_v out_o of_o our_o depth_n and_o lose_v ourselves_o in_o the_o deep_a thing_n of_o god_n many_o more_o thing_n to_o our_o purpose_n i_o can_v say_v upon_o this_o matter_n but_o for_o the_o present_n have_v no_o time_n nor_o place_n leave_v to_o do_v it_o but_o to_o come_v to_o a_o conclusion_n of_o the_o whole_a and_o main_a subject_n to_o all_o that_o have_v be_v say_v i_o shall_v add_v this_o out_o of_o the_o prophet_n where_o the_o husband_n of_o the_o church_n of_o the_o gentile_n that_o be_v to_o be_v call_v to_o communion_n with_o christ_n be_v say_v to_o be_v the_o lord_n of_o host_n 54.5_o isa_n 54.5_o the_o holy_a one_o of_o israel_n the_o redeemer_n and_o the_o lord_n of_o the_o whole_a earth_n in_o the_o whole_a bible_n the_o true_a god_n of_o israel_n never_o assume_v unto_o himself_o high_a name_n than_o these_o be_v nor_o ever_o do_v effect_v a_o great_a outward_a work_n than_o to_o redeem_v his_o spouse_n now_o out_o of_o several_a place_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n it_o do_v appear_v how_o christ_n be_v the_o husband_n and_o redeemer_n of_o the_o church_n which_o he_o be_v say_v to_o have_v purchase_v with_o his_o own_o blood_n 5.25_o act._n 20.28_o eph._n 5.25_o and_o to_o have_v love_v it_o and_o have_v give_v himself_o for_o it_o thus_o this_o prophecy_n be_v plain_o fulfil_v in_o christ_n who_o be_v the_o person_n therein_o describe_v with_o those_o glorious_a name_n and_o attribute_n altogether_o incommunicable_a even_o the_o enemy_n themselves_o be_v the_o judge_n to_o any_o mere_a man_n or_o creature_n whatsoever_o moreover_o every_o house_n be_v build_v by_o some_o man_n 3.4_o heb._n 3.4_o but_o he_o that_o build_v all_o thing_n be_v god_n nay_o the_o world_n and_o the_o church_n be_v build_v by_o christ_n and_o by_o who_o also_o all_o thing_n be_v create_v in_o the_o beginning_n and_o make_v of_o nothing_o and_o though_o we_o will_v grant_v which_o we_o do_v not_o to_o socinian_o that_o that_o which_o be_v speak_v of_o the_o creation_n of_o the_o world_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v of_o the_o new_a creation_n or_o regeneration_n yet_o this_o very_a same_o do_v import_n and_o require_v as_o divine_a and_o infinite_a a_o power_n as_o do_v the_o creation_n of_o the_o world_n and_o if_o we_o may_v so_o say_v something_o more_o than_o to_o make_v something_o out_o of_o nothing_o here_o be_v no_o opposition_n nothing_o to_o hinder_v but_o to_o bring_v light_a out_o of_o darkness_n good_a of_o evil_a to_o drive_v away_o darkness_n blindness_n and_o ignorance_n out_o of_o the_o mind_n to_o remove_v perverse_a and_o corrupt_a affection_n out_o of_o the_o will_n and_o incline_v it_o to_o good_a to_o change_v the_o stubborn_a and_o violent_a passion_n of_o a_o heart_n desperate_o wicked_a and_o deceitful_a above_o all_o thing_n i_o say_v to_o create_v a_o new_a heart_n and_o renew_v a_o right_a spirit_n be_v every_o jot_n as_o great_a if_o not_o a_o great_a work_n than_o the_o creation_n of_o the_o world_n which_o christ_n by_o his_o own_o power_n have_v do_v and_o do_v it_o every_o day_n day_n be_v a_o illustrious_a and_o aught_o to_o be_v a_o undisputable_a proof_n of_o his_o deity_n which_o be_v confirm_v as_o by_o his_o name_n and_o attribute_n so_o by_o his_o other_o work_n and_o by_o that_o divine_a and_o glorious_a worship_n due_a and_o render_v unto_o he_o not_o on_o earth_n only_o but_o chief_o in_o heaven_n equal_o with_o the_o father_n by_o the_o four_o beast_n the_o elder_n and_o million_o of_o angel_n who_o upon_o their_o knee_n if_o i_o may_v so_o say_v for_o it_o be_v write_v they_o fall_v down_o say_v with_o a_o loud_a voice_n worthy_a be_v the_o lamb_n that_o be_v slay_v to_o receive_v power_n and_o riches_n and_o wisdom_n and_o strength_n and_o honour_n 14._o rev._n ●_o 11_o 12_o 13_o 14._o and_o glory_n and_o every_o creature_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n and_o on_o the_o earth_n and_o under_o the_o earth_n and_o such_o as_o be_v in_o the_o sea_n and_o all_o that_o be_v in_o they_o hear_v i_o say_v blessing_n and_o honour_n and_o glory_n and_o power_n be_v unto_o he_o that_o sit_v upon_o the_o throne_n and_o unto_o the_o lamb_n for_o ever_o and_o ever_o amen_n but_o if_o after_o all_o these_o enemy_n of_o christ_n do_v refuse_v to_o join_v their_o voice_n in_o this_o heavenly_a concert_n to_o give_v he_o glory_n one_o day_n when_o they_o shall_v appear_v before_o he_o who_o be_v to_o judge_v the_o quick_a and_o the_o dead_a and_o he_o put_v question_n to_o they_o concern_v their_o impious_a disow_n of_o he_o like_o the_o man_n that_o come_v in_o without_o the_o wedding-garment_n 22.12_o mat._n 22.12_o they_o shall_v be_v speechless_a they_o shall_v have_v nothing_o to_o say_v for_o themselves_o no_o more_o than_o the_o sadducee_n and_o pharisee_n for_o as_o then_o in_o the_o time_n of_o his_o humiliation_n no_o man_n be_v able_a to_o answer_v he_o a_o word_n 46._o v._o 46._o much_o more_o when_o he_o do_v appear_v in_o his_o glory_n shall_v his_o enemy_n mouth_n be_v stop_v 13.17_o luke_n 13.17_o and_o all_o his_o adversary_n ashamed_a as_o we_o read_v they_o be_v though_o now_o they_o be_v never_o so_o shameless_a and_o brazen-faced_a yet_o at_o last_o they_o certain_o shall_v be_v confound_v finis_fw-la book_n print_v for_o rich._n wellington_n at_o the_o lute_n in_o st._n paul_n '_o s-church-yard_n 1._o the_o work_n of_o that_o excellent_a practical_a physician_n dr._n thomas_n sydenham_n wherein_o the_o list_n of_o acute_a disease_n be_v treat_v of_o after_o a_o new_a method_n but_o also_o the_o safe_a and_o short_a way_n of_o cure_v most_o chronical_a disease_n translate_v by_o john_n pechey_n of_o the_o college_n of_o physician_n 2._o a_o discourse_n upon_o the_o nature_n and_o faculty_n of_o man_n in_o several_a essay_n with_o some_o consideration_n upon_o the_o occurrence_n of_o humane_a life_n by_o tim._n nurse_n gent._n 3._o a_o general_a history_n of_o the_o disease_n of_o child_n collect_v by_o the_o most_o eminent_a practical_a author_n by_o john_n pechey_n of_o the_o college_n of_o phsitian_n 4._o the_o family_n physician_n be_v a_o choice_a collection_n of_o approved_n and_o experience_a remedy_n to_o cure_v all_o disease_n incident_a to_o humane_a body_n useful_a in_o family_n and_o serviceable_a to_o country_n people_n by_o george_n hartman_n phylo_n chemist_n author_n of_o the_o preserver_n and_o restorer_n of_o health_n servant_n to_o sir_n kenelm_n digby_n till_o he_o die_v
be_v by_o virtue_n of_o a_o natural_a privilege_n and_o of_o a_o divine_a prerogative_n which_o be_v the_o same_o he_o have_v over_o david_n solomon_n father_n who_o lord_n he_o be_v the_o same_o he_o have_v over_o abraham_n pre-existence_n before_o abraham_n be_v i_o be_o which_o can_v not_o be_v as_o to_o his_o humanity_n wherefore_o in_o he_o there_o must_v be_v another_o ground_n namely_o his_o divinity_n only_o therein_o can_v lay_v the_o advantage_n he_o have_v over_o they_o all_o not_o only_o he_o be_v great_a than_o all_o these_o but_o also_o than_o the_o temple_n itself_o a_o place_n so_o eminent_o glorious_a by_o reason_n of_o god_n immediate_a presence_n in_o it_o that_o it_o be_v call_v not_o only_o holy_a but_o the_o inner_a part_n of_o it_o be_v call_v the_o holy_a of_o all_o into_o which_o none_o but_o the_o high_a priest_n may_v enter_v and_o that_o only_o once_o a_o year_n not_o without_o blood_n yet_o say_v our_o saviour_n 8._o matt._n 12.6_o 8._o i_o say_v unto_o you_o that_o in_o this_o place_n be_v one_o great_a than_o the_o temple_n which_o can_v be_v say_v of_o none_o but_o of_o god_n there_o he_o also_o call_v himself_o lord_n of_o the_o sabbath_n not_o as_o man_n but_o as_o god_n temple_n and_o sabbath_n the_o two_o holy_a thing_n in_o israel_n the_o second_o text_n be_v this_o 5._o this_o isai_n 35.4_o 5._o behold_v your_o god_n will_v come_v with_o vengeance_n even_o god_n with_o a_o recompense_n he_o will_v come_v and_o save_v you_o then_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o blind_a shall_v be_v open_a and_o the_o ear_n of_o the_o deaf_a shall_v be_v unstop_v which_o our_o saviour_n appli_v to_o himself_o who_o when_o john_n disciple_n ask_v he_o 5._o he_o matt._n 11.3_o 5._o be_v thou_o he_o that_o shall_v come_v or_o do_v we_o look_v for_o another_o jesus_n answer_v they_o by_o this_o the_o blind_a receive_v their_o sight_n etc._n etc._n which_o be_v the_o sign_n wherewith_o isaiah_n have_v prophefy_v god_n will_v come_v these_o thing_n he_o command_v they_o to_o give_v john_n a_o account_n of_o wherein_o he_o look_v to_o the_o prophet_n who_o foretell_v such_o thing_n shall_v be_v do_v by_o the_o messiah_n who_o in_o that_o place_n isaiah_n call_v god_n when_o he_o say_v god_n himself_o will_v come_v and_o save_v you_o which_o must_v not_o be_v understand_v of_o the_o father_n for_o first_o we_o never_o read_v that_o god_n the_o father_n come_v into_o the_o world_n to_o save_v we_o but_o that_o he_o send_v his_o son_n to_o do_v it_o he_o that_o send_v another_o in_o his_o place_n can_v proper_o be_v say_v to_o come_v himself_o second_o there_o be_v a_o energy_n in_o the_o word_n he_o himself_o whereby_o be_v mean_v not_o that_o another_o in_o god_n stead_n but_o god_n himself_o by_o himself_o will_v come_v and_o though_o god_n be_v say_v to_o come_v when_o he_o show_v some_o gracious_a effect_n of_o his_o power_n yet_o when_o he_o be_v say_v to_o send_v another_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v understand_v in_o that_o same_o manner_n and_o though_o socinus_n deny_v he_o at_o that_o time_n to_o be_v god_n only_o that_o he_o be_v appoint_v hereafter_o so_o to_o be_v he_o be_v refute_v by_o his_o be_v in_o that_o text_n at_o that_o time_n call_v the_o god_n of_o israel_n your_o god_n who_o you_o worship_v the_o three_o text_n be_v that_o wherein_o god_n say_v 3.1_o say_v mal._n 3.1_o behold_v i_o will_v send_v my_o messenger_n and_o he_o shall_v prepare_v the_o way_n before_o i_o and_o the_o lord_n who_o you_o seek_v shall_v sudden_o come_v to_o his_o temple_n now_o who_o that_o god_n be_v before_o who_o face_n john_n prepare_v his_o way_n be_v clear_a enough_o that_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n not_o of_o the_o father_n come_v after_o he_o which_o he_o point_v at_o when_o he_o say_v 13.24_o say_v john_n 1_o 26_o 27_o 29.30_o compare_v with_o act._n 13.24_o there_o stand_v one_o among_o you_o who_o you_o know_v not_o he_o it_o be_v that_o come_n after_o i_o be_v prefer_v before_o i_o and_o to_o make_v it_o clear_a he_o point_v direct_o at_o the_o person_n of_o christ_n for_o the_o next_o day_n john_n see_v jesus_n come_v unto_o he_o and_o say_v behold_v the_o lamb_n of_o god_n which_o take_v away_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o world_n which_o be_v he_o of_o who_o i_o say_v after_o i_o come_v a_o man_n which_o be_v prefer_v before_o i_o for_o he_o be_v before_o i_o can_v there_o be_v a_o plain_a designation_n of_o a_o person_n than_o this_o to_o he_o alone_o by_o mean_n of_o his_o preach_v he_o prepare_v the_o way_n and_o that_o which_o be_v remarkable_a our_o saviour_n explain_v of_o himself_o the_o text_n of_o malachy_n this_o be_v he_o of_o who_o it_o be_v write_v behold_v 7.27_o behold_v luke_n 7.27_o i_o send_v my_o messenger_n before_o thy_o face_n which_o shall_v prepare_v thy_o way_n before_o thou_o and_o the_o word_n my_o face_n in_o the_o prophet_n he_o render_v thy_o face_n that_o be_v of_o christ_n so_o he_o quote_v the_o place_n not_o according_a to_o the_o word_n but_o according_a to_o the_o sense_n 1.76_o sense_n luke_n 1.76_o thou_o child_n say_v zechariah_n of_o john_n shall_v he_o call_v the_o prophet_n of_o the_o high_a a_o high_a name_n proper_a to_o god_n for_o thou_o shall_v go_v before_o the_o face_n of_o the_o lord_n to_o prepare_v his_o way_n it_o be_v then_o most_o certain_a that_o john_n prepare_v the_o way_n for_o he_o that_o be_v to_o come_v after_o he_o and_o to_o converse_v with_o and_o dwell_v among_o man_n not_o the_o father_n but_o christ_n come_v after_o john_n therefore_o he_o be_v that_o god_n that_o send_v his_o messenger_n as_o in_o malachy_n socinus_n his_o phrase_n be_v not_o where_o in_o scripture_n to_o be_v read_v that_o god_n come_v in_o christ_n he_o send_v christ_n his_o son_n but_o come_v not_o in_o he_o the_o father_n be_v say_v to_o be_v and_o dwell_v in_o christ_n not_o to_o come_v in_o christ_n he_o send_v he_o in_o his_o own_o name_n though_o christ_n under_o the_o name_n word_n be_v call_v god_n absolute_o 1.1_o absolute_o joh._n 1.1_o and_o without_o any_o restriction_n in_o the_o same_o manner_n as_o the_o true_a god_n be_v absolute_o call_v god_n without_o any_o thing_n to_o pretext_n a_o improper_a appellation_n and_o the_o repetition_n of_o the_o word_n god_n in_o the_o same_o signification_n do_v sufficient_o demonstrate_v it_o 5.20_o it_o 1_o joh._n 5.20_o nay_o though_o he_o be_v not_o bare_o call_v god_n but_o the_o true_a god_n whence_o we_o must_v necessary_o conclude_v he_o be_v true_a essential_a god_n yet_o they_o will_v have_v the_o father_n alone_o to_o be_v god_n and_o that_o when_o the_o name_n of_o god_n be_v absolute_o set_v down_o it_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v only_o of_o the_o father_n not_o of_o the_o son_n nor_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n so_o they_o conclude_v father_n son_n and_o holy_a not_o to_o be_v one_o god_n to_o which_o purpose_n they_o wrest_v some_o scripture_n out_o of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n which_o in_o due_a time_n we_o shall_v by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n take_v a_o occasion_n to_o answer_v but_o because_o the_o adversary_n use_v their_o utmost_a pernicious_a endeavour_n to_o oppose_v these_o truth_n we_o to_o make_v clear_a these_o most_o important_a doctrine_n which_o our_o faith_n be_v ground_v upon_o must_v somewhat_o more_o enlarge_v upon_o it_o though_o we_o take_v notice_n of_o some_o thing_n we_o say_v before_o or_o to_o the_o same_o purpose_n first_o we_o say_v god_n be_v a_o name_n of_o the_o divine_a essence_n or_o nature_n as_o man_n be_v of_o human_a nature_n but_o whereof_o there_o be_v a_o different_a reason_n from_o that_o of_o all_o name_n of_o other_o nature_n for_o all_o individual_n be_v asunder_o one_o from_o another_o their_o nature_n according_a to_o the_o mental_a notion_n be_v one_o but_o not_o real_o so_o wherefore_o in_o they_o nature_n be_v the_o species_n or_o kind_n which_o be_v predicate_v and_o speak_v of_o every_o singular_a and_o individual_a person_n as_o james_n be_v a_o man_n and_o of_o many_o too_o as_o matthew_z john_n and_o luke_n be_v three_o man_n but_o as_o in_o god_n the_o essence_n be_v but_o one_o in_o number_n and_o not_o only_o in_o the_o mental_a notion_n but_o also_o be_v real_o and_o most_o simple_o one_o though_o in_o three_o person_n this_o name_n of_o god_n be_v not_o predicate_v as_o a_o species_n of_o every_o person_n but_o according_a to_o the_o priority_n or_o posteriority_n of_o their_o origin_n and_o order_n as_o thus_o the_o father_n be_v god_n but_o unbegotten_a the_o son_n god_n beget_v the_o holy_a ghost_n proceed_v from_o both_o now_o if_o the_o name_n god_n be_v as_o species_n speak_v of_o the_o person_n